To the Right Honourable
Mr. PITT
SIR,
Never poor Wight of a Dedicator had less hopes from his Dedication than I have from this of mine; for it is written in a bye corner of the kingdom, and in a retired thatched house, where I live in a constant endeavour to fence against the infirmities of ill health, and other evils of life, by mirth; being firmly persuaded that every time a man smiles,----- but much more so, when he laughs, that it adds something to this Fragment of Life.
I humbly beg, Sir, that you will honour this book by taking it----(not under your Protection,-----it must protect itself, but)-----into the country with you; where, if I am ever told it has made you smile, or can conceive it has beguiled you of one moment's pain------I shall think myself as happy as a minister of state;--------perhaps much happier than any one (one only excepted) that I have ever read or heard of.
I am, great Sir
(and what is more to your Honour),
I am, good Sir,
Your Well-wisher,
and most humble Fellow-subject,
THE AUTHOR
I wish either my father or my mother, or indeed both of them, as they were in duty both equally bound to it, had minded what they were about when they begot me; had they duly considered how much depended upon what they were then doing;---that not only the production of a rational Being was concerned in it, but that possibly the happy formation and temperature of his body, perhaps his genius and the very cast of his mind;--and, for aught they knew to the contrary, even the fortunes of his whole house might take their turn from the humours and dispositions which were then uppermost:-----Had they duly weighed and considered all this, and proceeded accordingly,--I am verily persuaded I should have made a quite different figure in the world from that in which the reader is likely to see me.---Believe me, good folks, this is not so inconsiderable a thing as many of you may think it;--you have all, I dare say, heard of the animal spirits, as how they are transfused from father to son, &c., &c.--and a great deal to that purpose:-----Well, you may take my word that nine parts in ten of a man's sense or his nonsense, his successes and miscarriages in this world, depend upon their motions and activity, and the different tracks and trains you put them into, so that when they are once set a-going, whether right or wrong, 'tis not a halfpenny matter;---away they go cluttering like hey-gomad; and by treading the same steps over and over again, they presently make a road of it, as plain and as smooth as a garden walk, which, when they are once used to, the devil himself sometimes shall not be able to drive them off it.
Pray, my dear, quoth my mother, have you not forgot to
wind up the clock?--Good G---! cried my father, making
an exclamation, but taking care to moderate his voice
at the same time,----Did ever woman, since the creation of
the world, interrupt a man with such a silly question? Pray,
what was your father saying?---------Nothing.
The HOMUNCULUS, Sir, in however low and ludicrous a
light he may appear, in this age of levity, to the eye of folly
or prejudice:----to the eye of reason in scientific research,
he stands confessed---a BEING guarded and circumscribed
with rights:------The minutest philosophers, who, by the bye
have the most enlarged understandings (their souls being
inversely as their enquiries), show us incontestably, That the
HOMUNCULUS is created by the same hand,------engendered -
in the same course of nature-----endowed with the same
locomotive powers and faculties with us:---That he.
consists, as we do, of skin, hair, fat, flesh, veins, arteries,
ligaments, nerves, cartilages, bones, marrow, brains, glands,
genitals, humours, and articulations;--- is a Being of as
much activity,----and, in all senses of the word, as much
and as truly our fellow-creature as my Lord Chancellor of
England.-----He may be benefited, he may be injured,----
he may obtain redress;-----in a word, he has all the
claims and rights of humanity which Tully, Puffendorff, or
the best ethic writers allow to arise out of that state and
relation.
Now, dear Sir, what if any accident had befallen him in
his way alone?-----or that, through terror of it, natural to so
young a traveller, my little gentleman had got to his
journey's end miserably spent;----his muscular strength and
---My mother, who was sitting by, looked up,---but she knew no more than her backside what my father meant, ----but my uncle, Mr. Toby Shandy, who had been often informed of the affair,----understood him very well.
It is in pure compliance with this humour of theirs, and from a backwardness in my nature to disappoint any one soul living, that I have been so very particular already. As my life and opinions are likely to make some noise in the world, and, if I conjecture right, will take in all ranks, professions, and denominations of men whatever,----be no less read than the Pilgrim's Progress itself---and, in the end, prove the very thing which Montaigne dreaded his essays should turn out, that is, a book for a parlour window; I find it necessary to consult everyone a little in his tun; and therefore must beg pardon for going on a little further in the same way: for which cause, right glad I am that I have begun the history of myself in the way I have done; and that I am able to go on tracing everything in it, as Horace says, ab Ovo.
Horace, I know, does not recommend this fashion altogether: But that gentleman is speaking only of an epic Poem or a tragedy----(I forget which)----besides, if it was not so, I should beg Mr. Horace's pardon;---for in writing what I have set about, I shall confine myself neither to his rules, nor to any man's rules that ever lived.
To such, however, as do not choose to go so far back into these things, I can give no better advice than that they skip over the remaining part of this Chapter; for I declare beforehand, 'tis wrote only for the curious and inquisitive.
------------------------- Shut the door. -------------------------- I was begot in the night, betwixt the first Sunday and the first Monday in the month of March, in the year of our Lord one thousand seven hundred and eighteen. I am positive I was.---But how I came to be so very Particular in my account of a thing which happened before I was born is owing to another small anecdote known only in our own family, but now made public for the better clearing up this point.
My father, you must know, who was originally a Turkey merchant, but had left off business for some years, in order
It was attended but with one misfortune, which, in a great measure, fell upon myself, and the effects of which I fear I shall carry with me to my grave; namely, that, from an unhappy association of ideas which have no connection in nature, it so fell out at length that my poor mother could never hear the said clock wound up,--but the thoughts of some other things unavoidably popped into her head,-----and vice versa:-----which strange combination of ideas the sagacious Locke, who certainly understood the nature of these things, better than most men, affirms to have produced more wry actions than all other sources of prejudice whatsoever.
But this by the bye.
Now it appears, by a memorandum in my father's pocketbook, which now lies upon the table, ``That on Lady Day, which was on the 25th of the same month in which I date my geniture,-----my father set out upon his journey to London with my eldest brother, Bobby, to fix him at Westminster school;'' and, as it appears from the same authority, ``That he did not get down to his wife and family till the second week in May following''---it brings the thing almost to a certainty. However, what follows in the beginning of the next chapter puts it beyond all possibility of doubt.
-----But pray, Sir, What was your father doing all December,---January, and February?---Why, Madam,---he was all that time afflicted with a Sciatica.
These last words, you must know, were not according to the old form in which such licences, faculties, and powers usually ran, which in like cases had heretofore been granted to the sisterhood. But it was according to a neat Formula of
I own I never could envy Didius in these kinds of fancies
of his:---But every man to his own taste.---Did not Dr.
Kunastrokius, that great man, at his leisure hours, take the
greatest delight imaginable in combing of asses' tails, and
plucking the dead hairs out with his teeth, though he had
tweezers always in his pocket? Nay, lf you come to that, Sir,
have not the wisest of men in all ages, not excepting Solomon
himself,--have they not had their HOBBY-HORSES;------their
running horses,--their coins and their cockleshells, their
drums and their trumpets, their fiddles, their pallets,-----
their maggots and their butterflies?--and so long as a man
rides his HOBBY-HORSE peaceably and quietly along the king's
highway, and neither compels you or me to get up behind
him,--pray, Sir, what have either you or I to do with it?
Not one of these instances therefore can be said to break in upon my rest.--But there is an instance which I own puts me off my guard, and that is when I see one born for great actions, and, what is still more for his honour, whose nature ever inclines him to good ones;---when I behold such a one, my Lord, like yourself, whose principles and conduct are as generous and noble as his blood, and whom, for that reason, a corrupt world cannot spare one moment;--when I see such a one, my Lord, mounted, though it is but for a minute beyond the time which my love to my country has prescribed to him, and my zeal for his glory wishes,----then, my Lord, I cease to be a philosopher, and in the first transport of an honest impatience, I wish the HOBBY-HORSE, with all his fraternity, at the devil.
``My Lord,
``I maintain this to be a dedication, not withstanding its singularity in the three great essentials of matter, form, and place: I beg, therefore, you will accept it as such, and that you will permit me to lay it, with the most respectful humility, at your Lordship's feet,--when you are upon them,--- which you can be when you please:--and that is, my Lord, whenever there is occasion for it, and I will add, to the best purposes too. I have the honour to be,
My Lord,
Your Lordship's most obedient,
and most devoted,
and most humble servant,
TRISTRAM SHANDY''
I labour this point so particularly merely to remove any offence or objection which might arise against it, from the manner in which I propose to make the most of it;----- which is the putting it up fairly to public sale; which I now do.
---Every author has a way of his own in bringing his points to bear;---for my own part, as I hate chaffering and higgling for a few guineas in a dark entry,---I resolved within myself, from the very beginning, to deal squarely and openly with your Great Folks in this affair, and try whether I should not come off the better by it.
If therefore there is any one Duke, Marquis, Earl, Viscount, or Baron, in these his Majesty's dominions, who stands in need of a tight, genteel dedication, and whom the above will suit (for by the bye, unless it suits in some degree I will not part with it),--it is much at his service for fifty guineas;-----which I am positive is twenty guineas less than it ought to be afforded for, by any man of genius.
My Lord, if you examine it over again, it is far from being a gross piece of daubing, as some dedications are. The design, your Lordship sees, is good, the colouring transparent,----the drawing not amiss;---or to speak more like a man of science,--and measure my piece in the painter's scale, divided into 20,---I believe, my Lord, the outlines will turn out as 12,--the composition as 9,----the colouring as 6,--the expression 13 and a half,----and the design,----If I may be allowed, my Lord, to understand my own design, and supposing absolute perfection in designing to be as 20,--I think it cannot well fall short of 19. Besides all this,---there is keeping in it, and the dark strokes
Be pleased, my good Lord, to order the sum to be paid into the hands of Mr. Dodsley, for the benefit of the author; and in the next edition care shall be taken that this chapter be expunged, and your Lordship's titles, distinctions, arms, and good actions be placed at the front of the preceding chapter: all which, from the words, De gustibus non est disputandum, and whatever else in this book relates to HOBBY-HORSES, but no more, shall stand dedicated to your Lordship.---The rest I dedicate to the MOON, who, by the bye, of all the PATRONS or MATRONS I can think of, has most power to set my book a-going, and make the world run mad after it,
Bright Goddess,
If thou art not too busy with CANDIDE and Miss CUN@'EGONDE's affairs,----take Tristram Shandy's under thy protection also.
The world at that time was pleased to determine the matter
otherwise.
Lay down the book, and I will allow you half a day to
Be it known then that, for about five years before the date of the midwife's licence of which you have had so circumstantial an account,--the parson we have to do with had made himself a country talk by a breach of all decorum, which he had committed against himself, his station, and his office;----and that was in never appearing better, or otherwise, mounted than upon a lean, sorry jackass of a horse, value about one pound fifteen shillings; who, to shorten all description of him, was full brother to Rosinante, as far as similitude congenial could make him; for he answered his description to a hairbreadth in everything,-------except that I do not remember 'tis anywhere said that Rosinante was broken-winded; and that, moreover, Rosinante, as is the happiness of most Spanish horses, fat or lean,----was undoubtedly a horse at all points.
I know very well that the HERO's horse was a horse of chaste deportment, which may have given grounds for a con-tray opinion: But it is as certain at the same time that Rosinante's continency (as may be demonstrated from the adventure of the Yanguesian carriers) proceeded from no bodily defect or cause whatsoever, but from the temperance and orderly current of his blood.---And let me tell you, Madam, there is a great deal of very good chastity in the world, in behalf of which you could not say more for your life.
Let that be as it may, as my purpose is to do exact justice to every creature brought upon the stage of this dramatic work,---I could not stifle this distinction in favour of Don Quixote's horse;----in all other points the parson's horse, I say, was just such another,--for he was as lean, and as lank, and as sorry a jade as HUMILITY herself could have bestrided.
In the estimation of here and there a man of weak judgment, it was greatly in the parson's power to have helped the figure of this horse of his,----for he was master of a very handsome demipeaked saddle, quilted on the seat with green plush, garnished with a double row of silver-headed studs, and a noble pair of shining brass stirrups, with a housing altogether suitable, of grey superfine cloth, with an edging of black lace, terminating in a deep, black, silk fringe, poudr@'e d'or,---all which he had purchased in the pride and prime of his life, together with a grand embossed bridle ornamented at all points as it should be.----But not caring to banter his beast, he had hung all these up behind his
In the several sallies about his parish, and in the neighbouring visits to the gentry who lived around him,----you will easily comprehend that the parson, so appointed, would both hear and see enough to keep his philosophy from rusting. To speak the truth, he never could enter a village but he caught the attention of both old and young,----Labour stood still as he passed,---the bucket hung suspended in the middle of the well,----the spinning wheel forgot its round,---even chuck-farthing and shuffle-cap themselves stood gaping till he had got out of sight; and as his movement was not of the quickest, he had generally time enough upon his hands to make his observations,---to hear the groans of the serious,---and the laughter of the lighthearted;-----all which he bore with excellent tranquility. ---His character was----he loved a jest in his heart----- and as he saw himself in the true point of ridicule, he would say he could not be angry with others for seeing him in a light in which he so strongly saw himself: So that to his friends, who knew his foible was not the love of money, and who therefore made the less scruple in bantering the extravagance of his humour,----instead of giving the true cause,----he chose rather to join in the laugh against himself; and as he never carried one single ounce of flesh upon his own bones, being altogether as spare a figure as his beast,---he would sometimes insist upon it that the horse was as good as the rider deserved;--that they were, centaur-like,--both of a piece. At other times, and in other moods, when his spirits were above the temptation of false wit,----he would say he found himself going off fast in a consumption; and, with great gravity, would pretend he could not bear the sight of a fat horse without a dejection of heart, and a sensible alteration in his pulse; and that he had made choice of the lean one he rode upon not only to keep himself in countenance, but in spirits.
At different times he would give fifty humorous and opposite reasons for riding a meek-spirited jade of a broken-winded horse, preferably to one of mettle;---for on such a one he could sit mechanically, and meditate as delightfully de vanitate mundi et fug@^a saeculi, as with the advantage of a death's head before him;---that, in all other exercitations, he could spend his time, as he rode slowly along,--- to as much account as in his study;---that he could draw
But the truth of the story was as follows: In the first years of this gentleman's life, and about the time when the superb saddle and bridle were purchased by him, it had been his manner, or vanity, or call it what you will,--to run into the opposite extreme,---In the language of the county where he dwelt, he was said to have loved a good horse, and generally had one of the best in the whole parish standing in his stable always ready for saddling; and as the nearest midwife as I told you, did not live nearer to the village than seven miles, and in a vile country,--it so fell out that the poor gentleman was scarce a whole week together without some piteous application for his beast; and as he was not an unkind-hearted man, and every case was more pressing and more distressful than the last,--as much as he loved his beast, he had never a heart to refuse him; the upshot of which was generally this, that his horse was either clapped, or spavined, or greased;---or he was twitterboned or broken-winded, or something, in short, or other had befallen him which would let him carry no flesh;-----so that he had every nine or ten months a bad horse to get rid of,--and a good horse to purchase in his stead.
What the loss in such a balance might amount to, com- munibus annis, I would leave to a special jury of sufferers in the same traffic to determine;--but let it be what it would, the honest gentleman bore it for many years without a murmur, till at length, by repeated ill accidents of the kind, he found it necessary to take the thing under consideration; and upon weighing the whole, and summing it up in his mind, he found it not only disproportioned to his other expenses, but withal so heavy an article in itself as to disable him from any other act of generosity in his parish: Besides this he considered that with half the sum thus galloped away, he could do ten times as much good;--and what still weighed more with him than all other considerations
For these reasons he resolved to discontinue the expense; and there appeared but two possible ways to extricate him clearly out of it;----and these were either to make it an irrevocable law never more to lend his steed upon any application whatever,-----or else be content to ride the last poor devil, such as they had made him, with all his aches and infirmities, to the very end of the chapter.
As he dreaded his own constancy in the first,-----he very cheerfully betook himself to the second; and though he could very well have explained it, as I said, to his honour,----- yet, for that very reason, he had a spirit above it; choosing rather to bear the contempt of his enemies, and the laughter of his friends, than undergo the pain of telling a story which might seem a panegyric upon himself.
I have the highest idea of the spiritual and refined sentiments of this reverend gentleman, from this single stroke in his character, which I think comes up to any of the honest refinements of the peerless knight of La Mancha, whom, by the bye, with all his follies, I love more, and would actually have gone further to have paid a visit to, than the greatest hero of antiquity.
But this is not the moral of my story: The thing I had in view was to show the temper of the world in the whole of this affair.----For you must know that so long as this explanation would have done the parson credit,------the devil a soul could find it out;-----I suppose his enemies would not, and that his friends could not.----But no sooner did he bestir himself in behalf of the midwife and pay the expenses of the ordinary's licence to set her up,-----but the whole secret came out; every horse he had lost, and two horses more than ever he had lost, with all the circumstances of their destruction, were known and distinctly remembered. -----The story ran like wildfire.-----``The parson had a re-turning fit of pride which had just seized him; and he was going to be well mounted once again in his life; and if it was so, 'twas plain as the sun at noonday, he would pocket the expense of the licence, ten times told the very first year:--so that everybody was left to judge what were his views in this act of charity.''
What were his views in this, and in every other action of his life,------or rather what were the opinions which floated in the brains of other people concerning it, was a thought which too much floated in his own, and too often broke in upon his rest, when he should have been sound asleep.
About ten years ago, this gentleman had the good fortune to be made entirely easy upon that score,-----it being just so long since he left his parish,-----and the whole world at the same time behind him,-----and stands accountable to a judge of whom he will have no cause to complain.
But there is a fatality attends the actions of some men: Order them as they will, they pass through a certain medium which so twists and refracts them from their true directions -----that, with all the titles to praise which a rectitude of heart can give, the doers of them are nevertheless forced to live and die without it.
Of the truth of which this gentleman was a painful
example,-----But to know by what means this came to pass,
-----and to make that knowledge of use to you, I insist upon
it that you read the two following chapters, which contain
such a sketch of his life and conversation as will carry its
moral along with it.---When this is done, if nothing stops
us in our way, we will go on with the midwife.
This evil had been sufficiently fenced against by the prudent care of the Yorick family, and their religious preservation of these records I quote which do further inform us, That the family was originally of Danish extraction, and had been transplanted into England as early as in the reign of Horwendillus, King of Denmark, in whose court, it seems, an ancestor of this Mr. Yorick's, aid from whom he was lineally descended, held a considerable post to the day of his death. Of what nature this considerable post was, this record saith not;-----it only adds, That, for near two centuries, it had been totally abolished as altogether unnecessary, not only in that court, but in every other court of the Christian world.
It has often come into my head that this post could be no other than that of the king's chief Jester;---and that Hamlet's Yorick, in our Shakespeare, many of whose plays, you know, are founded upon authenticated facts,---was certainly the very man.
I have not the time to look into Saxe-Grammaticus's Danish history, to know the certainty of this;---but if you have leisure and can easily get at the book, you may do it full as well yourself.
I had just time, in my travels through Denmark with Mr. Noddy's eldest son, whom, in the year 1741, I accompanied as governor, riding along with him at a prodigious rate through most parts of Europe, and of which original journey performed by us two a most delectable narrative will be given in the progress of this work. I had just time, I say, and that was all, to prove the truth of an observation made by a long sojourner in that country;-----namely, ``That Nature was neither very lavish, nor was she very stingy in her gifts of genius and capacity to its inhabitants;------but, like a discreet parent, was moderately kind to them all; observing such an equal tenor in the distribution of her favours as to bring them, in those points, pretty near to a level with each other; so that you will meet with few instances in that kingdom of refined parts; but a great deal of good plain household understanding amongst all ranks of people, of which everybody has a share;'' which is, I think, very right.
With us, you see, the case is quite different;------we are all - 26
This is all that ever staggered my faith in regard to Yorick's extraction, who, by what I can remember of him, and by all the accounts I could ever get of him, seemed not to have had one single drop of Danish blood in his whole crasis; in nine hundred years, it might possibly have all run out:---I will not philosophize one moment with you about it; for happen how it would, the fact was this:----That instead of that cold phlegm and exact regularity of sense and humours you would have looked for in one so extracted, ------he was, on the contrary, as mercurial and sublimated a composition,----as heteroclite a creature in all his declensions,-----with as much life and whim, and gaiet@'e de coeur about him, as the kindliest climate could have engendered and put together. With all this sail, poor Yorick carried not one ounce of ballast; he was utterly unpractised in the world; and, at the age of twenty-six, knew just about as well how to steer his course in it as a romping, un. suspicious girl of thirteen: So that upon his first setting out, the brisk gale of his spirits, as you will imagine, ran him foul ten times in a day of somebody's tackling; and as the grave and more slow-paced were oftenest in his way,------ you may likewise imagine 'twas with such he had generally the ill luck to get the most entangled. For aught I know there might be some mixture of unlucky wit at the bottom of such Fracas;-----For, to speak the truth, Yorick had an invincible dislike and opposition in his nature to gravity; ------not to gravity as such,-----for where gravity was wanted, he would be the most grave or serious of mortal men for days and weeks together;----but he was an enemy to the affectation of it, and declared open war against it, only as it appeared a cloak for ignorance, or for folly; and then, whenever it fell in his way, however sheltered and protected, he seldom gave it much quarter.
Sometimes, in his wild way of talking, he would say, That gravity was an errant scoundrel; and he would add,----of the most dangerous kind too,---because a sly one; and
But, in plain truth, he was a man unhackneyed and unpractised in the world, and was altogether as indiscreet and foolish on every other subject of discourse where policy is wont to impress restraint. Yorick had no impression but one. and that was what arose from the nature of the deed spoken of; which impression he would usually translate into plain English without any periphrasis,-----and too oft without much distinction of either personage, time, or place;-----so that when mention was made of a pitiful or an ungenerous proceeding,-----he never gave himself a moment's time to reflect who was the Hero of the piece,-----what his station. -----or how far he had power to hurt him hereafter;-----but If it was a dirty action,-----without more ado,-----The man was a dirty fellow,------and so on:-----And as his comments had usually the ill fate to be terminated either in a bon mot. or to be enlivened throughout with some drollery or humour of expression, it gave wings to Yorick's indiscretion. In a - word, though he never sought, yet, at the same time, as he seldom shunned occasions of saying what came uppermost, and without much ceremony;-----he had but too many temptations in life of scattering his wit and his humour,----his gibes and his jests about him.-----They were not lost for want of gathering.
What were the consequences, and what was Yorick's catastrophe thereupon, you will read in the next chapter.
As the reader (for I hate your ifs) has a thorough knowledge of human nature, I need not say more to satisfy him that my Hero could not go on at this rate without some slight experience of these incidental mementos. To speak the truth, he had wantonly involved himself in a multitude of small book debts of this stamp, which, notwithstanding Eugenius's frequent advice, he too much disregarded; thinking that as not one of them was contracted through any malignancy,-----but, on the contrary, from an honesty of mind, and a mere jocundity of humour, they would all of them be crossed out in course.
Eugenius would never admit this; and would often tell him that one day or other he would certainly be reckoned with; and he would often add, in an accent of sorrowful apprehension,----to the uttermost mite. To which Yorick, with his usual carelessness of heart, would as often answer with a pshaw!----and if the subject was started in the fields, ----with a hop, skip, and a jump at the end of it; but if close pent up in the social chimney corner, where the culprit was barricadoed in with a table and a couple of armchairs, and could not so readily fly off in a tangent,----Eugenius would then go on with his lecture upon discretion, in words to this purpose, though somewhat better put together.
Trust me, dear Yorick, this unwary pleasantry of thine will
I cannot suspect it, in the man whom I esteem, that there is the least spur from spleen or malevolence of intent in these sallies,-----I believe and know them to be truly honest and sportive:-----But consider, my dear lad, that fools cannot distinguish this,-----and that knaves will not; and thou knowest not what it is either to provoke the one, or to make merry with the other;-----whenever they associate for mutual defence, depend upon it, they will carry on the war in such a manner against thee, my dear friend, as to make thee heartily sick of it, and of thy life too.
REVENGE from some baneful corner shall level a tale of dishonour at thee, which no innocence of heart or integrity of conduct shall set right,-----The fortunes of thy house shall totter,-----thy character, which led the way to them, shall bleed on every side of it,-----thy faith questioned, ------thy works belied,-----thy wit forgotten,-----thy learning trampled on. To wind up the last scene of thy tragedy, CRUELTY and COWARDICE, twin ruffians, hired and set on by MALICE in the dark, shall strike together at all thy infirmities and mistakes:-----the best of us, my dear lad, lie open there,-----and trust me,-----trust me, Yorick, When, to gratify a private appetite, it is once resolved upon that an innocent and an helpless creature shall be sacrificed, 'tis an easy matter to pick up sticks enough from any thicket where it has strayed, to make a fire to offer it up with.
Yorick scarce ever heard this sad vaticination of his destiny read over to him but with a tear stealing from his eye, and a Promissory look attending it that he was resolved, for the time to come to ride his tit with more sobriety.-----But, alas, too late!-----a grand confederacy, with ***** and ***** at the head of it, was formed before the first prediction of it.-----The whole plan of the attack, just as Eugenius had
Yorick, however, fought it out with all imaginable gallantry for some time; till, overpowered by numbers, and worn out at length by the calamities of the war,-----but more so by the ungenerous manner in which it was carried on,-----he threw down the sword; and though he kept up his spirits in appearance to the last,-----he died, nevertheless, as was generally thought, quite brokenhearted,
What inclined Eugenius to the same opinion was as follows:
A few hours before Yorick breathed his last, Eugenius stept in with an intent to take his last sight and last farewell of him: Upon his drawing Yorick's curtain, and asking how he felt himself, Yorick, looking up in his face, took hold of his hand,------and, after thanking him for the many tokens of his friendship to him, for which, he said, if it was their fate to meet hereafter,----he would thank him again and again,-----he told him he was within a few hours of giving his enemies the slip forever.-----I hope not, answered Eugenius, with tears trickling down his cheeks, and with the tenderest tone that ever man spoke,-----I hope not, Yorick, said he.-----Yorick replied with a look up, and a gentle squeeze of Eugenius's hand, and that was all,----but it cut Eugenius to his heart.-----Come,-----come, Yorick, quoth Eugenius, wiping his eyes, and summoning up the man within him,-----my dear lad, be comforted,----let not all thy spirits and fortitude forsake thee at this crisis when thou most wants them;------who knows what resources are in store, and what the power of God may yet do for thee?-----Yorick laid his hand upon his heart, and gently shook his head;----- for my part, continued Eugenius, crying bitterly as he uttered the words,-----I declare I know not, Yorick, how to part with thee,----and would gladly flatter my hopes, added Eugenius, cheering up his voice, that there is still enough . left of thee to make a bishop,----and that I may live to see it.-----I beseech thee, Eugenius, quoth Yorick, taking off his nightcap as well as he could with his left hand,-----his right being still grasped close in that of Eugenius,-----I beseech thee to take a view of my head,----I see nothing that ails it, replied Eugenius. Then, alas! my friend, said Yorick, let me
Eugenius was convinced from this that the heart of his friend was broke; he squeezed his hand,-----and then walked softly out of the room, weeping as he walked, Yorlck followed Eugenius with his eyes to the door,------he then closed them,------and never opened them more.
He lies buried in a corner of his churchyard, in the Parish of ---------, under a plain marble slab, which his friend Eugenius, by leave of his executors, laid upon his grave, with no more than these three words of inscription serving both for his epitaph and elegy.
alas, poor YORICK!
Ten times in a day has Yorick's ghost the consolation to hear his monumental inscription read over with such a variety of plaintive tones as denote a general pity and esteem for him;-----a footway crossing the churchyard close by the side of his grave,------not a passenger goes by without stopping to cast a look upon it,---and sighing as he walks on,
alas, poor Y O R I C K !
I think I told you that this good woman was a person of no small note and consequence throughout our whole village and township;--that her fame has spread itself to the very outedge and circumference of that circle of importance of which hind every soul living, whether he has a shirt to his back or no,--has one surrounding him;--which said circle, by the way, whenever 'tis said that such a one is of great weight and importance in the world,--I desire may be enlarged or contracted in your Worship's fancy, in a compound ratio of the station, profession, knowledge, abilities, height, and depth (measuring both ways) of the personage brought before you.
In the present case, if I remember, I fixed it at about four or five miles, which not only comprehended the whole parish, but extended itself to two or three of the adjacent hamlets in the skirts of the next parish; which made a considerable thing of it. I must add, That she was, moreover very well looked on at one large grange house and some other odd houses and farms within two or three miles, as I said, from the smoke of her own chimney:--But I must here, once for all, inform you that all this will be more exactly delineated and explained in a map, now in the hands of the engraver, which, with many other pieces and developments to this work, will be added to the end of the twentieth volume,--not to swell the work,--I detest the thought of such a thing,--but by way of commentary, scholium, illustration, and key to such passages, incidents, or innuendos as shall be thought to
. . ..
meaning after my life and my opinions shall have been read
over (now don't forget the meaning of the word) by all the
world,---which, betwixt you and me, and in spite of all
the gentlemen reviewers in Great Britain, and of all that
their Worships shall undertake to write or say to the
contrary,--I am determined shall be the case.--I need not
tell your Worship that all this is spoke in confidence.
Accounts to reconcile:
Anecdotes to pick up:
Inscriptions to make out:
Stories to weave in:
Traditions to sift:
Personages to call upon:
Panegyrics to paste up at this door:
Pasquinades at that:----All which both the man and his
mule are quite exempt from. To sum up all; there are
archives at every stage to be looked into, and rolls, records,
documents, and endless genealogies, which justice ever and
anon calls him back to stay the reading of:----In short,
there is no end of it;----for my own part, I declare I have
been at it these six weeks, making all the speed I possibly
could,----and am not yet born:----I have just been able,
and that's all, to tell you when it happened, but not how;
--so that you see the thing is yet far from being
accomplished.
- These unforeseen stoppages, which I own I had no
conception of when I first set out,----but which, I am
convinced now, will rather increase than diminish as I
advance,----have struck out a hint which I am resolved to
follow;----and that is,----not to be in a hurry,----but to
go on leisurely, writing and publishing two volumes of my
life every year;----which if I am suffered to go on quietly,
and can make a tolerable bargain with my bookseller, I shall
continue to do as long as I live.
``And this Indenture further witnesseth, That the said
Walter Shandy, merchant, in consideration of the said
intended marriage to be had, and, by God's blessing, to be
well and truly solemnized and consummated between the
said Walter Shandy and Elizabeth Mollineux aforesaid, and
divers other good and valuable causes and considerations
him thereunto specially moving,----doth grant, covenant,
condescend, consent, conclude, bargain, and fully agree to
and with John Dixon and James Turner, Esqrs., the above-named
But in order to put a stop to the practise of any unfair play on the part of my mother, which a marriage article of this nature too manifestly opened a door to, and which indeed had never been thought of at all, but for my uncle Toby Shandy,----a clause was added in security of my
But I was begot and born to misfortunes;--for my poor mother, whether it was wind or water,----or a compound of both,----or neither;-----or whether it was simply the mere swell of imagination and fancy in her;------or how far a strong wish and desire to have it so might mislead her judgment;-----in short, whether she was deceived or deceiving in this matter, it no way becomes me to decide. The fact was this, That, in the latter end of September, 1717, which was the year before I was born, my mother having carried my father up to town much against the grain,-----he peremptorily insisted upon the clause;----so that I was doomed, by marriage articles, to have my nose squeezed as flat to my face as if the destinies had actually spun me without one.
How this event came about,-----and what a train of
vexatious disappointments, in one stage or other of my life, have
pursued me from the mere loss, or rather compression, of
this one single member,------shall be laid before the reader all
in due time.
For the next two whole stages, no subject would go down but the heavy blow he had sustained from the loss of a son, whom it seems he had fully reckoned upon in his mind, and registered down in his pocketbook, as a second staff for his old age, in case Bobby should fail him. ``The disappointment of this,'' he said, ``was ten times more to a wise man than all the money which the journey, &c., had cost him, put together;----rot the hundred and twenty pounds,-----he did not mind it a rush.''
from Stilton all the way to Grantham, nothing in the whole affair provoked him so much as the condolences of his friends, and the foolish figure they should both make at church the first Sunday;----of which, in the satirical vehemence of his wit, now sharpened a little by vexation, he would give so many humorous and provoking descriptions, -----and place his rib and self in so many tormenting lights and attitudes in the face of the whole congregation,------that my mother declared these two stages were so truly tragicomical that she did nothing but laugh and cry in a breath, from one end to the other of them all the way.
From Grantham till they had crossed the Trent, my father was out of all kind of patience at the vile trick and imposition which he fancied my mother had put upon him in this affair. -----``Certainly,'' he would say to himself, over and over again, ``the woman could not be deceived herself;-----if she could,----what weakness!''-----tormenting word! which led his imagination a thorny dance, and, before all was over, played the deuce and all with him;----for sure as ever the word weakness was uttered and struck full upon his brain, ----so sure it set him upon running divisions upon how many kinds of weaknesses there were;-----that there was such a thing as weakness of the body,----as well as weakness of the mind,-----and then he would do nothing but syllogize within himself for a stage or two together, How far the cause of all these vexations might, or might not, have arisen out of himself.
In short, he had so many little subjects of disquietude springing out of this one affair, all fretting successively in his mind as they rose up in it, that my mother, whatever was her journey up, had but an uneasy journey of it down.
My father was a gentleman of many virtues,-----but he had a strong spice of that in his temper which might, or might not, add to the number.-----'Tis known by the name of perseverance in a good cause,-----and of obstinacy in a bad one: Of this my mother had so much knowledge that she knew 'twas to no purpose to make any remonstrance,-----so she e'en resolved to sit down quietly, and make the most of it.
These facts, though they had their weight, yet did not altogether satisfy some few scruples and uneasinesses which hung upon my father's spirits in relation to this choice.----- To say nothing of the natural workings of humanity and justice,-----or of the yearnings of parental and connubial love, all which prompted him to leave as little to hazard as possible in a case of this kind;-----he felt himself concerned in a particular manner that all should go right in the present case,-----from the accumulated sorrow he lay open to, should any evil betide his wife and child in lying in at Shandy Hall.-----He knew the world judged by events, and
This exclamation, my father knew, was unanswerable;------ and yet, it was not merely to shelter himself,--nor was it altogether for the care of his offspring and wife that he seemed so extremely anxious about this point;----my father had extensive views of things,-----and stood, moreover, as he thought, deeply concerned in it for the public good, from the dread he entertained of the bad uses an ill-fated instance might be put to.
He was very sensible that all political writers upon the subject had unanimously agreed and lamented, from the beginning of Queen Elizabeth's reign down to his own time, that the current of men and money towards the metropolis. upon one frivolous errand or another,------set in so strong, -----as to become dangerous to our civil rights;-----though, by the bye,----a current was not the image he took most delight in,-----a distemper was here his favourite metaphor, and he would run it down into a perfect allegory, by maintaining it was identically the same in the body national as in the body natural, where blood and spirits were driven up into the head faster than they could find their ways down; --a stoppage of circulation must ensue, which was death in both cases.
There was little danger, he would say, of losing our liberties by French politics or French invasions;------nor was he so much in pain of a consumption from the mass of corrupted matter and ulcerated humours in our constitution, ----which he hoped was not so bad as it was imagined;------ but he verily feared that in some violent push, we should go off, all at once, in a state apoplexy;----and then he would say, The Lord have mercy upon us all.
My father was never able to give the history of this distemper,-----without the remedy along with it.
``Was I an absolute prince,'' he would say, pulling up his breeches with both his hands, as he rose from his armchair. ``I would appoint able judges at every avenue of my metropolis, who should take cognizance of every fool's business
``Why are there so few palaces and gentlemen's seats,'' he would ask, with some emotion, as he walked across the room, ``throughout so many delicious provinces in France? Whence is it that the few remaining Ch@^ateaus amongst them are so dismantled,-----so unfurnished, and in so ruinous and desolate a condition?-----Because, Sir,'' he would say, ``in that kingdom no man has any country interest to support; -----the little interest of any kind which any man has anywhere in it is concentrated in the court, and the looks of the Grand Monarch; by the sunshine of whose countenance, or the clouds which pass across it, every Frenchman lives or dies.''
Another political reason which prompted my father so strongly to guard against the least evil accident in my mother's lying in in the country----was, That any such instance would infallibly throw a balance of power, too great already, into the weaker vessels of the gentry, in his own or higher stations;-----which, with the many other usurped rights which that part of the constitution was hourly establishing,------would, in the end, prove fatal to the monarchical system of domestic government established in the first creation of things by God.
In this point he was entirely of Sir Robert Filmer's opinion, That the plans and institutions of the greatest monarchies in the eastern parts of the world were, originally, all stolen from that admirable pattern and prototype of this household and paternal power;-----which, for a century, he said, and more, had gradually been degenerating away into a mixed
For all these reasons, private and public, put together,----- my father was for having the man-midwife by all means,----- my mother by no means. My father begged and intreated she would for once recede from her prerogative in this matter, and suffer him to choose for her;-----my mother, on the contrary, insisted upon her privilege in this matter to choose for herself,-----and have no mortal's help but the old woman's.-----What could my father do? He was almost at his wit's end;----talked it over with her in all moods;----- placed his arguments in all lights;-----argued the matter with her like a Christian,-----like a heathen,-----like a husband,-----like a father,-----like a patriot,-----like a man:---- My mother answered everything only like a woman; which was a little hard upon her;----for as she could not assume and fight it out behind such a variety of characters,------ 'twas no fair match;-----'twas seven to one.-----What could my mother do?----She had the advantage (otherwise she had been certainly overpowered) of a small reinforcement of chagrin personal at the bottom which bore her up, and enabled her to dispute the affair with my father with so equal an advantage,-----that both sides sung Te Deum. In a word, my mother was to have the old woman,----and the operator was to have licence to drink a bottle of wine with my father and my uncle Toby Shandy in the back parlour. -----for which he was to be paid five guineas.
I must beg leave, before I finish this chapter, to enter a caveat in the breast of my fair reader;-----and it is this:----- Not to take it absolutely for granted from an unguarded word or two which I have dropped in it,-----``That I am a married man.''------I own the tender appellation of my dear, dear Jenny,---with some other strokes of conjugal knowledge, interspersed here and there, might, naturally enough, have misled the most candid judge in the world into such a determination against me.-----All I plead for, in this case, Madam, is strict justice, and that you do so much of it, to me as well as to yourself,-----as not to prejudge or receive such an impression of me till you have better evidence than I am positive, at present, can be produced against me:------ Not that I can be so vain or unreasonable, Madam, as to desire you should therefore think that my dear, dear Jenny is my kept mistress;-----no,-----that would be flattering my
His opinion in this matter was, That there was a strange kind of magic bias, which good or bad names, as he called them, irresistibly impressed upon our characters and conduct.
The Hero of Cervantes argued not the point with more seriousness,-----nor had he more faith,-----or more to say on the powers of Necromancy in dishonouring his deeds,----- or on DULCINEA's name in shedding lustre upon them, than my father had on those of TRISMEGISTUS or ARCHIMEDES on the one hand,-----or of NYKY and SIMKIN on the other. How many CAESARS and POMPEYS, he would say, by mere inspiration of the names, have been rendered worthy of them? And how many, he would add, are there who might have done exceeding well in the world, had not their characters and spirits been totally depressed and NICODEMUSED into nothing.
I see plainly, Sir, by your looks (or as the case happened, my father would say),-----that you do not heartily subscribe to this opinion of mine,-----which to those, he would add, who have not carefully sifted it to the bottom,-----I own has an air more of fancy than of solid reasoning in it;---- and yet, my dear Sir, if I may presume to know your character, I am morally assured I should hazard little in stating a case to you,-----not as a party in the dispute,-----but as a judge, and trusting my appeal upon it to your own good sense and candid disquisition in this matter;-----you are a person free from as many narrow prejudices of education as most men;----and, if I may presume to penetrate further into you,----of a liberality of genius above bearing down an opinion, merely because it wants friends. Your son!----- your dear son,-----from whose sweet and open temper you have so much to expect.--Your BILLY Sir!-----would you, for the world, have called him JUDAS?-----Would you, my dear Sir, he would say, laying his hand upon your breast, with the genteelest address,-----and in that soft and irresistible piano of voice which the nature of the argumentum ad hominem absolutely requires,----Would you, Sir, if a Jew of a godfather had proposed the name for your child, and offered you his purse along with it, would you have consented to such a desecration of him?-----O my God! he would say, looking up, if I know your temper right, Sir,-----you are incapable of it;----you would have trampled upon the offer; ----you would have thrown the temptation at the tempter's head with abhorrence.
Your greatness of mind in this action, which I admire, with that generous contempt of money which you show me in the whole transaction, is really noble;-----and what renders it more so is the principle of it;----the workings of a parent's love upon the truth and conviction of this very hypothesis,
I never knew a man able to answer this argument.-----But, indeed, to speak of my father as he was,-----he was certainly irresistible, both in his orations and disputations;-----he was born an orator:-----<9Heod@'idakto@ts>9.-----Persuasion hung upon his lips, and the eIements of Logic and Rhetoric were so blended up in him,-----and, withal, he had so shrewd a guess at the weaknesses and passions of his respondent,-----that NATURE might have stood up and said,----``This man is eloquent.'' In short, whether he was on the weak or the strong side of the question, 'twas hazardous in either case to attack him:------And yet, 'tis strange, he had never read Cicero nor Quintilian de Oratore, nor Isocrates, nor Aristotle, nor Longinus amongst the ancients;------nor Vossius, nor Skioppius, nor Ramus, nor Farnaby amongst the moderns; -----and what is more astonishing, he had never in his whole life the least light or spark of subtilty struck into his mind, by one single lecture upon Crackenthorp or Burgersdicius, or any Dutch logician or commentator;----he knew not so much as in what the difference of an argument ad ignorantiam and an argument ad hominem consisted; so that I well remember, when he went up along with me to enter my name at Jesus College in ****,-----it was a matter of just wonder with my worthy tutor, and two or three fellows of that learned society,----that a man who knew not so much as the names of his tools should be able to work after that fashion with 'em.
To work with them in the best manner he could was what my father was, however, perpetually forced upon;-----for he had a thousand little sceptical notions of the comic kind to defend,-----most of which notions, I verily believe, at first entered upon the footing of mere whims, and of a vive la Bagatelle; and as such he would make merry with them for half an hour or so, and having sharpened his wit upon 'em, dismiss them till another day.
I mention this not only as matter of hypothesis or conjecture upon the progress and establishment of my father's many odd opinions,-----but as a warning to the learned reader against the indiscreet reception of such guests who. after a free and undisturbed entrance, for some years, into our brains,---at length claim a kind of settlement there,
Whether this was the case of the singularity of my father's notions,-----or that his judgment, at length, became the dupe of his wit;-----or how far, in many of his notions, he might, though odd, be absolutely right;-----the reader, as he comes at them, shall decide. All that I maintain here is that in this one, of the influence of Christian names, however it gained footing, he was serious;-----he was all uniformity;-----he was systematical, and, like all systematic reasoners, he would move both heaven and earth, and twist and torture everything in nature to support his hypothesis. In a word, I repeat it over again;-----he was serious;-----and, in consequence of it, he would lose all kind of patience whenever he saw people, especially of condition, who should have known better.-----as careless and as indifferent about the name they imposed upon their child,------or more so, than in the choice of Ponto or Cupid for their puppy dog.
This, he would say, looked ill;----and had, moreover, this particular aggravation in it, viz., That when once a vile name was wrongfully or injudiciously given, 'twas not like the case of a man's character, which, when wronged, might hereafter be cleared;-----and possibly, sometime or other, if not in the man's life, at least after his death,-----be, somehow or other, set to rights with the world: But the injury of this, he would say, could never be undone;-----nay, be doubted even whether an act of parliament could reach it:----He knew as well as you that the legislature assumed a power over surnames;-----but for very strong reasons, which he could give, it had never yet adventured, he would say, to go a step further.
It was observable that though my father, in consequence of this opinion, had, as I have told you, the strongest likings and dislikings towards certain names,-----that there were still numbers of names which hung so equally in the balance before him that they were absolutely indifferent to him. Jack, Dick, and Tom were of this class: These my father called neutral names;-----affirming of them without a satire, That there had been as many knaves and fools, at least, as wise and good men, since the world began, who had indifferently borne them;----so that, like equal forces acting against each other in contrary directions, he thought they mutually destroyed each other's effects; for which reason, he would often declare, He would not give a cherry stone to choose
But of all the names in the universe, he had the most unconquerable aversion for TRISTRAM;-----he had the lowest and most contemptible opinion of it of anything in the world,-----thinking it could possibly produce nothing, in rerum natura, but what was extremely mean and pitiful: So that in the midst of a dispute on the subject, in which, by the bye, he was frequently involved,-----he would sometimes break off in a sudden and spirited EPIPHONEMA, or rather EROTESIS, raised a third, and sometimes a full fifth, above the key of the discourse,-----and demand it categorically of his antagonist, Whether he would take upon him to say he had ever remembered,-----whether he had ever read,----or even whether he had ever heard tell of a man called Tristram performing anything great or worth recording?----- No-----, he would say.-----TRISTRAM!-----The thing is impossible.
What could be wanting in my father but to have wrote a book to publish this notion of his to the world? Little boots it to the subtle speculatist to stand single in his opinions,----- unless he gives them proper vent:-----It was the identical thing which my father did;-----for in the year Sixteen, which was two years before I was born, he was at the pains of writing an express DISSERTATION simply upon the word Tristram,-----showing the world, with great candour and modesty, the grounds of his great abhorrence to the name.
When this story is compared with the title page,-----Will not the gentle reader pity my father from his soul?-----to see an orderly and well-disposed gentleman who, though singular, -----yet inoffensive in his notions,-----so played upon in them by cross purposes;-----to look down upon the stage, and see him baffled and overthrown in all his little systems and wishes; to behold a train of events perpetually falling out against him, and in so critical and cruel a way as if they had purposedly been planned and pointed against him, merely to insult his speculations.----In a word, to behold such a one, in his old age, ill fitted for troubles, ten times in
I have imposed this penance upon the lady neither out of wantonness or cruelty, but from the best of motives; and therefore shall make her no apology for it when she returns back:----'Tis to rebuke a vicious taste which has crept into thousands besides herself,-----or reading straight forwards, more in quest of the adventures than of the deep erudition and knowledge which a book of this cast, if read over as it should be, would infallibly impart with them.----The mind should be accustomed to make wise reflections, and draw curious conclusions as it goes along; the habitude of which made Pliny the younger affirm,``That he never read a book so bad but he drew some profit from it.'' The stories of Greece and Rome, run over without this turn and application,--do less service, I affirm it, than the history of
--------But here comes my fair Lady. Have you read over again the chapter, Madam, as I desired you!-----You have: And did you not observe the passage, upon the second reading, which admits the inference?-----Not a word like it! Then, Madam, be pleased to ponder well the last line but one of the chapter, where I take upon me to say, ``It was nec- essary I should be born before I was christened.'' Had my mother, Madam, been a Papist, that consequence did not follow. *
It is a terrible misfortune for this same book of mine, but more so to the Republic of Lerters,-----so that my own is quite swallowed up in the consideration of it,-----that this selfsame vile pruriency for fresh adventures in all things has got so strongly into our habit and humours,----and so wholly intent are we upon satisfying the impatience of our concupiscence that way,-----that nothing but the gross and more carnal parts of a composition will go down:-----The subtle hints and sly communications of science fly off, like spirits, upwards;-----the heavy moral escapes downwards: and both the one and the other are as much lost to the world as if they were still left in the bottom of the inkhorn.
I wish the male reader has not passed by many a one as quaint and curious as this one in which the female reader has been detected. I wish it may have its effects;-----and that all good people, both male and female, from her example, may be taught to think as well as read.
* The Romish Rituals direct the baptizing of the child, in cases of danger, before it is born;----but upon this proviso, That some part or other of the child's body be seen by the baptizer.: -----But the Doctors of the Sorbonne, by a deliberation held amongst them, April 10, 1733,----have enlarged the powers of the midwives, by determining, That though no part of the child's body should appear,----that baptism shall, nevertheless, be administered to it by injection,----par le moyen d'une petire Canulle,----Anglic@`e a squirt.----'Tis very strange that St. Thomas Aquinas, who had so good a mechanical head, both for tying and untying the knots of school divinity,----should, after so much pains bestowed upon this,----give up the point at last as a second La chose impossible,----``Infantes in maternis uteris existentes (quoth St. Thomas) baptizari possunt nuilo modo.'' ----O Thomas! Thomas!
If the reader has the curiosity to see the question upon baptism by injection, as presented to the Doctors of the Sorbonne, with their consultation thereupon it is as follows.
REPONSE Le Conseil estime, que la question propos@'ee souffre de grandes difficult@'es. Les Th@'eologiens posent d'un c@^ot@'e pour principe, que le bapt@^eme, qui est une naissance spirituelle, suppose une premi@`ere naissance; il faut @^etre n@'e dans le monde, pour rena@^itre en Jesus Christ, comme ils l'enseignent. S. Thomas, 3 part, quaest. 68. artic. II. suit cette doctrine comme une verit@'e constante; l'on ne peut, dit ce S. Docteur, baptiser les enfans qui sont renferm@'es dans le sein de leurs M@`eres, et S. Thomas est fond@'e sur ce que les enfans ne sont point n@'es, & ne peuvent @^etre compt@'es parmi les autres hommes; d'o@`u il conclud, qu'ils ne peuvent @^etre l'object d'une action ext@'erieure, pour recevoir par leur minist@`ere, les sacremens n@'ecessaires au salut: Pueri in maternis uteris existentes nondum prodierunt in lucem ut cum aliis hominibus vitam ducant; unde non possunt subjici actioni humanae, ut per eorum ministerium sacramenta recipiant ad salutem. Les rituels ordonnent dans la pratique ce que les th@'eologiens ont @'etabli sur les m@^emes mati@`eres, & ils def- fendent tous d'une mani@`ere uniforme de baptiser les enfans qui sont renferm@'es dans le sein de leurs m@`eres, s'ils ne font paro@^itre quelque partie de leurs corps. Le concours des th@'eologiens, & des rituels, qui sont les r@`egles des dioc@`eses, paro@^it former une autorit@'e qui termine la question pr@'esente; cependant le conseil de conscience consid@'erant d'un c@^ote, que le raisonnement des th@'eologiens est uniquement fond@'e sur une raison de convenance, & que la deffense des rituels, suppose que l'on ne peut baptiser immediatement les enfans
* Vide Deventer, Paris edit., 4to, 1734, p. 366.
Deliber@'e en Sorbonne, le 10 Avril, 1733.
A. LE MOYNE,
L. DE ROMIGNY,
DE MARCILLY
Mr. Tristram Shandy's compliments to Messrs. Le Moyne,
De Romigny, and De Marcilly, hopes they all rested well the
night after so tiresome a consultation.-----He begs to know
whether, after the ceremony of marriage, and before that
of consummation, the baptizing all the HOMUNCULI at once,
slapdash, by injection, would not be a shorter and safer cut
still; on condition, as above, That if the HOMUNCULI do well
and come safe into the world after this, That each and every
of them shall be baptized again (sous condition.)-----And
provided, in the second place, That the thing can be done,
which Mr. Shandy apprehends it may, par le moyen d'une
petite canulle, and sans faire aucun tort au p@`ere.
I think, replied my uncle Toby, taking his pipe from his
mouth, and striking the head of it two or three times upon
the nail of his left thumb, as he began his sentence,----I
think, says he:-----But to enter rightly into my uncle Toby's
sentiments upon this matter, you must be made to enter
first a little into his character, the outlines of which I shall
just give you, and then the dialogue between him and my
father will go on as well again.
----Pray what was the man's name,----for I write in such
a hurry, I have no time to recollect or look for it,----who
first made the observation, ``That there was great inconstancy
in our air and climate''? Whoever he was, 'twas a just and
good observation in him.-----But the corollary drawn from
it, namely, ``That it is this which has furnished us with such
a variety of odd and whimsical characters,''-----that was not
his;-----it was found out by another man, at least a century
and a half after him:-----Then again,---that this copious
Thus,-----thus my fellow-labourers and associates in this great harvest of our learning, now ripening before our eyes; thus it is, by slow steps of casual increase, that our knowledge physical, metaphysical, physiological, polemical, nautical, mathematical, enigmatical, technical, biographical, romantical, chemical, and obstetrical, with fifty other branches of it (most of 'em ending, as these do, in ical), have, for these two last centuries and more, gradually been creeping upwards towards that <9Akm@`y>9 of their perfections, from which, if we may form a conjecture from the advances of these last seven years, we cannot possibly be far off.
When that happens, it is to be hoped, it will put an end to all kind of writings whatsoever;----the want of all kind of writing will put an end to all kind of reading;-----and that in time, As war begets poverty, poverty peace,--must, in course, put an end to all kind of knowledge,----and then -----we shall have all to begin over again; or, in other words, be exactly where we started.
------Happy! thrice happy Times! I only wish that the era of my begetting, as well as the mode and manner of it, had been a little altered,----or that it could have been put off with any convenience to my father or mother, for some twenty or five-and-twenty years longer, when a man in the literary world might have stood some chance.--
But I forget my uncle Toby, whom all this while we have left knocking the ashes out of his tobacco pipe.
His humour was of that particular species which does honour
It will seem very strange,----- and I would as soon think of dropping a riddle in the reader's way, which is not my interest to do, as set him upon guessing how it could come to pass that an event of this kind, so many years after it had happened, should be reserved for the interruption of the peace and unity, which otherwise so cordially subsisted, between my father and my uncle Toby. One would have thought that the whole force of the misfortune should have spent and wasted itself in the family at first,-----as is generally the case:-----But nothing ever wrought with our family after the ordinary way. Possibly at the very time this happened, it might have something else to afflict it; and as afflictions are sent down for our good, and that as this had never done the SHANDY FAMILY any good at all, it might lie waiting till apt times and circumstances should give it an opportunity to discharge its office.-----Observe, I determine nothing upon this.-----My way is ever to point out to the curious, different tracts of investigation, to come at the first springs of the events I tell;-----not with a pedantic Fescue,------or in the decisive Manner of Tacitus, who outwits himself and his reader;--but with the officious humility of a heart devoted to the assistance merely of the inquisitive;----to them I write,------and by them I shall be read,-----if any such reading as this could be supposed to hold out so long, to the very end of the world.
Why this cause of sorrow, therefore, was thus reserved for my father and uncle is undetermined by me. But how and in what direction it exerted itself, so as to become the cause
My uncle TOBY SHANDY, Madam, was a gentleman who, with the virtues which usually constitute the character of a man of honour and rectitude,------possessed one in a very eminent degree which is seldom or never put into the catalogue; and that was a most extreme and unparalleled modesty of nature;------though I correct the word nature, for this reason, that I may not prejudge a point which must shortly come to a hearing; and that is, Whether this modesty of his was natural or acquired.-----Whichever way my uncle Toby came by it, 'twas nevertheless modesty in the truest sense of it; and that is, Madam, not in regard to words, for he was so unhappy as to have very little choice in them,-----but to things;------and this kind of modesty so possessed him, and it arose to such a height in him, as almost to equal, if such a thing could be, even the modesty of a woman: That female nicety, Madam, and inward cleanliness of mind and fancy in your sex which makes you so much the awe of ours.
You will imagine, Madam, that my uncle Toby had contracted all this from this very source;-----that he had spent a great part of his time in converse with your sex; and that, from a thorough knowledge of you, and the force of imitation which such fair examples render irresistible,----he had acquired this amiable turn of mind.
I wish I could say so,------for unless it was with his sister-in-law, my father's wife and my mother,-----my uncle Toby scarce exchanged three words with the sex in as many years;----no, he got it, Madam, by a blow.------A blow!----- Yes, Madam, it was owing to a blow from a stone, broke off by a ball from the parapet of a hornwork at the siege of Namur, which struck full upon my uncle Toby's groin.-- Which way could that effect it? The story of that, Madam, is long and interesting;-----but it would be running my history all upon heaps to give it you here.-----'Tis for an episode hereafter; and every circumstance relating to it in its proper place, shall be faithfully laid before you:-----Till then, it is not in my power to give further light into this matter, or say more than what I have said already,-----That my uncle Toby was a gentleman of unparalleled modesty, which happening to be somewhat subtilized and rarefied by the constant heat of a little family pride,-----they both so wrought together within him that he could never bear to hear the affair of my aunt DINAH touched upon, but with
My father, I believe, had the truest love and tenderness for my uncle Toby that ever one brother bore towards another, and would have done anything in nature, which one brother in reason could have desired of another, to have made my uncle Toby's heart easy in this, or any other point. But this lay out of his power.
------My father, as I told you, was a philosopher in grain, -----speculative,-----systematical;-----and my aunt Dinah's affair was a matter of as much consequence to him as the retrogradation of the planets to Copernicus:----The backslidings of Venus in her orbit fortified the Copernican system, called so after his name; and the backslidings of my aunt Dinah in her orbit did the same service in establishing my father's system, which, I trust will forever hereafter be called the Shandean System, after his.
In any other family dishonour, my father, I believe, had as nice a sense of shame as any man whatever;--and neither he nor, I dare say, Copernicus, would have divulged the affair in either case, or have taken the least notice of it to the world, but for the obligations they owed as they thought, to truth.-----Amicus Plato, my father would say, construing the words to my uncle Toby, as he went along, Amicus Plato; that is, DINAH was my aunt;-----sed magis amica veritas-----but TRUTH is my sister.
This contrariety of humours betwixt my father and my uncle was the source of many a fraternal squabble. The one could not bear to hear the tale of family disgrace recorded, ----and the other would scarce ever let a day pass to an end without some hint at it.
For God's sake, my uncle Toby would cry,-----and for my sake, and for all our sakes, my dear brother Shandy,----do let this story of our aunt's and her ashes sleep in peace;---- how can you,----how can you have so little feeling and compassion for the character of our family:-----what is the character of a family to an hypothesis? my father would
My uncle Toby would never offer to answer this by any other kind of argument than that of whistling half a dozen bars of Lillabullero.-You must know it was the usual channel through which his passions got vent, when anything shocked or surprised him;-but especially when anything which he deemed very absurd was offered.
As not one of our logical writers, nor any of the commentators upon them, that I remember, have thought proper to give a name to this particular species of argument,-----I here take the liberty to do it myself, for two reasons. First, That, in order to prevent all confusion in disputes, it may stand as much distinguished forever from every other species of argument,----as the Argumentum ad Verecundiam, ex Absurdo, ex Fortiori, or any other argument whatsoever:---And, secondly, That it may be said by my children's children, when my head is laid to rest,-that their learned grandfather's head had been busied to as much purpose, once, as other people's:-That he had invented a name,-and generously thrown it into the TREASURY of the Ars Logica, for one of the most unanswerable arguments in the whole science: And if the end of disputation is more to silence than convince,-they may add, if they please, to one of the best arguments too.
I do therefore, by these presents, strictly order and command, That it be known and distinguished by the name and title of the Argumentum Fistulatorium, and no other;--- and that it rank hereafter with the Argumentum Baculinum, and the Argumentum ad Crumenam, and forever hereafter be treated of in the same chapter.
As for the Argumentum Tripodium, which is never used but by the woman against the man;-and the Argumentum ad Rem, which, contrariwise, is made use of by the man only
And yet, on the other hand, when a thing is executed in a masterly kind of a fashion, which thing is not likely to be found out;---I think it is full as abominable that a man should lose the honour of it, and go out of the world with the conceit of it rotting in his head.
This is precisely my situation:
For in this long digression which I was accidentally led into, as in all my digressions (one only excepted), there is a master stroke of digressive skill the merit of which has all along, I fear, been overlooked by my reader,------not for want of penetration in him,------but because 'tis an excellence seldom looked for, or expected, indeed, in a digression;------ and it is this: That though my digressions are all fair, as you observe,------and that I fly off from what I am about, as far and as often too as any writer in Great Britain; yet I constantly take care to order affairs so, that my main business does not stand still in my absence:
I was just going, for example, to have given you the great outlines of my uncle Toby's most whimsical character,------ when my aunt Dinah and the coachman came across us, and led us a vagary some millions of miles into the very heart of the planetary system: Notwithstanding all this you perceive that the drawing of my uncle Toby's character went on gently all the time;---not the great contours of it,-----that was impossible,------but some familiar strokes and faint designations of it were here and there touched in, as we went
By this contrivance the machinery of my work is of a species by itself; two contrary motions are introduced into it, and reconciled, which were thought to be at variance with each other. In a word, my work is digressive, and it is progressive too,---and at the same time.
This, Sir, is a very different story from that of the earth's moving round her axis in her diurnal rotation, with her progress in her elliptic orbit which brings about the year, and constitutes that variety and vicissitude of seasons we enjoy; ------though I own it suggested the thought,------as I believe the greatest of our boasted improvements and discoveries have come from some such trifling hints:
Digressions, incontestably, are the sunshine;---they are the life, the soul of reading;------take them out of this book, for instance,---you might as well take the book along with them;------one cold eternal winter would reign in every page of it; restore them to the writer,------he steps forth like a bridegroom,---bids All hail, brings in variety, and forbids the appetite to fail.
All the dexterity is in the good cookery and management of them, so as to be not only for the advantage of the reader, but also of the author, whose distress, in this matter, is truly pitiable: For if he begins a digression,---from that moment, I observe, his whole work stands stock still;--- and if he goes on with his main work,---then there is an end of his digression.
-----This is vile work.---For which reason, from the
beginning of this, you see, I have constructed the main work and
the adventitious parts of it with such intersections, and have
so complicated and involved the digressive and progressive
movements, one wheel within another, that the whole
machine, in general, has been kept a-going;---and, what's more,
it shall be kept a-going these forty years, if it pleases the
fountain of health to bless me so long with life and good spirits.
If the fixture of Momus's glass in the human breast, according to the proposed emendation of that archcritic, had taken place,------first, This foolish consequence would certainly have followed,---That the very wisest and the very gravest of us all, in one coin or other, must have paid window money every day of OUR lives.
And, secondly, That had the said glass been there set up, nothing more would have been wanting, in order to have taken a man's character, but to have taken a chair and gone softly, as you would to a dioptrical beehive, and looked in, ------viewed the soul stark naked;------observed all her motions,------her machinations;------traced all her maggots from their first engendering to their crawling forth;------watched her loose in her frisks, her gambols, her capriccios; and after some notice of her more solemn deportment, consequent upon such frisks, &c.---then taken your pen and ink and set down nothing but what you had seen, and could have sworn to:---But this is an advantage not to be had by the biographer in this planet;---in the planet Mercury (belike) it may be so, if not better still for him;---for there the intense heat of the country, which is proved by computators, from its vicinity to the sun, to be more than equal to that of red-hot iron,---must, I think, long ago have vitrified the bodies of the inhabitants (as the efficient cause) to suit them for the climate (which is the final cause); so that, betwixt them both, all the tenements of their souls from top to bottom, may be nothing else, for aught the soundest philosophy can show to the contrary, but one fine transparent body of clear glass (bating the umbilical knot);------so that, till the inhabitants grow old and tolerably wrinkled, whereby the rays of light, in passing through them, become so monstrously refracted,---or return reflected from their surfaces in such transverse lines to the eye, that a man cannot be seen through;---his soul might as well, unless for mere ceremony,------or the trifling advantage which the umbilical point gave her,------might, upon all other accounts, I say, as well play the fool out o' doors as in her own house.
But this, as I said above, is not the case of the inhabitants of this earth;------our minds shine not through the body, but are wrapt up here in a dark covering of uncrystallized flesh and blood; so that if we would come to the specific characters of them, we must go some other way to work.
Many, in good truth, are the ways which human wit has been forced to take to do this thing with exactness:
Some, for instance, draw all their characters with wind
There are others, again, who will draw a man's character from no other helps in the world but merely from his evacuations;---but this often gives a very incorrect outline,------ unless, indeed, you take a sketch of his repletions too; and by correcting one drawing from the other, compound one good figure out of them both:
I should have no objection to this method, but that I think it must smell too strong of the lamp,-and be rendered still more operose by forcing you to have an eye to the rest of his Non-Naturals:------Why the most natural actions of a man's life should be called his Non-Naturals------is another question.
There are others, fourthly, who disdain every one of these expedients;------not from any fertility of their own, but from the various ways of doing it, which they have borrowed from the honourable devices which the Pentagraphic Brethren * of the brush have shown in taking copies.-These, you must know, are your great historians.
One of these you will see drawing a full-length character against the light,:---that's illiberal,------dishonest,---and hard upon the character of the man who sits:
Others, to mend the matter, will make a drawing of you in the Camera,--that is most unfair of all,-because there you are sure to be represented in some of your most ridiculous attitudes.
To avoid all and every one of these errors, in giving you my uncle Toby's character, I am determined to draw it by no mechanical help whatever;---nor shall my pencil be guided by any one wind instrument which ever was blown upon, either on this or on the other side of the Alps;---nor will I
* pentagraph, an instrument to copy prints and pictures mechanically, and in any proportion.
A man and his HOBBY-HORSE, though I cannot say that they act and react exactly after the same manner in which the soul and body do upon each other: Yet doubtless there is a communication between them of some kind, and my opinion rather is that there is something in it more of the manner of electrified bodies,------and that by means of the heated parts of the rider, which come immediately into contact with the back of the HOBBY-HORSE.---By long journeys and much friction, it so happens that the body of the rider is at length filled as full of HOBBY-HORSICAL matter as it can hold; ------so that if you are able to give but a clear description of the nature of the one, you may form a pretty exact notion of the genius and character of the other.
Now the HOBBY-HORSE which my uncle Toby always rode upon was, in my opinion, an HOBBY-HORSE well worth giving a description of, if it was only upon the score of his great singularity; for you might have travelled from York to Dover, ------from Dover to Penzance in Cornwall, and from Penzance to York back again, and not have seen such another upon the road; or if you had seen such a one, whatever haste you had been in, you must infallibly have stopped to have taken a view of him. Indeed, the gait and figure of him was so strange, and so utterly unlike was he, from his head to his tail, to any one of the whole species, that it was now and then made a matter of dispute,------whether he was really a HOBBY-HORSE or no: But as the Philosopher would use no other argument to the sceptic who disputed with him against the reality of motion, save that of rising up upon his legs, and walking across the room;---so would my uncle Toby use no other argument to prove his HOBBY-HORSE was a
In good truth, my uncle Toby mounted him with so much pleasure, and he carried my uncle Toby so well,-----that he troubled his head very little with what the world either said or thought about it.
It is now high time, however, that I give you a description
of him:-----But to go on regularly, I only beg you will give
me leave to acquaint you first how my uncle Toby came by
him.
He was four years totally confined,------part of it to his bed,
and all of it to his room; and in the course of his cure,
which was all that time in hand, suffered unspeakable
miseries,-----owing to a succession of exfoliations from the os
pubis, and the outward edge of that part of the coxendix
called the os ilium,----both which bones were dismally
crushed, as much by the irregularity of the stone, which I
told you was broke off the parapet,-----as by its size----
(though it was pretty large) which inclined the surgeon all
along to think that the great injury which it had done my
uncle Toby's groin was more owing to the gravity of the
stone itself than to the projectile force of it,------which he
would often tell him was a great happiness.
My father at that time was just beginning business in
London, and had taken a house;----and as the truest friendship
and cordiality subsisted between the two brothers,----and
that my father thought my uncle Toby could nowhere be so
well nursed and taken care of as in his own house,-----he
assigned him the very best apartment in it.-----And what
was a much more sincere mark of his affection still, he would
never suffer a friend or an acquaintance to step into the
house on any occasion, but he would take him by the hand,
The history of a soldier's wound beguiles the pain of it; ----my uncle's visitors at least thought so, and in their daily calls upon him, from the courtesy arising out of that belief, they would frequently turn the discourse to that subject,---- and from that subject the discourse would generally roll on to the siege itself.
These conversations were infinitely kind; and my uncle Toby received great relief from them, and would have received much more, but that they brought him into some unforeseen perplexities, which, for three months together, retarded his cure greatly; and if he had not hit upon an expedient to extricate himself out of them, I verily believe they would have laid him in his grave.
What these perplexities of my uncle Toby were-----'tis impossible for you to guess;-----if you could,-----I should blush; not as a relation,-----not as a man,----nor even as a woman,-----but I should blush as an author; inasmuch as I set no small store by myself upon this very account, that my reader has never yet been able to guess at anything. And in this, Sir, I am of so nice and singular a humour that if I thought you was able to form the least judgment or probable conjecture to yourself of what was to come in the next page,--I would tear it out of my book.
I must remind the reader, in case he has read the history of King William's wars,-----but if he has not,------I then inform him that one of the most memorable attacks in that seige was that which was made by the English and Dutch upon the point of the advanced counterscarp before the gate of St. Nicolas, which inclosed the great sluice or water stop where the English were terribly exposed to the shot of the counterguard and demibastion of St. Roch: The issue of which hot dispute, in three words, was this, That the Dutch lodged themselves upon the counterguard,-----and that the English made themselves masters of the covered way before St. Nicolas's gate, notwithstanding the gallantry of the French officers, who exposed themselves upon the glacis, sword in hand.
As this was the principal attack of which my uncle Toby was an eyewitness at Namur,-----the army of the besiegers being cut off, by the confluence of the Maas and Sambre, from seeing much of each other's operations,-----my uncle Toby was generally more eloquent and particular in his account of it; and the many perplexities he was in arose out of the almost insurmountable difficulties he found in telling his story intelligibly, and giving such clear ideas of the differences and distinctions between the scarp and counterscarp,
Writers themselves are too apt to confound these terms; ------so that you will the less wonder if in his endeavours to explain them, and in opposition to many misconceptions, that my uncle Toby did ofttimes puzzle his visitors, and sometimes himself too.
To speak the truth, unless the company my father led upstairs were tolerably clearheaded, or my uncle Toby was in one of his best explanatory moods, 'twas a difficult thing, do what he could, to keep the discourse free from obscurity.
What rendered the account of this affair the more intricate to my uncle Toby was this,-----that in the attack of the counterscarp before the gate of St. Nicolas, extending itself from the bank of the Maas quite up to the great water stop,----- the ground was cut and cross-cut with such a multitude of dykes, drains, rivulets, and sluices, on all sides,----and he would get so sadly bewildered and set fast amongst them, that frequently he could neither get backwards or forwards to save his life; and was ofttimes obliged to give up the attack upon that very account only.
These perplexing rebuffs gave my uncle Toby Shandy more perturbations than you would imagine; and as my father's kindness to him was continually dragging up fresh friends and fresh inquirers,-----he had but a very uneasy task of it.
No doubt my uncle Toby had great command of himself, ------and could guard appearances, I believe, as well as most men;-----yet anyone may imagine that when he could not retreat out of the ravelin without getting into the halfmoon, or get out of the covered way without falling down the counterscarp, nor cross the dyke without danger of slipping into the ditch, but that he must have fretted and fumed inwardly:------He did so;-----and these little and hourly vexations, which may seem trifling and of no account to the man who has not read Hippocrates, yet, whoever has read Hippocrates, or Dr. James Mackenzie, and has considered well the effects which the passions and affections of the mind have upon the digestion-----(Why not of a wound as well as of a dinner?)-----may easily conceive what sharp paroxysms and exacerbations of his wound my uncle Toby must have under-gone upon that score only.
----My uncle Toby could not philosophize upon it;----- 'twas enough he felt it was so,----and having sustained the
He was one morning lying upon his back in his bed, the anguish and nature of the wound upon his groin suffering him to lie in no other position, when a thought came into his head that if he could purchase such a thing, and have it pasted down upon a board, as a large map of the fortifications of the town and citadel of Namur, with its environs, it might be a means of giving him ease.-----I take notice of his desire to have the environs along with the town and citadel for this reason,-----because my uncle Toby's wound was got in one of the traverses, about thirty toises from the returning angle of the trench, opposite to the salient angle of the demibastion of St. Roch;----so that he was pretty confident he could stick a pin upon the identical spot of ground where he was standing in when the stone struck him.
All this succeeded to his wishes, and not only freed him
from a world of sad explanations, but, in the end, it proved
the happy means, as you will read, of procuring my uncle
Toby his HOBBY-HORSE.
-----I guard against both; for, in the first place, I have
left half a dozen places purposely open for them;---and, in
the next place, I pay them all court,-----Gentlemen, I kiss
your hands,------I protest no company could give me half
the pleasure,-----by my soul I am glad to see you,------I
beg only you will make no strangers of yourselves, but sit
dowa without any ceremony, and fall on heartily.
I said I had left six places, and I was upon the point of
----How, in the name of wonder! could your uncle Toby. who, it seems, was a military man, and whom you have represented as no fool,-----be at the same time such a confused, puddingheaded, muddleheaded fellow as-----Go look.
So, Sir Critic, I could have replied; but I scorn it.-----'Tis language unurbane,-----and only befitting the man who cannot give clear and satisfactory accounts of things, or dive deep enough into the first causes of human ignorance and confusion. It is moreover the reply valiant,-----and therefore I reject it; for though it might have suited my uncle Toby's character as a soldier excellently well,----and had he not accustomed himself, in such attacks, to whistle the Lillabullero,-----as he wanted no courage, 'tis the very answer he would have given; yet it would by no means have done for me. You see as plain as can be that I write as a man of erudition;----that even my similes, my allusions, my illustrations, my metaphors, are erudite,-----and that I must sustain my character properly, and contrast it properly too,------else what would become of me? Why, Sir, I should be undone;-----at this very moment that I am going here to fill up one place against a critic,------I should have made an opening for a couple.
------Therefore I answer thus:
Pray, Sir, in all the reading which you have ever read, did you ever read such a book as Locke's Essay upon the Human Understanding?-----Don't answer me rashly,----because many, I know, quote the book who have not read it,-----and many have read it who understand it not:----If either of these is your case, as I write to instruct, I will tell you in three words what the book is.----It is a history.-----A history! of who? what? where? when? Don't hurry yourself. -----It is a history book, Sir (which may possibly recommend it to the world), of what passes in a man's own mind; and if you will say so much of the book, and no more, believe me, you will cut no contemptible figure in a metaphysic circle.
But this by the way.
Now if you will venture to go along with me, and look down into the bottom of this matter, it will be found that the
Dull organs, dear Sir, in the first place. Secondly, slight and transient impressions made by objects when the said organs are not dull. And, thirdly, a memory like unto a sieve, not able to retain what it has received.-----Call down Dolly, your chambermaid, and I will give you my cap and bell along with it, if I make not this matter so plain that Dolly herself shall understand it as well as Malebranche.---- when Dolly has indited her epistle to Robin and has thrust her arm into the bottom of her pocket hanging by her right side;----take that opportunity to recollect that the organs and faculties of perception can by nothing in this world be so aptly typified and explained as by that one thing which Dolly's hand is in search of.-----Your organs are not so dull that I should inform you,-----'tis an inch, Sir, of red seal wax.
When this is melted and dropped upon the letter, if Dolly fumbles too long for her thimble, till the wax is overhardened, it will not receive the mark of her thimble from the usual impulse which was wont to imprint it. Very well: If Dolly's wax, for want of better, is beeswax, or of a temper too soft,----though it may receive,----it will not hold the impression, how hard soever Dolly thrusts against it; and last of all supposing the wax good, and eke the thimble, but applied thereto in careless haste, as her mistress rings the bell;----in any one of these three cases, the print left by the thimble will be as unlike the prototype as a brass jack.
Now you must understand that not one of these was the true cause of the confusion in my uncle Toby's discourse; and it is for that very reason I enlarge upon them so long, after the manner of great physiologists,-----to show the world what it did not arise from.
What it did arise from I have hinted above, and a fertile source of obscurity it is,------and ever will be,----and that is the unsteady uses of words which have perplexed the clearest and most exalted understandings.
It is ten to one (at Arthur's) whether you have ever read the literary histories of past ages;----if you have,----what terrible battles, y-clept logomachies, have they occasioned and perpetuated with so much gall and inkshed,------that a good-natured man cannot read the accounts of them without tears in his eyes.
Gentle critic! when thou hast weighed all this, and considered within thyself how much of thy own knowledge,
In a fortnight's close and painful application, which, by the bye, did my uncle Toby's wound upon his groin no good, ----he was enabled by the help of some marginal documents at the feet of the elephant, together with Gobesius's military architecture and pyroballogy, translated from the Flemish, to form his discourse with passable perspicuity; and before he was two full months gone,-----he was right eloquent upon it, and could make not only the attack of the advanced counterscarp with great order;-----but having, by that time, gone much deeper into the art than what his first motive made necessary,-----my uncle Toby was able to cross the Maas and Sambre; make diversions as far as Vauban's line, the abbey of Salsines, &c., and give his visitors as distinct a history of each of their attacks as of that of the gate of St. Nicholas, where he had the honour to receive his wound.
But the desire of knowledge, like the thirst of riches, increases ever with the acquisition of it. The more my uncle Toby pored over his map, the more he took a liking to it; ----by the same process and electrical assimilation, as I told you, through which I ween the souls of connoisseurs themselves, by long friction and incumbition, have the happiness, at length, to get all bevirtued,-----bepictured,----bebutterflied, and befiddled.
The more my uncle Toby drank of this sweet fountain of science, the greater was the heat and impatience of his thirst, so that, before the first year of his confinement had well gone round, there was scarce a fortified town in Italy or Flanders of which, by one means or other, he had not procured a plan, reading over as he got them, and carefully collating therewith the histories of their sieges, their demolitions, their improvements, and new works, all which he would read with that intense application and delight, that he would forget himself, his wound his confinement, his dinner.
In the second year my uncle Toby purchased Ramelli and Cataneo, translated from the Italian;-----likewise Stevinus, Marolis, the Chevalier de Ville, Lorini, Coehorn, Sheeter, the Count de Pagan, the Marshal Vauban, Mons. Blondel, with almost as many more books of military architecture as Don Quixote was found to have of chivalry, when the curate and barber invaded his library.
Towards the beginning of the third year, which was in August, Ninety-nine, my uncle Toby found it necessary to understand a little of projectiles:-----And having judged it best to draw his knowledge from the fountainhead, he began with N. Tartaglia, who it seems was the first man who detected the imposition of a cannon ball's doing all that mischief under the notion of a right line.-----This N. Tartaglia proved to my uncle Toby to be an impossible thing.
------Endless is the Search of Truth!
No sooner was my uncle Toby satisfied which road the cannon ball did not go, but he was insensibly led on, and resolved in his mind to enquire and find out which road the ball did go: for which purpose he was obliged to set off afresh with old Maltus, and studied him devoutly.----He proceeded next to Galileo and Torricellius, wherein, by certain geometrical rules, infallibly laid down, he found the precise path to be a PARABOLA,-----or else an HYPERBOLA,----- and that the parameter, or latus rectum, of the conic section of the said path was to the quantity and amplitude in a direct ratio as the whole line to the sine of double the angle of
----Writers of my stamp have one principle in common with painters.-----Where an exact copying makes our pictures less striking, we choose the less evil; deeming it even more pardonable to trespass against truth than beauty.------This is to be understood cum grano salis; but be it as it will,-----as the parallel is made more for the sake of letting the apostrophe cool than anything else,-----'tis not very material whether upon any other score the reader approves of it or not.
In the latter end of the third year, my uncle Toby perceiving that the parameter and semiparameter of the conic section angered his wound, he left off the study of projectiles in a kind of a huff, and betook himself to the practical part of fortification only; the pleasure of which, like a spring held back, returned upon him with redoubled force.
It was in this year that my uncle began to break in upon the daily regularity of a clean shirt,-----to dismiss his barber unshaven,------and to allow his surgeon scarce time sufficient to dress his wound, concerning himself so little about it as not to ask him once in seven times' dressing how it went on: When, lo!-----all of a sudden, for the change was as quick as lightning, he began to sigh heavily for his recovery,----complained to my father, grew impatient with the surgeon;----and one morning as he heard his foot coming upstairs, he shut up his books, and thrust aside his instruments, in order to expostulate with him upon the protraction of his cure, which, he told him, might surely have been accomplished at least by that time:----He dwelt long upon the miseries he had undergone, and the sorrows of his four years' melancholy imprisonment;-----adding that had it not been for the kind looks and fraternal cheerings of the best of brothers,-----he had long since sunk under his misfortunes.----My father was by: My uncle Toby's eloquence brought tears into his eyes;-----'twas unexpected.-----My uncle Toby, by nature, was not eloquent;----it had the greater effect.-----The surgeon was confounded;----not that there wanted grounds for such, or greater, marks of impatience,----but 'twas unexpected too; in the four years he had attended him, he had never seen anything like it in my uncle Toby's carriage; he had never once dropped one fretful or discontented word;----he had been all patience,---- all submission.
----We lose the right of complaining sometimes by forbearing it;----but we oftener treble the force:-----The surgeon was astonished;------but much more so when he heard my uncle Toby go on and peremptorily insist upon his healing up the wound directly,-----or sending for Monsieur Ronjat, the king's serjeant-surgeon, to do it for him.
The desire of life and health is implanted in man's nature;----the love of liberty and enlargement is a sister passion to it: These my uncle Toby had in common with his species;----and either of them had been sufficient to account for his earnest desire to get well and out of doors;----but I have told you before that nothing wrought with our family after the common way;-----and from the time and manner in which this eager desire showed itself in the present case, the penetrating reader will suspect there was some other cause or crotchet for it in my uncle Toby's head:-----There was so, and 'tis the subject of the next chapter to set forth what that cause and crotchet was. I own, when that's done,
My uncle Toby's wound was near well, and as soon as the surgeon recovered his surprise, and could get leave to say as much-----he told him 'twas just beginning to incarnate; and that if no fresh exfoliation happened, which there was no signs of,-----it would be dried up in five or six weeks. The sound of as many olympiads twelve hours before would have conveyed an idea of shorter duration to my uncle Toby's mind.-----The succession of his ideas was now rapid; -----he broiled with impatience to put his design in execution;------and so, without consulting further with any soul living,-----which, by the bye, I think is right when you are predetermined to take no one soul's advice,----he privately ordered Trim, his man, to pack up a bundle of lint and dressings, and hire a chariot and four to be at the door exactly by twelve o'clock that day, when he knew my father would be upon 'Change.----So leaving a banknote upon the table for the surgeon's care of him, and a letter of tender thanks for his brother's,-----he packed up his maps, his books of fortification, his instruments, &c.------and, by the help of a crutch on one side, and Trim on the other,------ my uncle Toby embarked for Shandy Hall.
The reason, or rather the rise, of mis sudden demigration was as follows:
The table in my uncle Toby's room, and at which, the night before this change happened, he was sitting with his maps, &c., about him,-----being somewhat of the smallest, for that infinity of great and small instruments of knowledge which usually lay crowded upon it,------he had the accident, in reaching over for his tobacco box, to throw down his compasses, and in stooping to take the compasses up, with his sleeve he threw down his case of instruments and snuffers;-----and as the dice took a run against him, in his
'Twas to no purpose for a man lame as my uncle Toby was to think of redressing all these evils by himself;----he rung his bell for his man Trim;-----Trim! quoth my uncle Toby, prithee see what confusion I have here been making. -----I must have some better contrivance, Trim.----Canst not thou take my rule and measure the length and breadth of this table, and then go and bespeak me one as big again? ----Yes, an' please your Honour, replied Trim, making a bow;-----but I hope your Honour will be soon well enough to get down to your country seat, where,------as your Honour takes so much pleasure in fortification, we could manage this mater to a T.
I must here inform you that this servant of my uncle Toby's, who went by the name of Trim, had been a corporal in my uncle's own company,--his real name was James Butler,----but having got the nickname of Trim in the regiment, my uncle Toby, unless when he happened to be very angry with him, would never call him by any other name.
The poor fellow had been disabled for the service by a wound on his left knee by a musket bullet, at the battle of Landen, which was two years before the affair of Namur;---- and as the fellow was well beloved in the regiment, and a handy fellow into the bargain, my uncle Toby took him for his servant, and of excellent use was he, attending my uncle Toby in the camp and in his quarters as valet, groom, barber, cook, seamster, and nurse; and indeed, from first to last, waited upon him and served him with great fidelity and affection.
My uncle Toby loved the man in return, and what attached him more to him still was the similitude of their knowledge:-----For Corporal Trim (for so, for the future, I shall call him), by four years' occasional attention to his master's discourse upon fortified towns, and the advantage of prying and peeping continually into his master's plans, &c., exclusive and besides what he gained HOBBY-HORSICALLY, as a body servant, Non-Hobby-Horsical per se,------had become no mean proficient in the science; and was thought, by the cook and chambermaid, to know as much of the nature of strongholds as my uncle Toby himself.
I have but one more stroke to give to finish Corporal Trim's character,-----and it is the only dark line in it.---- The fellow loved to advise,----or rather to hear himself
If I durst presume, continued Trim, to give your Honour my advice, and speak my opinion in this matter.---- Thou art welcome, Trim quoth my uncle Toby,-----speak, -----speak what thou thinkst upon the subject, man, without fear. Why then, replied Trim (not hanging his ears and scratching his head like a country lout, but) stroking his hair back from his forehead, and standing erect as before his division.------I think, quoth Trim, advancing his left, which was his lame leg, a little forwards,----and pointing with his right hand open towards a map of Dunkirk, which was pinned against the hangings,-----I think, quoth Corporal Trim, with humble submission to your Honour's better judgment,-----that these ravelins, bastions, curtains, and hornworks make but a poor, contemptible, fiddle-faddle piece of work of it here upon paper, compared to what your Honour arid I could make of it, were we in the country by ourselves, and had but a rood, or a rood and a half of ground to do what we pleased with. As summer is coming on, continued Trim, your Honour might sit out of doors, and give me the nography-----(call it ichriography, quoth my uncle)------of the town or citadel your Honour was pleased to sit down before,-----and I will be shot by your Honour upon the glacis of it, if I did not fortify it to your Honour's mind.-----I dare say thou wouldst, Trim, quoth my uncle. ------For if your Honour, continued the corporal, could but mark me the polygon, with its exact lines and angles.----- That I could do very well, quoth my uncle.-----I would begin with the fosse, arid if your Honour could tell me the proper depth and breadth,-----I can to a hairsbreadth, Trim, replied my uncle,-----I would throw out the earth upon this hand towards the town for the scarp,-----and on that hand towards the campaign for the counterscarp.-- Very right, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby.---And when I had
Your Honour understands these matters, replied Corporal Trim, better than any officer in his Majesty's service;-----but would your Honour please to let the bespeaking of the table alone, and let us but go into the country, I would work under your Honour's directions like a horse, and make fortifications for you something like a tansy, with all their batteries, saps, ditches, and palisadoes, that it should be worth all the world's riding twenty miles to go and see it.
My uncle Toby blushed as red as scarlet as Trim went on; ----but it was not a blush of guilt,-----of modesty,----or of anger;-----it was a blush of joy;----he was fired with Corporal Trim's project and description.------Trim! said my uncle Toby, thou hast said enough.------we might begin the campaign, continued Trim, on the very day that his Majesty and the Allies take the field, and demolish them town by town as fast as----Trim, quoth my uncle Toby, say no more. ----Your Honour, continued Trim might sit in your armchair (pointing to it) this fine weather, giving me your orders, and I would-----Say no more, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby. ----Besides, your Honour would get not only pleasure and good pastime,-----but good air, and good exercise, and good health,-----and your Honour's wound would be well in a month. Thou hast said enough, Trim,------quoth my uncle Toby (putting his hand into his breeches pocket)----I like thy project mightily;-----And if your Honour pleases, I'll this moment go and buy a pioneer's spade to take down with us, and I'll bespeak a shovel and a pickaxe, and a couple of---- Say no more, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby, leaping up upon one leg, quite overcome with rapture,------and thrusting a guinea into Trim's hand;-----Trim, said my uncle Toby, say no more; ----but go down, Trim, this moment, my lad, and bring up my supper this instant.
Trim ran down and brought up his master's supper,-----to
My uncle Toby had a little neat country house of his own in the village where my father's estate lay at Shandy, which had been left him by an old uncle, with a small estate of about one hundred pounds a year. Behind this house, and contiguous to it, was a kitchen garden of about half an acre;-----and at the bottom of the garden, and cut off from it by a tall yew hedge, was a bowling green, containing just about as much ground as Corporal Trim wished for;-----so that as Trim uttered the words, ``A rood and a half of ground to do what they would with:''----this identical bowling green instantly presented itself, and became curiously painted, all at once, upon the retina of my uncle Toby's fancy;---which was the physical cause of making him change colour, or at least of heightening his blush to that immoderate degree I spoke of.
Never did lover Post down to a beloved mistress with more heat and expectation than my uncle Toby did to enjoy this selfsame thing in private;----I say in private;-----for it was sheltered from a house, as I told you, by a tall yew hedge, and was covered on the other three sides, from mortal sight, by rough holly and thick-set flowering shrubs;----so that the idea of not being seen did not a little contribute to the idea of pleasure preconceived in my uncle Toby's mind. -----Vain thought! however thick it was planted about,---- or Private soever it might seem,----to think, dear uncle Toby, of enjoying a thing which took up a whole rood and a half of ground,------and not have it known !
How my uncle Toby and Corporal Trim managed this matter,-----with the history of their campaigns, which were no way barren of events,-----may make no uninteresting underplot in the epitasis and working up of this drama.----At present the scene must drop,--and change for the parlour fireside.
Pray, what's all that racket over our heads, Obadiah?---- quoth my father;-----my brother and I can scarce hear ourselves speak.
Sir, answered Obadiah, making a bow towards his left shoulder,-----my Mistress is taken very badly;-----and where's Susannah running down the garden there, as if they were going to ravish her?----Sir, she is running the shortest cut into the town, replied Obadiah, to fetch the old midwife.------ Then saddle a horse, quoth my father, and do you go directly for Dr. Slop, the man midwife, with all our services,----and let him know your mistress is fallen into labour,-----and that I desire he will return with you with all speed.
It is very strange, says my father, addressing himself to my uncle Toby, as Obadiah shut the door,-----as there is so expert an operator as Dr. Slop so near------that my wife should persist to the very last in this obstinate humour of hers, in trusting the life of my child, who has had one misfortune already, to the ignorance of an old woman;-----and not only the life of my child, brother,-----but her own life, and with it the lives of all the children I might, peradventure, have begot out of her hereafter.
Mayhap, brother, replied my uncle Toby, my sister does it to save the expense:----A pudding's end,------replied my father;----the doctor must be paid the same for inaction as action,------if not better,----to keep him in temper.
----Then it can be out of nothing in the whole world, quoth my uncle Toby, in the simplicity of his heart,-----but MODESTY:-----My sister, I dare say, added he, does not care to let a man come so near her ****. I will not say whether my uncle Toby had completed the sentence or not;-----'tis for his advantage to suppose he had,-----as, I think, he could have added no ONE WORD which would have improved it.
-----``My sister, mayhap,'' quoth my uncle Toby, ``does not choose to let a man come so near her ****.'' Make this dash, -----'tis an Aposiopesis.-----Take the dash away, and write Backside,-----'tis Bawdy.------Scratch Backside out, and put Covered way in,-----'tis a Metaphor;-----and, I dare say, as fortification ran so much in my uncle Toby's head, that if he had been left to have added one word to the sentence,----- that word was it.
But whether that was the case or not the case,-----or
whether the snapping of my father's tobacco pipe so critically
happened through accident or anger,-----will be seen in due
time.
This looked something like heat;--and the manner of
his reply to what my uncle Toby was saying proved it was so.
-----``Not choose,'' quoth my father (repeating my uncle Toby's words), ``to let a man come so near her.''-----By heaven. brother Toby! you would try the patience of a Job; -----and I think I have the plagues of one already, without it. -----Why?-----Where?-----Wherein?-----Wherefore?-----Up -----Why?-----Where?-----Wherein?-----Wherefore?-----Upon what account, replied my uncle Toby, in the utmost astonishment.------To think, said my father, of a man living to your age, brother, and knowing so little about women!------ I know nothing at all about them,----replied my uncle Toby; and I think. continued he, that the shock I received the year after the demolition of Dunkirk, in my affair with widow Wadman;------which shock you know I should not have received, but from my total ignorance of the sex;----has given me just cause to say, That I neither know, nor do pretend to know, anything about 'em, or their concerns either.-----Methinks, brother. replied my father. you might at least, know so much as the right end of a woman from the wrong.
It is said in Aristotle's Master-Piece, `'That when a man doth think of anything which is past,-----he looketh down upon the ground;-----but that when he thinketh of something which is to come, he looketh up towards the heavens',
My uncle Toby, I suppose, thought of neither,------for he looked horizontally.-----Right end,------quoth my uncle Toby, muttering the two words low to himself, and fixing his two eyes insensibly, as he muttered them, upon a small crevice formed by a bad joint in the chimney piece.----- Right end of a woman!-----I declare, quoth my uncle, I know no more which it is than the man in the moon;-----and if I was to think, continued my uncle Toby (keeping his eye still fixed upon the bad joint), this month together. I am sure I should not be able to find it out.
Then brother Toby, replied my father, I will tell you.
Everything in this world, continued my father (filling a fresh pipe),-----everything in this earthly world, my dear brother Toby. has two handles.-----Not always, quoth my uncle Toby.-----At least, replied my father, every one has two hands,-----which comes to the same thing.-----Now, if a man was to sit down coolly, and consider within himself the make, the shape, the construction, come-at-ability, and convenience of all the parts which constitute the whole of that animal called Woman, and compare them analogically.------ I never understood rightly the meaning of that word,------ quoth my uncle Toby.-----ANALOGY, replied my father, is the certain relation and agreement. which different-----Here a devil of a rap at the door snapped my father's definition (like
If the hypercritic will go upon this; and is resolved after all to take a pendulum, and measure the true distance betwixt the ringing of the bell and the rap at the door;----- and, after finding it to be no more than two minutes, thirteen seconds, and three fifths,--should take upon him to insult over me for such a breach in the unity, or rather probability, of time;----I would remind him that the idea of duration and of its simple modes is got merely from the train and succession of our ideas,--and is the true scholastic pendulum,-----and by which, as a scholar, I will be tried in this matter,-----abjuring and detesting the jurisdiction of all other pendulums whatever.
I would, therefore, desire him to consider that it is but poor eight miles from Shandy Hall to Dr. Slop the man midwife's house;------and that whilst Obadiah has been going those said miles and back, I have brought my uncle Toby from Namur, quite across all Flanders, into England:-- That I have had him ill upon my hands near four years;-- and have since travelled him and Corporal Trim, in a chariot
If my hypercritic is intractable, alleging that two minutes and thirteen seconds are no more than two minutes and thirteen seconds,----when I have said all I can about them; -----and that this plea, though it might save me dramatically, will damn me biographically, rendering my book, from this very moment, a professed ROMANCE, which before was a book apocryphal:-----If I am thus pressed-----I then put an end to the whole objection and controversy about it all at once,------ by acquainting him that Obadiah had not got above threescore yards from the stable yard before he met with Dr. Slop; ----and indeed he gave a dirty proof that he had met with him,-----and was within an ace of giving a tragical one too.
Imagine to yourself;-----but this had better begin a new
chapter.
Such were the outlines of Dr. Slop's figure, which,-----if
you have read Hogarth's analysis of beauty, and if you have
not, I wish you would,-----you must know, may as
certainly be caricatured and conveyed to the mind by three
strokes as three hundred.
Imagine such a one,-----for such, I say, were the outlines
of Dr. Slop's figure, coming slowly along, foot by foot,
waddling through the dirt upon the vertebrae of a little
diminutive pony, of a pretty colour;-----but of strength,-----
alack!-----scarce able to have made an amble of it, under
such a fardel, had the roads been in an ambling condition.
-----They were not.-----Imagine to yourself Obadiah,
mounted upon a strong monster of a coach horse, pricked
into a full gallop, and making all practicable speed the
adverse way.
Pray, Sir, let me interest you a moment in this description.
Had Dr. Slop beheld Obadiah a mile off, posting in a narrow lane directly towards him, at that monstrous rate,-----splashing and plunging like a devil through thick and thin, as he approached, would not such a phenomenon, with such a vortex of mud and water moving along with it round its axis, -----have been a subject of juster apprehension to Dr. Slop in his situation than the worst of Whiston's comets?----To say nothing of the NUCLEUS; that is, of Obadiah and the coach horse.-----In my idea, the vortex alone of 'em was enough to have involved and carried, if not the doctor, at least the doctor's pony quite away with it. what then do you think must the terror and hydrophobia of Dr. Slop have been, when you read (which you are just going to do) that he was advancing thus warily along towards Shandy Hall and had approached to within sixty yards of it, and within five yards of a sudden turn, made by an acute angle of the garden wall,----- and in the dirtiest part of a dirty lane,-----when Obadiah and his coach horse turned the corner, rapid, furious,------pop, -----full upon him!-----Nothing, I think, in nature can be supposed more terrible than such a Rencounter,----so imprompt! so ill prepared to stand the shock of it as Dr. Slop was!
What could Dr. Slop do?------He crossed himself + ----- Pugh!------but the doctor, Sir, was a Papist.-----No matter; he had better have kept hold of the pummel.-----He had so;----nay, as it happened, he had better have done nothing at all;-----for in crossing himself, he let go his whip,------and in attempting to save his whip betwixt his knee and his saddle's skirt, as it slipped, he lost his stirrup;----in losing which, he lost his seat;-----and in the multitude of all these losses (which, by the bye, shows what little advantage there is in crossing), the unfortunate doctor lost his presence of mind. So that, without waiting for Obadiah's onset, he left his pony to its destiny, tumbling off it diagonally, something in the style and manner of a pack of wool, and without any other consequence from the fall save that of being left (as it would have been) with the broadest part of him sunk about twelve inches deep in the mire.
Obadiah pulled off his cap twice to Dr. Slop;----once as he was falling,-----and then again when he saw him seated. ----Ill-timed complaisance!-----had not the fellow better have stopped his horse, and got off and helped him?-----Sir, he did all that his situation would allow;-----but the MOMENTUM of the coach horse was so great that Obadiah could
Here was a fair opportunity for my uncle Toby to have triumphed over my father in his turn;-----for no mortal who had beheld Dr. Slop in that pickle could have dissented from so much, at least, of my uncle Toby's opinion, ``That mayhap his sister might not care to let such a Dr. Slop come so near her ** **'' But it was the Argurnentum ad hominem; and if my uncle Toby was not very expert at it, you may think, he might not care to use it.-----No; the reason was-----'twas not his nature to insult.
Dr. Slop's presence, at that time, was no less problematical than the mode of it; though, it is certain, one moment's reflection in my father might have solved it; for he had apprized Dr. Slop but the week before that my mother was at her full reckoning; and as the doctor had heard nothing since, 'twas natural and very political too in him to have taken a ride to Shandy Hall, as he did, merely to see how matters went on.
But my father's mind took unfortunately a wrong turn in the investigation; running, like the hypercritic's, altogether upon the ringing of the bell and the rap upon the door,---- measuring their distance,-----and keeping his mind so intent upon the operation as to have power to think of nothing else,----commonplace infirmity of the greatest mathematicians! working with might and main at the demonstrarion, and so wasting all their strength upon it, that they have none left in them to draw the corollary, to do good with.
The ringing of the bell and the rap upon the door struck
likewise strong upon the sensorium of my uncle Toby,------
but it excited a very different train of thoughts;-----the two
irreconcilable pulsarions instantly brought Stevinus, the great
engineer, along with them into my uncle Toby's mind:-----
What business Stevinus had in this affair-----is the greatest
problem of all;-----it shall be solved,-----but not ia the next
chapter.
For my own part, I am eternally paying him compliments
of this kind, and do all that lies in my power to keep his
imagination as busy as my own.
'Tis his turn now;-----I have given an ample description of
Dr. Slop's sad overthrow, and of his sad appearance in the
back parlour;------his imaginarion must now go on with it for
a while.
Let the reader imagine, then, that Dr. Slop has told his
tale;----and in what words, and with what aggravations his
fancy chooses:------Let him suppose that Obadiah has told his
tale also, and with such rueful looks of affected concern as
he thinks will best contrast the two figures as they stand by
Truce!-----truce, good Dr. Slop!-----stay thy obstetric hand;-----return it safe into thy bosom to keep it warm;----- little dost thou know what obstacles,----little dost thou think what hidden causes retard its operation!-----Hast thou, Dr. Slop,-----hast thou been intrusted with the secret articles of this solemn treaty which has brought thee into this place? -----Art thou aware that, at this instant, a daughter of Lucina is put obstetrically over thy head? Alas! 'tis too true.----- Besides great son of Pilumnus! what canst thou do?----- Thou hast come forth unarmed;------thou hast left thy tire t@^ete,------thy new-invented forceps,-----thy crotchet,---- thy squirt, and all thy instruments of salvation and deliverance behind thee.----By heaven! at this moment they are hanging up in a green baize bag, betwixt thy two pistols, at thy bed's head!-----Ring;----call;----send Obadiah back upon the coach horse to bring them with all speed.
-----Make great haste, Obadiah, quoth my father, and I'll
give thee a crown;-----and, quoth my uncle Toby, I'll give
him another.
He has so,-----replied my uncle Toby.-----I knew it, said
Dennis, the critic, could not detest and abhor a pun, or the insinuation of a pun, more cordially than my father;---- e would grow testy upon it at any rime;-----but t upon by one, in a serious discourse, was as bad, he would say, as a fillip upon the nose;-----he saw no difference.
Sir quoth my uncle Toby, addressing himself to Dr. Slop, ----the curtains my brother Shandy mentions here have nothing to do with bedsteads;----though, I know, Du Cange says, ``That bed curtains, in all probability, have taken their name from them;''-----nor have the horn works he speaks of anything in the world to do with the horn works of cuckoldom:-----But the curtain, Sir, is the word we use in fortification for that part of the wall or rampart which lies between the two bastions and joins them.-----Besiegers seldom offer to carry on their attacks directly against the curtain for this reason, because they are so well flanked. ('Tis the case of other curtains, quoth Dr. Slop, laughing.) However, continued my uncle Toby, to make them sure, we generally choose to place ravelins before them, taking care only to extend them beyond the fosse or ditch:-----The common men, who know very little of fortification, confound the ravelin and the half-moon together,-----though they are very different things;-----not in their figure or construction, for we make them exactly alike in all points;------for they always consist of two faces, making a salient angle, with the gorges not straight, but in form of a crescent.-----Where then lies the difference? (quoth my father, a little testily).-----In their situations, answered my uncle Toby:-----For when a ravelin, brother, stands before the curtain, it is a ravelin; and when a ravelin stands before a bastion then the ravelin is not a ravelin;-----it is a half-moon;-----a half-moon likewise is a half-moon, and no more, so long as it stands before its bastion;-----but was it to change place, and get before the curtain,-----'twould be no longer a half-moon; a half-moon, in that case, is not a half-moon;-----'tis no more than a
----As for the hornworks (high! ho! sighed my father) which, continued my uncle Toby, my brother was speaking of, they are a very considerable part of an outwork;----they are called by the French engineers Ouvrage @`a corne, and we generally make them to cover such places as we suspect to be weaker than the rest;----'tis formed by two epaulements or demibastions;----they are very pretty, and if you will take a walk, I'll engage to show you one well worth your trouble. ----I own, continued my uncle Toby, when we crown them, -----they are much stronger, but then they are very expensive, and take up a great deal of ground; so that, in my opinion, they are most of use to cover or defend the head of a camp; otherwise the double tenaille-----By the mother who bore us! -----brother Toby, quoth my father, not able to hold out any longer,----you would provoke a saint;-----here have you got us, I know not how, not only souse into the middle of the old subject again:----But so full is your head of these confounded works, that though my wife is this moment in the pains of labour,-----and you hear her cry out,----yet nothing will serve you but to carry off the man midwife.---- Accoucheur,----if you please, quoth Dr. Slop.----With all my heart, replied my father, I don't care what they call you,-----but I wish the whole science of fortification, with all its inventors, at the devil;------it has been the death of thousands,----and it will be mine, in the end.----I would not, I would not, brother Toby, have my brains so full of saps, mines, blinds, gabions, palisadoes, ravelins, half-moons, and such trumpery, to be proprietor of Namur, and of all the towns in Flanders with it.
My uncle Toby was a man patient of injuries;-----not from want of courage;----I have told you in the fifth chapter of this second book, ``That he was a man of courage:''----And will add here that where just occasions presented, or called it forth,----I know no man under whose arm I would sooner have taken shelter; nor did this arise from any insensibility or obtuseness of his intellectual parts;----for he felt this insult of my father's as feelingly as a man could do;----but he was of a peaceful, placid nature,-----no jarring element in it,------all was mixed up so kindly within him; my uncle Toby had scarce a heart to retaliate upon a fly.
-----Go-----says he, one day at dinner, to an overgrown one which had buzzed about his nose, and tormented him cruelly all dinnertime,--and which, after infinite attempts,
I was but ten years old when this happened; but whether it was that the action itself was more in unison to my nerves at that age of pity, which instantly set my whole frame into one vibration of most pleasurable sensation;------or how far the manner and expression of it might go towards it;-----or in what degree, or by what secret magic,------a tone of voice and harmony of movement, attuned by mercy, might find a passage to my heart, I know not;-----this I know, that the lesson of universal good will then taught and imprinted by my uncle Toby has never since been worn out of my mind: And though I would not depreciate what the study of the Literae humaniores, at the university, have done for me in that respect, or discredit the other helps of an expensive education bestowed upon me both at home and abroad since;------yet I often think that I owe one half of my philanthropy to that one accidental impression.
** This is to serve for parents and governors instead of a whole volume upon the subject.
I could not give the reader this stroke in my uncle Toby's picture by the instrument with which I drew the other parts of it,----that taking in no more than the mere HOBBYHORSICAL likeness;----this is a part of his moral character. My father, in this patient endurance of wrongs which I mention, was very different as the reader must long ago have noted; he had a much more acute and quick sensibility of nature, attended with a little soreness of temper; though this never transported him to anything which looked like malignancy;------yet, in the little rubs and vexations of life, 'twas apt to show itself in a drollish and witty kind of peevishness: ----He was, however, frank and generous in his nature;---- at all times open to conviction; and in the little ebullitions of this subacid humour towards others, but particularly towards my uncle Toby, whom he truly loved,------he would feel more pain, ten times told (except in the affair of my aunt Dinah, or where an hypothesis was concerned) than what he ever gave.
The characters of the two brothers, in this view of them, reflected light upon each other and appeared with great advantage in this affair which arose about Stevinus.
I need not tell the reader, if he keeps a HOBBY-HORSE,----- that a man's HOBBY-HORSE is as tender a part as he has about him; and that these unprovoked strokes at my uncle Toby's could not be unfelt by him.-----No;--------as I said above, my uncle Toby did feel them, and very sensibly too.
Pray, Sir, what said he?-----How did he behave?----O, Sir!-----it was great: For as soon as my father had done insulting his HOBBY-HORSE,-------he turned his head, without the least emotion, from Dr. Slop, to whom he was addressing his discourse, and looked up into my father's face with a countenance spread over with so much good nature;----so placid;-----so fraternal;----so inexpressibly tender towards him;------it penetrated my father to his heart: He rose up hastily from his chair, and seizing hold of both my uncle Toby's hands as he spoke:----Brother Toby, said he,----I beg thy pardon;------forgive, I pray thee, this rash humour which my mother gave me.----My dear, dear brother, answered my uncle Toby, rising up by my father's help, say no more about it;-----you are heartily welcome, had it been ten times as much, brother. But 'tis ungenerous, replied my father, to hurt any man;------a brother worse;----but to hurt a brother of such gentle manners,-----so unprovoking,----- and so unresenting;----'tis base:------By heaven, 'tis cowardly.---You are heartily welcome, brother, quoth my uncle Toby,-----had it been fifty times as much.----Besides, what have I to do, my dear Toby, cried my father, either with your amusements or your pleasures, unless it was in my power (which it is not) to increase their measure?
------Brother Shandy, answered my uncle Toby, looking
wistfully in his face,-----you are much mistaken in this
point;----for you do increase my pleasure very much in
begetting children for the Shandy family at your time of
life.--But, by that, Sir, quoth Dr. Slop, Mr. Shandy
increases his own.-----Not a jot, quoth my father.
As my father spoke the three last words,---he sat down; -----my uncle Toby exactly followed his example, only that before he took his chair, he rung the bell, to order Corporal Trim, who was in waiting, to step home for Stevinus;-----my uncle Toby's house being no further off than the opposite side of the way.
Some men would have dropped the subject of Stevinus; -----but my uncle Toby had no resentment in his heart, and he went on with the subject, to show my father that he had none.
Your sudden appearance, Dr. Slop, quoth my uncle, resuming the discourse, instantly brought Stevinus into my head. (My father, you may be sure, did not offer to lay any more wagers upon Stevinus's head) -----Because, continued my uncle Toby, the celebrated sailing chariot which belonged to Prince Maurice, and was of such wonderful contrivance and velocity as to carry half a dozen people thirty German miles in I don't know how few minutes,-----was invented by Stevinus, that great mathematician and engineer.
You might have spared your servant the trouble, quoth Dr. Slop, (as the fellow is lame) of going for Stevinus's account of it, because, in my return from Leyden through the Hague, I walked as far as Schevling, which is two long miles, on purpose to take a view of it.
-----That's nothing, replied my uncle Toby, to what the learned Peireskius did, who walked a matter of five hundred miles, reckoning from Paris to Schevling, and from Schevling to Paris back again, in order to see it,-----and nothing else.
Some men cannot bear to be outgone.
The more fool Peireskius, replied Dr. Slop. But mark, 'twas out of no contempt of Peireskius at all;------but that Peireskius's indefatigable labour in trudging so far on foot out of love for the sciences reduced the exploit of Dr.
It answered, replied my uncle Toby, as well, if not better;, for, as Peireskius elegantly expresses it, speaking of the velocity of its motion, Tam citus erat, quam erat ventus, which, unless I have forgot my Latin, is that it was as swift as the wind itself.
But pray, Dr. Slop, quoth my father interrupting my uncle (though not without begging pardon for it, at the same time), upon what principles was this selfsame chariot set a-going?-----Upon very pretty principles to be sure, replied Dr. Slop;------and I have often wondered, continued he, evading the question, why none of our gentry, who live upon large plains like this of ours-----(especially they whose wives are not past childbearing), attempt nothing of this kind; for it would not only be infinitely expeditious upon sudden calls, to which the sex is subject,-----if the wind only served,----but would be excellent good husbandry to make use of the winds, which cost nothing, and which eat nothing, rather than horses, which (the devil take 'em) both cost and eat a great deal.
for that very reason, replied my father, ``Because they cost nothing, and because they eat nothing,''-----the scheme is bad;------it is the consumption of our products, as well as the manufactures of them, which gives bread to the hungry, circulates trade,----brings in money, and supports the value of our lands;----and though, I own, if I was a prince, I would generously recompense the scientific head which brought forth such contrivances,------yet I would as peremptorily suppress the use of them.
My father here had got into his element,-----and was going on as prosperously with his dissertation upon trade as
-----You may take the book home again, Trim, said my uncle Toby, nodding to him.
But prithee, corporal, quoth my father, drolling,---look first into it, and see if thou canst spy aught of a sailing chariot in it.
Corporal Trim, by being in the service, had learned to obey,-----and not to remonstrate;-----so taking the book to a side table, and running over the leaves; an' please your Honour, said Trim, I can see no such thing;-----however, continued the corporal, drolling a little in his turn, I'll make sure work of it, an' please your Honour;-----so taking hold of the two covers of the book, one in each hand, and letting the leaves fall down, as he bent the covers back, he gave the book a good sound shake.
There is something fallen out, however, said Trim, an' please your Honour; but it is not a chariot, or anything like one:----Prithee, corporal, said my father, smiling, what is it then?-----I think, answered Trim, stooping to take it up,----'tis more like a sermon,------for it begins with a text of Scripture, and the chapter and verse;---and then goes on, not as a chariot,------but like a sermon directly.
The company smiled.
I cannot conceive how it is possible, quoth my uncle Toby, for such a thing as a sermon to have got into my Stevinus.
I think 'tis a sermon, replied Trim;----but if it please your Honours, as it is a fair hand, I will read you a page;------for Trim, you must know, loved to hear himself read almost as well as talk.
I have ever a strong propensity, said my father, to look
Trim's reason put his audience into good humour,----all but Dr. Slop, who, turning his head about towards Trim. looked a little angry.
Begin, Trim,----and read distinctly, quoth my father;------ I will, an' please your Honour, replied the corporal, making a bow, and bespeaking attention with a slight movement of his right hand.
He stood before them with his body swayed, and bent forwards just so far as to make an angle of 85 degrees and a half upon the plane of the horizon;------which sound orators, to whom I address this, know very well to be the true persuasive angle of incidence;-----in any other angle you may talk and preach;-----'tis certain,-----and it is done every day;------but with what effect,-----I leave the world to judge!
The necessity of this precise angle of 85 degrees and a half to a mathematical exactness,-----does it not show us, by the way,----how the arts and sciences mutually befriend each other?
How the deuce Corporal Trim, who knew not so much as an acute angle from an obtuse one, came to hit it so exactly;----or whether it was chance or nature, or good sense or imitation, &c., shall be commented upon in that part of this cyclopaedia of arts and sciences where the instrumental parts of the eloquence of the senate, the pulpit, the bar, the coffeehouse, the bedchamber and fireside fall under consideration.
He stood,-----for I repeat it, to take the picture of him in at one view, with his body swayed, and somewhat bent forwards,----his right leg firm under him, sustaining seven eighths of his whole weight,----the foot of his left leg, the defect of which was no disadvantage to his attitude, advanced a little,-----not laterally nor forwards, but in a line betwixt them;-----his knee bent, but that not violently,----- but so as to fall within the limits of the line of beauty; ----and I add, of the line of science too;-----for consider, it had one eighth part of his body to bear up;-----so that in this case the position of the leg is determined,-----because the foot could be no further advanced, or the knee more bent, than what would allow him mechanically to receive an eighth part of his whole weight under it,-----and to carry it too.
@hd This I recommend to painters:-----need I add,------to orators?-----I think not; for, unless they practise it,--they must fall upon their noses.
So much for Corporal Trim's body and legs.----He held
Corporal Trim's eyes and the muscles of his face were in full harmony with the other parts of him;-----he looked frank,-----unconstrained,-----something assured,-----but not bordering upon assurance.
Let not the critic ask how Corporal Trim could come by all this; I've told him it shall be explained;-----but so he stood before my father, my uncle Toby, and Dr. Slop,----so swayed his body, so contrasted his limbs, and with such an oratorical sweep throughout the whole figure,-----a statuary might have modelled from it;-----nay, I doubt whether the oldest Fellow of a College,------or the Hebrew Professor himself, could have much mended it.
Trim made a bow, and read as follows:
The SERMON
HEBREWS xiii:18
-----For we trust we have a good Conscience.----- '`TRUST!------Trust we have a good conscience!''
(Certainly, Trim, quoth my father, interrupting him you give that sentence a very improper accent; for you curl up your nose, man, and read it with such a sneering tone, as if the Parson was going to abuse the Apostle.
He is, an' please your Honour, replied Trim. Pugh! said my father, smiling.
Sir, quoth Dr. Slop, Trim is certainly in the right; for the writer (who I perceive is a Protestant), by the snappish manner in which he takes up the Apostle, is certainly going to abuse him,----if this treatment of him has not done it already. But from whence, replied my father, have you concluded so soon, Dr. Slop, that the writer is of our church?-----for aught I can see yet,----he may be of any church:----Because, answered Dr. Slop, if he was of ours,-----he durst no more take such a licence,----than a bear by his beard:-----If, in our communion, Sir, a man was to insult an Apostle,-----a
-----The tears trickled down Trim's cheeks faster than he could well wipe them away.-----A dead silence in the room ensued for some minutes.-----Certain proof of pity!
Come, Trim, quoth my father, after he saw the poor fellow's grief had got a little vent,-----read on,-----and put this melancholy story out of thy head:-----I grieve that I interrupted thee;-----but prithee begin the sermon again;-----for if the first sentence in it is matter of abuse, as thou sayest, I have a great desire to know what kind of provocation the Apostle has given.
Corporal Trim wiped his face, and returning his handkerchief into his pocket, and making a bow as he did it,-----he began again.]
The SERMON
HEBREWS xiii: 18
----For we trust we have a good Conscience.---- ``TRUST! trust we have a good conscience! Surely if there is anything in this life which a man may depend upon, and to the knowledge of which he is capable of arriving upon the most indisputable evidence it must be this very thing, -----whether he has a good conscience or no.''
(I am positive I am right, quoth Dr. Slop.]
``If a man thinks at all, he cannot well be a stranger to the true state of this account;------he must be privy to his own thoughts and desires;-----he must remember his past pursuits, and know certainly the true springs and motives which, in general, have governed the actions of his life.''
[I defy him, without an assistant, quoth Dr. Slop.]
``In other matters we may be deceived by false appearances; and, as the wise man complains, hardly do we guess aright at the things that are upon the earth, and with labour do we find the things that are before us. But here the mind has all the evidence and facts within herself;-----is conscious of the web she has wove;----knows its texture and fineness, and the exact share which every passion has had in working upon the several designs which virtue or vice had planned before her.''
[The language is good, and I declare Trim reads very well, quoth my father.]
``Now,-----as conscience is nothing else but the knowledge which the mind has within herself of this; and the judgment, either of approbation or censure, which it unavoidably makes upon the successive actions of our lives; 'tis plain you will say, from the very terms of the proposition,-----whenever this inward testimony goes against a man, and he stands selfaccused,-----that he must necessarily be a guilty man.----- And, on the contrary, when the report is favourable on his side, and his heart condemns him not,-----that it is not a matter of trust, as the Apostle intimates,-----but a matter of certainty and fact that the conscience is good, and that the man must be good also.''
[Then the Apostie is altogether in the wrong, I suppose, quoth Dr. Slop, and the Protestant divine is in the right. Sir, have patience, replied my father, for I think it will presently appear that St. Paul and the Protestant divine are both of an
It is no more, at the worst, replied my uncle Toby, than the liberty of the pulpit; for it does not appear that the sermon is printed, or ever likely to be.
Go on, Trim, quoth my father.]
'`At first sight this may seem to be a true state of the case; and I make no doubt but the knowledge of right and wrong is so truly impressed upon the mind of man,-----that did no such thing ever happen as that the conscience of a man, by long habits of sin, might (as the Scripture assures it may) insensibly become hard;----and, like some tender parts of his body, by much stress and continual hard usage, lose, by degrees, that nice sense and perception with which God and nature endowed it:-----Did this never happen;----or was it certain that self-love could never hang the least bias upon the judgment;-----or that the little interests below could rise up and perplex the faculties of our upper regions, and encompass them about with clouds and thick darkness:-----Could no such thing as favour and affection enter this sacred COURT.: -----Did WIT disdain to take a bribe in it;-----or was ashamed to show its face as an advocate for an unwarrantable enjoyment:-----Or, lastly, were we assured that INTEREST stood always unconcerned whilst the cause was hearing,---- and that passion never got into the judgment seat, and pronounced sentence in the stead of reason, which is supposed always to preside and determine upon the case:-----Was this truly so, as the objection must suppose;-----no doubt then, the religious and moral state of a man would be exactly what he himself esteemed it;----and the guilt or innocence of every man's life could be known, in general by no better measure than the degrees of his own approbation and censure.
``I own, in one case, whenever a man's conscience does accuse him (as it seldom errs on that side) that he is guilty; and, unless in melancholy and hypochondriac cases, we may safely pronounce upon it that there is always sufficient grounds for the accusation.
``But the converse of the proposition will not hold true; ----namely, that whenever there is guilt, the conscience must accuse; and if it does not, that a man is therefore innocent.-----This is not fact:-----So that the common consolation which some good Christian or other is hourly administering to himself,----that he thanks God his mind does not misgive him; and that, consequently, he has a good
``A man shall be vicious and utterly debauched in his principles;-----exceptionable in his conduct to the world; shall live shameless, in the open commission of a sin which no reason or pretence can justify;-----a sin by which, contrary to all the workings of humanity, he shall ruin forever the deluded partner of his guilt;-----rob her of her best dowry; and not only cover her own head with dishonour,-----but involve a whole virtuous family in shame and sorrow for her sake.---- Surely, you will think, conscience must lead such a man a troublesome life;----he can have no rest night or day from its reproaches.
Alas! CONSCIENCE had something else to do, all this time, than break in upon him; as Elijah reproached the god Baal,----this domestic God was either talking, or pursuing, or was in a journey, or peradventure he slept and could not be awoke.
`'Perhaps HE was gone out in company with HONOUR to fight a duel; to pay off some debt at play;-----or dirty annuity, the bargain of his lust: Perhaps CONSCIENCE all this time was engaged at home, talking loud against petty larceny, and executing vengeance upon some such puny crimes as his fortune and rank in life secured him against all temptation of committing; so that he lives as merrily'' (If he was of our church though, quoth Dr. Slop, he could not],-----``sleeps as soundly in his bed;-----and at last meets death as unconcernedly;-----perhaps much inore so than a much better man.''
[All this is impossible with us, quoth Dr. Slop, turning to my father;-----the case could not happen in our church. -----It happens in ours, however, replied my father, but too often.-----I own, quoth Dr. Slop (struck a little with my father's frank acknowledgment)-----that a man in the Romish church may live as badly;-----but then he cannot easily die so.-----'Tis little matter, replied my father, with an air of indifference,-----how a rascal dies.-----I mean, answered Dr. Slop, he would be denied the benefits of the last sacraments.
'`Another is sordid, unmerciful'' [here Trim waved his right hand], ``a straithearted, selfish wretch, incapable either of private friendship or public spirit. Take notice how he passes by the widow and orphan in their distress, and sees all the miseries incident to human life without a sigh or a prayer.'' [And please your Honours, cried Trim, I think this a viler man than the other.]
``Shall not conscience rise up and sting him on such occasions?-----No; thank God there is no occasion; I pay every man his own;-----I have no fornication to answer to my con- science,------no faithless vows or promises to make up;--I have debauched no man's wife or child; thank God, I am not as other men, adulterers, unjust, or even as this libertine who stands before me.
``A third is crafty and designing in his nature. View his whole life;-----'tis nothing but a cunning contexture of dark arts and unequitable subterfuges, basely to defeat the true intent of all laws,----plain dealing and the safe enjoyment of our several properties.-----You will see such a one working out a frame of little designs upon the ignorance and perplexities of the poor and needy man;-----shall raise a fortune upon the inexperience of a youth, or the unsuspecting temper of his friend, who would have trusted him with his life.
``When old age comes on, and repentance calls him to look back upon this black account, and state it over again with his conscience,-----CONSCIENCE looks into the STATUTES at LARGE;------finds no express law broken by what he has done;
[Here Corporal Trim and my uncle Toby exchanged looks with each other.----Aye,-----aye, Trim! quoth my uncle Toby, shaking his head,-----these are but sorry fortifications, Trim.-------O! very poor work, answered Trim, to what your Honour and I make of it.-----The character of this last man, said Dr. Slop, interrupting Trim, is more detestable than all the rest;----and seems to have been taken from some pettifogging Lawyer amongst you:----Amongst us, a man's conscience could not possibly continue so long blinded;----three times in a year, at least, he must go to confession. will that restore it to sight? quoth my uncle Toby. ----Go on, Trim, quoth my father, or Obadiah will have got back before thou hast got to the end of thy sermon;---- 'tis a very short one, replied Trim.-----I wish it was longer, quoth my uncle Toby, for I like it hugely.------Trim went on.]
``A fourth man shall want even this refuge;----shall break through all this ceremony of slow chicane;-----scorns the doubtful workings of secret plots and cautious trains to bring about his purpose:-----See the barefaced villain, how he cheats, lies, perjures, robs, murders.----Horrid!-----But indeed much better was not to be expected, in the present case;-----the poor man was in the dark!---------his priest had got the keeping of his conscience;----and all he would let him know of it was, That he must believe in the Pope; -----go to Mass;----cross himself;-----tell his beads;---- be a good Catholic, and that this, in all conscience, was enough to carry him to heaven. What----- if he perjures! -----Why,-----he had a mental reservation in it.-----But if he is so wicked and abandoned a wretch as you represent him;-----if he robs,-----if he stabs;-----will not conscience, on every such act, receive a wound itself? Aye,--but the man has carried it to confession;----the wound digests there and will do well enough, and in a short time be quite healed up by absolution. O Popery! what hast thou to answer for?-----when, not content with the too many natural and fatal ways through which the heart of man is every day thus treacherous to itself above all things,----thou hast
``Of this the common instances which I have drawn out of life are too notorious to require much evidence. If any man doubts the reality of them, or thinks it impossible for a man to be such a bubble to himself,-----I must refer him a moment to his own reflections, and will then venture to trust my appeal with his own heart.
``Let him consider in how different a degree of detestation numbers of wicked actions stand there, though equally bad and vicious in their own natures;------he will soon find that such of them as strong inclination and custom have prompted him to commit are generally dressed out and painted with all the false beauties which a soft and a flattering hand can give them;-----and that the others, to which he feels no propensity, appear at once naked and deformed, surrounded with all the true circumstances of folly and dishonour.
`'when David surprised Saul sleeping in the cave, and cut off the shirt of his robe,-----we read his heart smote him for what he had done:----But in the matter of Uriah, where a faithful and gallant servant, whom he ought to have loved and honoured, fell to make way for his lust,------ where conscience had so much greater reason to take the alarm, his heart smote him not. A whole year had almost passed from the first commission of that crime to the time Nathan was sent to reprove him; and we read not once of the least sorrow or compunction of heart which he testified, during all that time, for what he had done.
``Thus conscience, this once able monitor,-----placed on high as a judge within us, and intended by our maker as a just and equitable one too,-----by an unhappy train of causes and impediments, takes often such imperfect cognizance of what passes,-----does its office so negligently,-----sometimes so corruptly,-----that it is not to be trusted alone; and therefore we find there is a necessity, an absolute necessity of joining another principle with it to aid, if not govern, its determinations.
``So that if you would form a just judgment of what is of infinite importance to you not to be misled in,-----namely, in what degree of real merit you stand either as an honest man, an useful citizen, a faithful subject to your king, or a good servant to your God,-----call in religion and morality.---- Look,-----what is written in the law of God?-----How readest
``Let CONSCIENCE determine the matter upon these reports;-----and then if thy heart condemns thee not, which is the case the Apostle supposes,----the rule will be infallible'' [Here Dr. Slop fell asleep]; ``thou wilt have confidence to- wards God;-----that is, have just grounds to believe the judgment thou has passed upon thyself is the judgment of God; and nothing else but an anticipation of that righteous sentence which will be pronounced upon thee hereafter by that Being, to whom thou art finally to give an account of thy actions.
``Blessed is the man indeed, then, as the author of the book of Ecclesiasticus expresses it, who is not pricked with the multitude of his sins: Blessed is the man whose heart hath not condemned him; whether he be rich, or whether he be poor, if he have a good heart (a heart thus guided and informed) he shall at all times rejoice in a cheerful counten- ance; his mind shall tell him more than seven watchmen that sit above upon a tower on high.''-----[A tower has no strength, quoth my uncle Toby, unless 'tis flanked.] ``In the darkest doubts it shall conduct him safer than a thousand casuists, and give the state he lives in a better security for his behaviour than all the clauses and restrictions put together which lawmakers are forced to multiply:----Forced, I say, as things stand; human laws not being a matter of original choice, but of pure necessity, brought in to fence against the mischievous effects of those consciences which are no law unto themselves; well intending, by the many provisions made,----that in all such corrupt and misguided cases, where principles and the checks of conscience will not make us upright,----to supply their force, and, by the terrors of goals and halters, oblige us to it.''
[I see plainly, said my father, that this sermon has been composed to be preached at the Temple-----or at some Assize. ----I like the reasoning,-----and am sorry that Dr. Slop has fallen asleep before the time of his conviction;----for it is now clear that the Parson, as I thought at first, never insulted St. Paul in the least;-----nor has there been, brother the least difference between them.----A great matter, if they had differed, replied my uncle Toby;-----the best friends in the world may differ sometimes.-----True,-----brother Toby, quoth my father, shaking hands with him;-----we'll fill our pipes, brother, and then Trim shall go on.
well,-----what dost thou think of it? said my father,
I think, answered the corporal, that the seven watchmen upon the tower, who, I suppose, are all sentinels there,----- are more, an' please your Honour, than were necessary;----- and to go on at that rate would harass a regiment all `to pieces, which a commanding officer who loves his men will never do, if he can help it; because two sentinels, added the corporal, are as good as twenty.-----I have been a commanding officer myself in the Corps de Garde a hundred times, continued Trim, rising an inch higher in his figure, as he spoke,------and all the time I had the honour to serve his Majesty King William, in relieving the most considerable posts, I never left more than two in my life.-----Very right, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby,----but you do not consider, Trim, that the towers in Solomon's days were not such things as our bastions, flanked and defended by other works;----- this, Trim, was an invention since Solomon's death; nor had they hornworks, or ravelins before the curtain, in his time; -----or such a fosse as we make with a cuvette in the middle of it, and with covered ways and counterscarps pallisadoed along it, to guard against a Coup de main.:------So that the seven men upon the tower were a party, I dare say, from the Corps de Garde, set there, not only to look out, but to defend it.------They could be no more, an' please your Honour, than a Corporal's Guard.----My father smiled inwardly,----but not outwardly;-----the subject between my uncle Toby and Corporal Trim being rather too serious, considering what had happened, to make a jest of:-----So putting his pipe into his mouth, which he had just lighted,-----he contented himself with ordering Trim to read on. He read on as follows:]
``To have the fear of God before our eyes, and, in our mutual dealings with each other, to govern our actions by the eternal measures of right and wrong:-----The first of these will comprehend the duties of religion;-----the second, those of morality, which are so inseparably connected together that you cannot divide these two tables, even in imagination (though the attempt is often made in practice), without breaking and mutually destroying them both.
``I said the attempt is often made, and so it is;------there being nothing more common than to see a man who has no sense at all of religion,-----and indeed has so much honesty as to pretend to none, who would take it as the bitterest affront, should you but hint at a suspicion of his moral character,-----or imagine he was not conscientiously just and scrupulous to the uttermost mite.
``When there is some appearance that it is so,-----though one is unwilling even to suspect the appearance of so amiable a virtue as moral honesty, yet were we to look into the grounds of it, in the present case, I am persuaded we should find little reason to envy such a one the honour of his motive.
``Let him declaim as pompously as he chooses upon the subject, it will be found to rest upon no better foundation than either his interest, his pride, his ease, or some such little and changeable passion as will give us but small dependence upon his actions in matters of great stress.
``I will illustrate this by an example.
``I know the banker I deal with, or the physician I usually call in'' [There is no need, cried Dr. Slop (waking) to call in any physician in this case], ``to be neither of them men of much religion: I hear them make a jest of it every day, and treat all its sanctions with so much scorn as to put the matter past doubt. well;----notwithstanding this, I put my fortune into the hands of the one;-----and what is dearer still to me, I trust my life to the honest skill of the other.
``Now, let me examine what is my reason for this great confidence.-----why in the first place, I believe there is no probability that either of them will employ the power I put into their hands to my disadvantage;-----I consider that honesty serves the purposes of this life:-----I know their success in the world depends upon the fairness of their characters. ----In a word,------I'm persuaded that they cannot hurt me, without hurting themselves more.
``But put it otherwise, namely, that interest lay, for once, on the other side; that a case should happen wherein the one, without stain to his reputation, could secrete my fortune, and leave me naked in the world;-----or that the other could send me out of it, and enjoy an estate by my death, without dishonour to himself or his art:------In this case, what hold have I of either of them?-----Religion, the strongest of all motives, is out of the question:-----Interest, the next most powerful motive in the world, is strongly against me:----what have I left to cast into the opposite scale to balance this temptation?-------Alas! I have nothing,----- nothing but what is lighter than a bubble-------I must lay at the mercy of HONOUR, or some such capricious principle. -----Strait security for two of my most valuable blessings! ----my property and my life.
``As, therefore, we can have no dependence upon morality without religion;-----so, on the other hand, there is nothing better to be expected from religion without morality;
'`He shall not only be covetous, revengeful, implacable, -----but even wanting in points of common honesty; yet, inasmuch as he talks aloud against the infidelity of the age, ----is zealous for some points of religion,-----goes twice a day to church,-----attends the sacraments,-----and amuses himself with a few instrumental parts of religion,----shall cheat his conscience into a judgment that, for this, he is a religious man, and has discharged truly his duty to God: And you will find that such a man, through force of this delusion, generally looks down with spiritual pride upon every other man who has less affectation of piety,------though, perhaps, ten times more moral honesty than himself.
``This likewise is a sore evil under the sun; and I believe there is no one mistaken principle which, for its time, has wrought more serious mischiefs.-------For a general proof of this,-----examine the history of the Romish church''----- [Well, what can you make of that? cried Dr. Slop];------ ``see what scenes of cruelty, murders, rapines, bloodshed'' [They may thank their own obstinacy, cried Dr. Slop] ``have all been sanctified by a religion not strictly governed by morality.
``In how many kingdoms of the world'' [Here Trim kept waving his right hand from the sermon to the extent of his arm, returning it backwards and forwards to the conclusion of the paragraph.]
``In how many kingdoms of the world has the crusading sword of this misguided saint-errant spared neither age, or merit, or sex, or condition?----and, as he fought under the banners of a religion which set him loose from justice and humanity, he showed none; mercilessly trampled upon both, -----heard neither the cries of the unfortunate, nor pitied their distresses.''
[I have been in many a battle, an' please your Honour, quoth Trim, sighing, but never in so melancholy a one as this.-----I would not have drawn a trigger in it, against these poor souls,-----to have been made a general officer.-----why? what do you understand of the affair? said Dr. Slop, looking towards Trim with something more of contempt than the corporal's honest heart deserved.-----what do you know, friend, about this battle you talk of?-----I know, replied Trim, that I never refused quarter in my life to any man who cried out for it;------but to a woman or a child, continued
But prithee, Trim, said my father, make an end,-----for I see thou hast but a leaf or two left.]
Corporal Trim read on.
``If the testimony of past centuries in this matter is not sufficient,-----consider at this instant how the votaries of that religion are every day thinking to do service and honour to God, by actions which are a dishonour and scandal to themselves.
``To be convinced of this, go with me for a moment into the prisons of the inquisition.''-----[God help my poor brother Tom.]-----``Behold Religion, with Mercy and Justice chained down under her feet,-----there sitting ghastly upon a black tribunal, propped up with racks and instruments of torment. Hark!-----hark! what a piteous groan!'' [Here Trim's face turned as pale as ashes.] ``See the melancholy wretch who uttered it''-----[Here the tears began to trickle down], ``just brought forth to undergo the anguish of a mock trial, and endure the utmost pains that a studied system of cruelty has been able to invent.''-----[D---n them all, quoth Trim, his colour returning into his face as red as blood.]------``Behold this helpless victim delivered up to his tormentors, -----his body so wasted with sorrow and confinement.''----- [Oh! 'tis my brother, cried poor Trim in a most passionate exclamation, dropping the sermon upon the ground, and clapping his hands together-----I fear 'tis poor Tom. My father's and my uncle Toby's hearts yearned with sympathy for the poor fellow's distress;-----even Slop himself acknowledged pity for him.-----why, Trim, said my father, this is not a history,----'tis a sermon thou art reading;-----prithee begin the sentence again.]-----``Behold this helpless victim delivered up to his tormentors,-----his body so wasted with sorrow and confinement, you will see every nerve and muscle as it suffers.
``Observe the last movement of that horrid engine!'' [I would rather face a cannon, quoth Trim, stamping.]----- ``See what convulsions it has thrown him into!------Consider the nature of the posture in which he now lies stretched----
``----Consider the nature of the posture in which he now lies stretched,-----what exquisite torture he endures by it! -----'Tis all nature can bear!-----Good God! See how it keeps his weary soul hanging upon his trembling lips,----- willing to take its leave,----but not suffered to depart!----- Behold the unhappy wretch led back to his cell!'' [Then, thank God however, quoth Trim, they have not killed him] -----``See him dragged out of it again to meet the flames, and the insults in his last agonies, which this principle,-----this principle that there can be religion without mercy has prepared for him.'' [Then, thank God,-----he is dead, quoth Trim,-----he is out of his pain,-----and they have done their worst at him.----0 Sirs!-----Hold your peace, Trim, said my father, going on with the sermon, lest Trim should incense Dr. Slop,-----we shall never have done at this rate.]
``The surest way to try the merit of any disputed notion is to trace down the consequences such a notion has produced, and compare them with the spirit of Christianity;----'tis the short and decisive rule which our Saviour hath left us, for these and suchlike cases, and it is worth a thousand arguments-----By their fruits ye shall know them.
``I will add no further to the length of this sermon than by two or three short and independent rules deducible from it.
``First, whenever a man talks loudly against religion,----- always suspect that it is not his reason, but his passions which have got the better of his CREED. A bad life and a good belief are disagreeable and troublesome neighbours, and where they separate, depend upon it, 'tis for no other cause but quietness' sake.
``Secondly, when a man, thus represented, tells you in any particular instance,-----That such a thing goes against his conscience,----always believe he means exactly the same thing as when he tells you such a thing goes against his stomach;-----a present want of appetite being generally the true cause of both.
``In a word,----trust that man in nothing who has not a CONSCIENCE in everything.
``And, in your own case, remember this plain distinction, a mistake in which has ruined thousands,-----that your conscience is not a law:-----No, God and reason made the law, and have placed conscience within you to determine;------ not like an Asiatic cadi, according to the ebbs and flows of his own passions,-----but like a British judge in this land of liberty and good sense, who makes no new law, but faithfully declares that law which he knows already written.',
FINIS
Thou hast read the sermon extremely well, Trim, quoth my father.-----If he had spared his comments, replied Dr. Slop he would have read it much better. I should have read it ten times better, Sir, answered Trim, but that my heart was so full.-----That was the very reason, Trim, replied my father, which has made thee read the sermon as well as thou hast done; and if the clergy of our church, continued my father, addressing himself to Dr. Slop, would take part in what they deliver as deeply as this poor fellow has done;-----as their compositions are fine (I deny it, quoth Dr. Slop),--I maintain it that the eloquence of our pulpits, with such subjects to inflame it,----would be a model for the whole world: -----But alas! continued my father, and I own it, Sir, with sorrow, that, like French politicians in this respect, what they gain in the cabinet they lose in the field.-----'Twere a pity, quoth my uncle, that this should be lost. I like the sermon well, replied my father;-----'tis dramatic,-----and there is something in that way of writing, when skilfully managed, which catches the attention.-----we preach much in that way with us, and Dr. Slop.-----I know that very well, said my father,-----but in a tone and manner which disgusted Dr. Slop, full as much as his assent, simply, could have pleased him. ----But in this, added Dr. Slop, a little piqued,------our sermons have greatly the advantage, that we never introduce any character into them below a patriarch or a patriarch's
The similitude of the style and manner of it with those my father constantly had heard preached in his parish church was the ground of his conjecture,-----proving it as strongly, as an argument a priori could prove such a thing to a philosophic mind, That it was Yorick's and no one's else:-----It was proved to be so a posteriori the day after, when Yorick sent a servant to my uncle Toby's house to enquire after it.
It seems that Yorick, who was inquisitive after all kinds of knowledge, had borrowed Stevinus of my uncle Toby, and had carelessly popped his sermon as soon as he had made it, into the middle of Stevinus; and, by an act of forgetfulness, to which he was ever subject, he had sent Stevinus home, and his sermon to keep him company.
Ill-fated sermon! Thou wast lost, after this recovery of thee, a second time, dropped through an unsuspected fissure in thy master's pocket, down into a treacherous and a tattered lining,-----trod deep into the dirt by the left hind foot of his Rosinante, inhumanly stepping upon thee as thou falledst;-----buried ten days in the mire,-----raised up out of it by a beggar, sold for a halfpenny to a parish clerk,----- transferred to his parson,----lost forever to thy own, the remainder of his days,----nor restored to his restless MANES till this very moment, that I tell the world the story.
Can the reader believe that this sermon of Yorick's was preached at an assize, in the cathedral of York, before a thousand witnesses, ready to give oath of it, by a certain prebendary of that church, and actually printed by him when he had done,----and within so short a space as two years and three months after Yorick's death.-----Yorick, indeed, was never better served in his life!-----but it was a little hard to maltreat him before, and plunder him after he was laid in his grave.
However, as the gentleman who did it was in perfect charity with Yorick,-----and, in conscious justice, printed but a few copies to give away;--and that, I am told, he could
The first is, That, in doing justice, I may give rest to Yorick's ghost;-----which, as the country people,-----and some others, believe,----still walks.
The second reason is, That, by laying open this story to the
world, I gain an opportunity of informing it,----That in case
the character of Parson Yorick and this sample of his
sermons is liked,-----that there are now in the possession of the
Shandy family as many as will make a handsome volume,
at the world's service,-----and much good may they do it.
It is now proper, I think, quoth Dr. Slop (clearing up his
looks), as we are in a condition to be of some service to Mrs.
Shandy, to send upstairs to know how she goes on.
I have ordered, answered my father, the old midwife to
come down to us upon the least difficulty;-----for you must
know, Dr. Slop, continued my father, with a perplexed kind
of a smile upon his countenance, that by express treaty,
solemnly ratified between me and my wife, you are no more
than an auxiliary in this affair,-----and not so much as that,
-----unless the lean old mother of a midwife abovestairs cannot
do without you.-----women have their particular fancies,
and in points of this nature, continued my father, where they
bear the whole burden, and suffer so much acute pain for the
advantage of our families, and the good of the species,----
they claim a right of deciding, en Souverains, in whose hands,
and in what fashion, they choose to undergo it.
They are in the right of it,-----quoth my uncle Toby. But,
Sir, replied Dr. Slop, not taking notice of my uncle Toby's
what I have to inform you comes, I own, a little out of its due course;----for it should have been told a hundred and fifty pages ago, but that I foresaw then 'twould come in pat hereafter, and be of more advantage here than elsewhere. -----writers had need look before them to keep up the spirit and connection of what they have in hand.
when these two things are done,-----the curtain shall be drawn up again, and my uncle Toby, my father, and Dr. Slop shall go on with their discourse, without any more interruption.
First, then, the matter which I have to remind you of is this;-----that from the specimens of singularity in my father's notions in the point of Christian names, and that other point previous thereto,-----you was led, I think, into an opinion (and I am sure I said as much) that my father was a gentleman altogether as odd and whimsical in fifty other opinions.
-----Mr. Shandy, my father, Sir, would see nothing in the light in which others placed it;------he placed things in his own light;------he would weigh nothing in common scales; ----no,------he was too refined a researcher to lay open to so gross an imposition.----To come at the exact weight of things in the scientific steel yard, the fulcrum, he would say, should be almost invisible, to avoid all friction from popular tenets;-----without this the minutiae of philosophy, which should always turn the balance, will have no weight at all. ----Knowledge, like matter, he would affirm, was divisible in infinitum,------that the grains and scruples were as much a part of it as the gravitation of the whole world.-----In a word, he would say, error was error,-----no matter where it fell,----whether in a fraction,----or a pound,-----'twas alike fatal to truth, and she was kept down at the bottom of her well as inevitably by a mistake in the dust of a butterfly's wing,-----as in the disk of the sun, the moon, and all the stars of heaven put together.
He would often lament that it was for want of considering this properly, and of applying it skilfully to civil matters, as well as to speculative truths, that so many things in this world were out of joint;----that the political arch was giving way;-----and that the very foundations of our excellent constitution in church and state were so sapped as estimators had reported.
You cry out, he would say, we are a ruined, undone people.----why? he would ask, making use of the sorites or syllogism of Zeno and Chrysippus, without knowing it belonged to them.----why? why are we a ruined people?----- Because we are corrupted.-----whence is it, dear Sir, that we are corrupted?-----Because we are needy;----our poverty, and not our wills, consent.-----And wherefore, he would add, are we needy?-----From the neglect, he would answer, of our pence and our halfpence:-----Our banknotes, Sir, our guineas,-----nay our shillings, take care of themselves.
'Tis the same, he would say, throughout the whole circle of the sciences;-----the great, the established points of them are not to be broke in upon.----The laws of nature will defend themselves;-----but error-----(he would add, looking
This turn of thinking in my father is what I had to remind you of:-----The point you are to be informed of, and which I have reserved for this place, is as follows:
Amongst the many and excellent reasons with which my father had urged my mother to accept of Dr. Slop's assistance preferably to that of the old woman,-----there was one of a very singular nature; which, when he had done arguing the matter with her as a Christian, and came to argue it over again with her as a philosopher, he had put his whole strength to, depending indeed upon it as his sheet anchor. ------It failed him; though from no defect in the argument itself; but that, do what he could, he was not able for his soul to make her comprehend the drift of it.----Cursed luck!-----said he to himself, one afternoon, as he walked out of the room, after he had been stating it for an hour and a half to her, to no manner of purpose;------cursed luck! said he, biting his lip as he shut the door,----for a man to be master of one of the finest chains of reasoning in nature,-----and have a wife at the same time with such a headpiece that he cannot hang up a single inference withinside of it, to save his soul from destruction.
This argument, though it was entirely lost upon my mother,-----had more weight with him than all his other arguments joined together:-----I will therefore endeavour to do it justice,------and set it forth with all the perspicuity I am master of.
My father set out upon the strength of these two following axioms:
First, That an ounce of a man's own wit was worth a tun of other peoples; and,
Secondly (which, by the bye, was the groundwork of the first axiom,------though it comes last), That every man's wit must come from every man's own soul,------and no other body's.
Now, as it was plain to my father that all souls were by nature equal,----and that the great difference between the most acute and the most obtuse understanding-----was from no original sharpness or bluntness of one thinking substance above or below another,-----but arose merely from the lucky or unlucky organization of the body, in that part where the soul principally took up her residence,-----he had made it the subject of his enquiry to find out the identical place.
Now, from the best accounts he had been able to get of
If death, said my father, reasoning with himself, is nothing but the separation of the soul from the body;-----and if it is true that people can walk about and do their business without brains,------then certes the soul does not inhabit there. Q. E. D.
As for that certain very thin, subtle, and very fragrant juice which Coglionissimo Borri, the great Milanese physician, affirms, in a letter to Bartholine, to have discovered in the cellulae of the occipital parts of the cerebellum, and which he likewise affirms to be the principal seat of the reasonable soul (for, you must know, in these latter and more enlightened ages, there are two souls in every man living,----- the one, according to the great Metheglingius, being called the Animus, the other the Anima);-----as for this opinion, I say, of Borri,-----my father could never subscribe to it by any means; the very idea of so noble, so refined, so immaterial, and so exalted a being as the Anima, or even the Animus, taking up her residence, and sitting dabbling, like a tadpole, all day long, both summer and winter, in a puddle, ----or in a liquid of any kind, how thick or thin soever, he would say, shocked his imagination; he would scarce give the doctrine a hearing.
What, therefore, seemed the least liable to objections of any was that the chief sensorium, or headquarters of the soul, and to which place all intelligences were referred, and from whence all her mandates were issued,----was in, or near, the cerebellum,----or rather somewhere about the medulla oblongata, wherein it was generally agreed by Dutch anatomists that all the minute nerves from all the organs of the seven senses concentred, like streets and winding alleys, into a square.
So far there was nothing singular in my father's opinion; ----he had the best of philosophers, of all ages and climates,
He maintained that next to the due care to be taken in the act of propagation of each individual, which required all the thought in the world, as it laid the foundation of this incomprehensible contexture in which wit, memory, fancy, eloquence, and what is usually meant by the name of good natural parts, do consist;-----that next to this and his Christian name, which were the two original and most efficacious causes of all,-----that the third cause, or rather what logicians call the Causa sine qua non, and without which all that was done was of no manner of significance,-----was the preservation of this delicate and fine-spun web from the havoc which was generally made in it by the violent compression and crush which the head was made to undergo by the nonsensical method of bringing us into the world by that part foremost.
-----This requires explanation.
My father, who dipped into all hinds of books, upon looking into Lithopaedus Senonesis de Partu difficili,* published by Adrianus Smelvgot, had found out, That the lax and pliable state of a child's head in parturition, the bones of the cranium having no sutures at that time, was such-----that by force of the woman's efforts, which, in strong labour pains, was equal, upon an average, to a weight of 470 pounds avoirdupois acting perpendicularly upon it;----it so happened that, in 49 instances out of 50, the said head was compressed and moulded into the shape of an oblong conical piece of dough, such as a pastry cook generally rolls up in order to make a pie of.-----Good God! cried my father, what havoc and destruction must this make in the infinitely fine and tender texture of the cerebellum!-----Or if there is
* The author is here twice mistaken;------for Lithopaedus should be wrote thus, Lithopaedii Senonensis Icon. The second mistake is that this Lithopaedus is not an author, but a drawing of a petrified child. The account of this, published by Albosius, 1580, may be seen at the end of Cordaeus's works in Spachius. Mr. Tristram Shandy has been led into this error either from seeing Lithopaedus's name of late in a catalogue of learned writers in Dr. ----, or by mistaking Lithopaedus for Trinecavei- lius,----from the too great similtude of the names.
But how great was his apprehension when he further understood that this force, acting upon the very vertex of the head, not only injured the brain itself, or cerebrum,----- but that it necessarily squeezed and propelled the cerebrum towards the cerebellum, which was the immediate seat of the understanding.-----Angels and ministers of grace defend us! cried my father,------can any soul withstand this shock?----- No wonder the intellectual web is so rent and tattered as we see it; and that so many of our best heads are no better than a puzzled skein of silk,-----all perplexity,-----all confusion withinside.
But when my father read on, and was let into the secret that when a child was turned topsy-turvy, which was easy for an operator to do, and was extracted by the feet;------that instead of the cerebrum being propelled towards the cerebellum, the cerebellum, on the contrary, was propelled simply towards the cerebrum, where it could do no manner of hurt: ----By heavens! cried he, the world is in a conspiracy to drive out what little wit God has given us,----and the professors of the obstetric art are listed into the same conspiracy.----what is it to me which end of my son comes foremost into the world, provided all goes right after, and his cerebellum escapes uncrushed?
It is the nature of an hypothesis, when once a man has conceived it, that it assimilates everything to itself as proper nourishment; and, from the first moment of your begetting it, it generally grows the stronger by everything you see, hear, read, or understand. This is of great use.
When my father was gone with this about a month, there was scarce a phenomenon of stupidity or of genius which he could not readily solve by it;-----it accounted for the eldest son being the greatest blockhead in the family.---- Poor devil, he would say,-----he made way for the capacity of his younger brothers.-----It unriddled the observations of drivellers and monstrous heads,------showing, a priori, it could not be otherwise,-----unless * * I don't know what. It wonderfully explained and accounted for the acumen of the Asiatic genius, and that sprightlier turn, and a more penetrating intuition of minds, in warmer climates; not from the loose and commonplace solution of a clearer sky, and a more perpetual sunshine, &c.-----which, for aught he knew, might as well rareify and dilute the faculties of the soul into nothing, by one extreme,------as they are condensed
when my father had got so far,-----what a blaze of light did the accounts of the Caesarian section, and of the towering geniuses who had come safe into the world by it, cast upon this hypothesis! Here you see, he would say, there was no injury done to the sensorium;------no pressure of the head against the pelvis;----no propulsion of the cerebrum towards the cerebellum, either by the os pubis on this side, or the os coxcygis on that;-----and, pray, what were the happy consequences? why, Sir, your Julius Caesar, who gave the operation a name;----and your Hermes Trismegistus, who was born so before ever the operation had a name;----your Scipio Africanus; your Manlius Torquatus; our Edward the Sixth,----who, had he lived, would have done the same honour to the hypothesis:-----These, and many more, who figured high in the annals of fame,----all came sideway, Sir, into the world.
This incision of the abdomen and uterus ran for six weeks together in my father's head;--he had read, and was satisfied, that wounds in the epigastrium, and those in the matrix, were not mortal;-----so that the belly of the mother might be opened extremely well to give a passage to the child.-----He mentioned the thing one afternoon to my mother,-----merely as a matter of fact;-----but seeing her turn as pale as ashes at the very mention of it, as much as the operation flattered his hopes,------he thought it as well to say no more of it,----- contenting himself with admiring--what he thought was to no purpose to propose.
This was my father Mr. Shandy's hypothesis; concerning which I have only to add that my brother Bobby did as great honour to it (whatever he did to the family) as any one of the great heroes we spoke of:-----For happening not only to be christened, as I told you, but to be born too, when my father was at Epsom,-----being moreover my mother's first child,------coming into the world with his head foremost,----- and turning out afterwards a lad of wonderful slow parts,
This was not to be expected from one of the sisterhood, who are not easily to be put out of their way,----and was therefore one of my father's great reasons in favour of a man of science, whom he could better deal with.
Of all men in the world, Dr. Slop was the fittest for my father's purpose;------for though his new-invented forceps was the armour he had proved, and what he maintained, to be the safest instrument of deliverance,-----yet, it seems, he had scattered a word or two in his book in favour of the very thing which ran in my father's fancy;----though not with a view to the soul's good in extracting by the feet, as was my father's system,-----but for reasons merely obstetrical.
This will account for the coalition betwixt my father and Dr. Slop, in the ensuing discourse, which went a little hard against my uncle Toby.------In what manner a plain man, with nothing but common sense, could bear up against two such allies in science----is hard to conceive.-----You may conjecture upon it, if you please,-----and whilst your imagination is in motion, you may encourage it to go on, and discover by what causes and effects in nature it could come to pass that my uncle Toby got his modesty by the wound he received upon his groin.-----You may raise a system to account for the loss of my nose by marriage articles,----and show the world how it could happen that I should have the misfortune to be called TRISTRAM, in opposition to my father's hypothesis, and the wish of the whole family, godfathers and godmothers not excepted.-----These, with fifty other points left yet unraveled, you may endeavour to solve if you have time;----but I tell you beforehand it will be in vain, for not the sage Alquife, the magician in Don Belianis of Greece, nor the no less famous Urganda, the sorceress his wife (were they alive), could pretend to come within a league of the truth.
The reader will be content to wait for a full explanation of these matters till the next year,-----when a series of things will be laid open which he little expects.
Multitudinis imperitae non formido judicia; meis
tamen, rogo, parcant opuscuiis--in quibus fuit
propositi semper, a jocis ad seria, a seris vicissim
- ad jocos transire.
--JOAN. SARESBERIENSIS,
Episcopus Lugdun. ----``I wish, Dr. Slop,'' quoth my uncle Toby (repeating his wish for Dr. Slop a second time, and with a degree of more zeal and earnestness in his manner of wishing than he had wished it at first) *-----``I wish, Dr. Slop,'' quoth my uncle Toby, ``you had seen what prodigious armies we had in Flanders.''
My uncle Toby's wish did Dr. Slop a disservice which his heart never intended any man;-----Sir, it confounded him -----and thereby putting his ideas first into confusion, and then to flight, he could not rally them again for the soul of him.
In all disputes,-----male or female,----whether for honour, for profit, or for love,----it makes no difference in the case;------nothing is more dangerous, Madam, than a wish coming sideways in this unexpected manner upon a man: the safest way in general to take off the force of the wish is for the party wished at instantly to get up upon his legs---- and wish the wisher something in return, of pretty near the same value,-----so balancing the account upon the spot,
* Vid. Vol. II, p. 118.
This will be fully illustrated to the world in my chapter of wishes.----
Dr. Slop did not understand the nature of this defence;
-----he was puzzled with it, and it put an entire stop to the
dispute for four minutes and half;-----five had been fatal to
it:-----my father saw the danger-----the dispute was one of
the most interesting disputes in the world, ``whether the
child of his prayers and endeavours should be born without
a head or with one:''-----he waited to the last moment to
allow Dr. Slop, in whose behalf the wish was made, his right
of returning it; but perceiving, I say, that he was
confounded, and continued looking with that perplexed vacuity
of eye which puzzled souls generally stare with,-----first in
my uncle Toby's face----then in his-----then up-----then
down-----then east-----east and by east, and so on,-----
coasting it along by the plinth of the wainscot till he had
got to the opposite point of the compass,------and that he
had actually begun to count the brass nails upon the arm of
his chair--my father thought there was no time to be lost
with my uncle Toby, so took up the discourse as follows.
------Now, in this I think my father was much to blame;
and I will give you my reasons for it.
Matters of no more seeming consequence in themselves
than ``Whether my father should have taken off his wig with
his right hand or with his left''----have divided the greatest
kingdoms, and made the crowns of the monarchs who
governed them to totter upon their heads.--But need I tell
you, Sir, that the circumstances with which everything in
this world is begirt give everything in the world its size and
As my father-s India handkerchief was in his right coat pocket, he should by no means have suffered his right hand to have got engaged: on the contrary, instead of taking off his wig with it, as he did, he ought to have committed that entirely to the left; and then, when the natural exigency my father was under of rubbing his head called out for his handkerchief, he would have had nothing in the world to have done, but to have put his right hand into his right coat pocket and taken it out;------which he might have done without any violence, or the least ungraceful twist in any one tendon or muscle of his whole body.
In this case (unless, indeed, my father had been resolved to make a fool of himself by holding the wig stiff in his left hand-----or by making some nonsensical angle or other at his elbow joint, or armpit),-----his whole attitude had been easy----natural-----unforced: Reynolds himself, as great and gracefully as he paints, might have painted him as he sat.
Now, as my father managed this matter,-----consider what a devil of a figure my father made of himself.
------In the latter end of Queen Anne's reign, and in the
beginning of the reign of King George the First------``Coat
pockets were cut very low down in the skirt.''------I need
say no more-----the father of mischief, had he been hammering
at it a month, could not have contrived a worse fashion
for one in my father's situation.
My father knit his brows, and as he knit them, all the blood in his body seemed to rush up into his face--my uncle Toby dismounted immediately.
-----I did not apprehend your uncle Toby was o'
horseback.-----
Zeno, Cleanthes, Diogenes Babylonius, Dionysius
Heracleotes, Antipater, Panaetius, and Posidonius amongst the
Greeks;-----Cato and Varro and Seneca amongst the
Romans;-----Pantenus and Clemens Alexandrinus and
Montaigne amongst the Christians; and a score and a half of good
honest, unthinking, Shandean people as ever lived, whose
names I can't recollect,----all pretended that their jerkins
were made after this fashion;-----you might have rumpled
and crumpled, and doubled and creased, and fretted and
fridged the outsides of them all to pieces;-----in short, you
might have played the very devil with them, and at the same
time, not one of the insides of 'em would have been one button
the worse, for all you had done to them.
I believe in my conscience that mine is made up somewhat
after this sort:-----for never poor jerkin has been
tickled off at such a rate as it has been these last nine months
together,-----and yet I declare the lining to it,-----as far as
I am a judge of the matter, it is not a threepenny piece the
-----You, Messrs. the monthly Reviewers!-----how could you cut and slash my jerkin as you did?----how did you know but you would cut my lining too?
Heartily and from my soul, to the protection of that Being
who will injure none of us, do I recommend you and your
affairs,-----so God bless you;------only next month, if any one
of you should gnash his teeth, and storm and rage at me, as
some of you did last MAY (in which I remember the weather
was very hot),-----don't be exasperated if I pass it by again
with good temper,----being determined as long as I live or
write (which in my case means the same thing) never to give
the honest gentleman a worse word or a worse wish than my
uncle Toby gave the fly which buzzed about his nose all
dinnertime,-----``Go,----go poor devil,'' quoth he,'`----get
thee gone,-----why should I hurt thee? This world is surely
wide enough to hold both thee and me.''
Any man, I say, Madam, but my uncle Toby, the benignity
of whose heart interpreted every motion of the body in the
kindest sense the motion would admit of, would have
concluded my father angry and blamed him too. My uncle Toby
blamed nothing but the tailor who cut the pocket hole;----
so sitting still till my father had got his handkerchief out of
it, and looking all the time up in his face with inexpressible
good will-----my father at length went on as follows.
when Dr. Slop's maid delivered the green baize bag, with her master's instruments in it, to Obadiah, she very sensibly exhorted him to put his head and one arm through the strings, and ride with it slung across his body: so undoing the bowknot, to lengthen the strings for him, without any more ado, she helped him on with it. However, as this, in some measure, unguarded the mouth of the bag, lest anything should bolt out in galloping back at the speed Obadiah threatened, they consulted to take it off again; and in the great care and caution of their hearts, they had taken the two strings and tied them close (pursing up the mouth of the bag first) with half a dozen hard knots, each of which Obadiah, to make all safe, had twitched and drawn together with all the strength of his body.
This answered all that Obadiah and the maid intended; but was no remedy against some evils which neither he or she foresaw. The instruments, it seems, as tight as the bag was tied above, had so much room to play in it, towards the bottom (the shape of the bag being conical), that Obadiah could not make a trot of it but with such a terrible jingle, what with the tire-t@^ete, forceps, and squirt, as would have been enough, had Hymen been taking a jaunt that way, to have frightened him out of the country; but when Obadiah accelerated this motion, and from a plain trot assayed to prick his coach horse into a full gallop-----by heaven! Sir, -----the jingle was incredible.
As Obadiah had a wife and three children----the turpitude of fornication, and the many other political ill consequences of this jingling, never once entered his brain;-----he had however his objection, which came home to himself, and weighed with him, as it has ofttimes done with the greatest
In all distresses (except musical) where small cords are wanted,-----nothing is so apt to enter a man's head as his hatband:----the philosophy of this is so near the surface----- I scorn to enter into it.
As Obadiah's was a mixed case;-----mark, Sirs,-----I say a mixed case, for it was obstetrical,----scrip-tical, squirtical, Papistical,------and as far as the coach horse was concerned in it,-----caball-istical-----and only partly musical;-----Obadiah made no scruple of availing himself of the first expedient which offered;-----so taking hold of the bag and instruments, and griping them hard together with one hand, and with the finger and thumb of the other, putting the end of the hatband betwixt his teeth, and then slipping his hand down to the middle of it,-----he tied and cross-tied them all fast together from one end to the other (as you would cord a trunk) with such a multiplicity of roundabouts and intricate cross turns, with a hard knot at every intersection or point where the strings met,-----that Dr. Slop must have had three fifths of Job's patience at least to have unloosed them.------I think, in my conscience, that had NATURE been in one of her nimble moods, and in humour for such a contest-----and she and Dr. Slop both fairly started together----there is no man living who had seen the bag with all that Obadiah had done to it,-----and known likewise the great speed the goddess can make when she thinks proper, who would have had the least doubt remaining in his mind-----which of the two would have carried off the prize. My mother, Madam, had been de-livered sooner than the green bag infallibly-----at least by twenty knots.-----Sport of small accidents, Tristram Shandy! that thou art, and ever will be! had that trial been made for thee, and it was fifty to one but it had,--thy affairs had
A sudden trampling in the room above, near my mother's bed, did the proposition the very service I am speaking of. By all that's unfortunate, quoth Dr. Slop, unless I make haste, the thing will actually befall me as it is.
In the case of these knots then, and of the several obstructions which, may it please your Reverences, such knots cast in our way in getting through life-----every hasty man can whip out his penknife and cut through them.----'Tis wrong. Believe me, Sirs, the most virtuous way, and which both reason and conscience dictate,----is to take our teeth or our fingers to them.-----Dr. Slop had lost his teeth;--his favourite instrument, by extracting in a wrong direction, or by some misapplication of it unfortunately slipping, he had formerly, in a hard labour, knocked out three of the best of them, with the handle of it:--------he tried his fingers----alas! the nails of his fingers and thumbs were cut close.-----The deuce take it! I can make nothing of it either way, cried Dr. Slop.----- The trampling overhead near my mother's bedside increased. -----Pox take the fellow! I shall never get the knots untied as long as I live.-----My mother gave a groan-----Lend me your penknife----I must e'en cut the knots at last - - - - - pugh! - - - psha! - - - Lord! I have cut my thumb quite across to the very bone----curse the fellow-----if there was not another man midwife within fifty miles-----I am undone for this bout------I wish the scoundrel hanged----I wish he was shot----I wish all the devils in hell had him for a blockhead-------
My father had a great respect for Obadiah, and could not bear to hear him disposed of in such a manner--he had moreover some little respect for himself-----and could as ill bear with the indignity offered to himself in it.
Had Dr. Slop cut any part about him but his thumb--my father had passed it by-----his prudence had triumphed: as it was, he was determined to have his revenge.
Small curses, Dr. Slop, upon great occasions, quoth my father (condoling with him first upon the accident), are but so much waste of our strength and soul's health to no manner of purpose.------I own it, replied Dr. Slop.----They are like sparrow shot, quoth my uncle Toby (suspending his whistling), fired against a bastion.-----They serve, continued my father, to stir the humours-----but carry off none of their acrimony:----for my own part, I seldom swear or curse at all----I hold it bad----but if I fall into it, by surprise, I generally retain so much presence of mind (right, quoth my uncle Toby) as to make it answer my purpose-----that is, I swear on, till I find myself easy. A wise and a just man however would always endeavour to proportion the vent given to these humours, not only to the degree of them stirring within himself-----but to the size and ill intent of the offence upon which they are to fall.----``Injuries come only from the heart,''-----quoth my uncle Toby. For this reason, continued my father, with the most Cervantic gravity, I have the greatest veneration in the world for that gentleman who, in distrust of his own discretion in this point, sat down and composed (that is at his leisure) fit forms of swearing suitable to al l cases, from the lowest to the highest provocations which could possibly happen to him;----which forms being well considered by him, and such moreover as he could stand to, he kept them ever by him on the chimney piece, within his reach, ready for use.-----I never apprehended, replied Dr. Slop, that such a thing was ever thought of,-----much less executed. I beg your pardon-----answered my father; I was reading, though not using, one of them to my brother Toby this morning, whilst he poured out the tea------'tis here upon the shelf over my head;-----but if I remember right, 'tis too violent for a cut of the thumb.-----Not at all, quoth Dr. Slop ----the devil take the fellow.-----Then, answered my father, 'Tis much at your service, Dr. Slop----on condition you will read it aloud;-----so rising up and reaching down a form of excommunication of the church of Rome, a copy of which my father (who was curious in his collections) had procured out of the leger book of the church of Rochester, writ by ERNULPHUS the bishop------with a most affected seriousness of look and voice, which might have cajoled ERNULPHUS himself,-----he put it into Dr. Slop's hands.-----Dr. Slop wrapt his thumb up in the corner of his handkerchief, and with a wry face, though without any suspicion, read aloud, as follows,-------my uncle Toby whistling Liliabul- lero, as loud as he could, all the time.
Textus de Ecclesi@^a Roffensi, per Ernulfum Episcopum.
CAP. XI.
EXCOMMUNICATIO* Ex auctoritate Dei omnipotentis, Patris, et Filij, et Spiritus Sancti, et sanctorum canonum, sanctaeque et intemeratae Virginis Dei genetricis Mariae,
* As the genuineness of the consultation of the Sorbonne upon the question of baptism was doubted by some, and denied by others,----'twas thought proper to print the original of this excommunication; for the copy of which Mr. Shandy returns thanks to the chapter clerk of the dean and chapter of Rochester.
-------Atque omnium coelestium virtutum, angelorum, archangelorum, thronorum, dominationum, potestatuum, cherubin ac seraphin, & sanctorum patriarchum, prophetarum, & omnium apostolorum et evangelistarum, & sanctorum innocentum, qui in conspectu Agni soli digni inventi sunt cantl-- cum cantare novum, et sanctorum martyrum, et sanctorum confessorum, et sanctarum virginum, atque omnium simul sanctorum et electorum Dei,----Excommunicamus, et anathe
vel os s vel os s matizamus hunc furem, vel hunc malefactorem, N. N. et a liminibus sanctae Dei ecclesiae sequestramus et aeternis sup
vel i n pliciis excruciandus, mancipetur, cum Dathan et Abirarn, et cum his qui dixerunt Domino Deo, Recede @`a nobis, scienti am viarum tuarum nolumus: et sicut aqu@^a ignis extingnitur, sic
vel eornm n extinguatur lucerna ejus in secula seculorum nisi respuerit, et
n ad satisfactionem venerit. Amen.
os
Maledicat illum Deus Pater qui hominem creavit. Maledicat
os os illum Dei Filius qui pro homine passus est. Maledicat illum
os Spiritus Sanctus qui in baptismo effusus est. Maledicat illum sancta crux, quam Christus pro nostr@^a salute hostem triumphans, ascendit.
os
Maledicat illurn sancta Dei generrix et perpetua Virgo
os Maria. Maledicat illum sanctus Michael, animarum susceptor
os sacrarum. Maledicant illum omnes angeli et archangeli, principatus et potestates, omnisque militi a coelestis.
os
Maledicat illum patriarcharum et prophetarum laudabili s
os numerus. Maledicat illum sanctus Johannes praecursor et Baptista Christi, et sanctus Petrus, et sanctus Paulus, atque sanctus Andreas, omnesque Christi apostoli, simul et caeteri discipuli, quatuor quoque evangelistae, qui sua praedicatione
os mundum universum converterunt. Maledicat illum cuneus martyrum et confessorum mirificus, qui Deo bonis operibus placitus inventus est.
``By the authority of God Almighty, the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, and of the undefiled Virgin Mary, mother and patroness of our Saviour, and of all the celestial virtues, angels archangels, thrones, dominions, powers, cherubins and seraphins, and of all the holy patriarchs, prophets, and of all the apostles and evangelists, and of the holy innocents, who in the sight of the holy Lamb are found worthy to sing the new song of the holy martyrs and holy confessors, and of the holy virgins, and of all the saints together with the holy and elect of God.-----May he [Obadiah] be damned [for tying these knots].-----we excommunicate and anathematise him, and from the thresholds of the holy church of God Almighty we sequester him, that he may be tormented, disposed, and delivered over with Dathan and Abiram, and with those who say unto the Lord God, Depart from us, we desire none of thy ways. And as fire is quenched with water, so let the light of him be put out forevermore, unless it shall repent him [Obadiah, of the knots which he has tied] and make satisfaction [for them]. Amen.
``May the Father who created man curse him.-----May the Son who suffered for us curse him.-----May the Holy Ghost who was given to us in baptism curse him [Obadiah].----- May the holy cross which Christ for our salvation, triumphing over his enemies, ascended-----curse him.
``May the holy and eternal Virgin Mary, mother of God, curse him.-----May St. Michael, the advocate of holy souls, curse him.----May all the angels and archangels, principalities and powers, and all the heavenly armies, curse him.'' [Our armies swore terribly in Flanders, cried my uncle Toby,---- but nothing to this.-----For my own part, I could not have a heart to curse my dog so.]
``May St. John the precursor, and St. John the Baptist, and St. Peter and St. Paul, and St. Andrew, and al l other Christ's apostles, together curse him. And may the rest of his disciples and four evangelists, who by their preaching converted the universal world,-----and may the holy and wonderful company of martyrs and confessors, who by their holy works are found pleasing to God Almighty, curse him'' [Obadiah].
Maledicant illum sacrarum virginum chori quae mundi vana causa honoris Christi respuenda contempserunt. Male
os dicant illum omnes sancti qui ab initio mundi usque in finem seculi Deo dilecti inveniuntur.
os
Maledicant illum coeli et terra, et omnia sancta in eis manenti a.
i n n
Maledictus sit ubicunque fuerit, sive in domo, sive in agro, sive in vi@^a, sive in serrit@^a, sive in silv@^a, sive in aqu@^a, sive in ecclesi@^a.
i n
Maledictus sit vivendo, moriendo,------------------------ manducando, bibendo, esuriendo, sitiendo, jejunando, dormitando, dorrriendo, vigilando, ambulando, stando, sedendo, jacendo, operando, quiescendo, mingendo, cacando, flebotomando.
i n
Maledictus sit in totis viribus corpotis.
i n
Maledictus sit intus et exterius.
i n i n
Maledictus sit in capillis; maledictus sit in cerebro. Male
i n dictus sit in vertice, in temporibus, in fronte, in auriculis, in superciliis, in oculis, in genis, in maxillis, in naribus, in dentibus, mordacibus sive molaribus, in labiis, in guttere, in humeris, in harnis, in brachiis, in manubus, in digitis, in pectore, in corde, et in omnibus interioribus stomacho tenus, in renibus, in inguinibus, in femore, in genitalibus, in coxis, in genubus, in cruribus, in pedibus, et in unguibus.
Maledictus sit in totis compagibus membrorum, a vertice capitis, usque ad plantam pedis-----non sit in eo sanitas.
``May the holy choir of the holy virgins, who for the honour of Christ have despised the things of the world, damn him.-----May all the saints, who from the beginning of the world to everlasting ages are found to be beloved of God, damn him.-----May the heavens and earth, and all the holy things remaining therein, damn him [Obadiah] or her [or whoever else had a hand in tying these knots].
``May he [Obadiah] be damned wherever he be,----- whether in the house or the stables, the garden or the field, or the highway; or in the path, or in the wood, or in the water, or in the church.------May he be cursed in living, in dying.'' [Here my uncle Toby, taking the advantage of a minim in the second bar of his tune, kept whistling one continual note to the end of the sentence-----Dr. Slop with his division of curses moving under him, like a running bass all the way.] ``May he be cursed in eating and drinking, in being hungry, in being thirsty, in fasting, in sleeping, in slumbering, in walking, in standing, in sitting, in lying, in working, in resting, in pissing, in shitting, and in bloodletting.
``May he [Obadiah] be cursed in all the faculties of his body.
``May he be cursed inwardly and outwardly.-----May he be cursed in the hair of his head.-----May he be cursed in his brains, and in his vertex'' [that is a sad curse, quoth my father], ``in his temples, in his forehead, in his ears, in his eyebrows, in his cheeks, in his jawbones, in his nostrils, in his foreteeth and grinders, in his lips, in his throat, in his shoulders, in his wrists, in his arms, in his hands, in his fingers.
``May he be damned in his mouth, in his breast, in his heart and purtenance, down to the very stomach.
``May he be cursed in his reins, and in his groin'' [God in heaven forbid, quoth my uncle Toby],-----``in his thighs, in his genitals'' [my father shook his head], ``and in his hips, and in his knees, his legs, and feet, and toenails.
``May he be cursed in all the joints and articulations of his members, from the top of his head to the sole of his foot, may there be no soundness in him.
Maledicat illum Christus Filius Dei vivi toto suae majestatis imperio ---et insurgat adversus illum coelum cum omnibus virtutibus quae in eo moventur ad damnandum eum, nisi penituerit ed ad satisfactionem venerit. Amen. Fiat, fiat. Amen.
----By the golden beard of Jupiter------and of Juno (if her majesty wore one), and by the beards of the rest of your heathen worships, which by the bye was no small number, since what with the beards of your celestial gods, and gods aerial and aquatic,-----to say nothing of the beards of towngods and country gods, or of the celestial goddesses your wives, or of the infernal goddesses your whores and concubines (that is in case they wore 'em),----all which beards, as Varro tells me upon his word and honour, when mustered up together, made no less than thirty thousand effective beards upon the pagan establishment;------every beard of which claimed the rights and privileges of being stroked and sworn by,-----by all these beards together then,----I vow and protest that of the two bad cassocks I am worth in the world, I would have given the better of them, as freely as ever Cid Hamet offered his,-----only to have stood by, and heard my uncle Toby's accompaniment.]
----``Curse him,'' continued Dr. Slop,----``and may heaven with all the powers which move therein rise up against him, curse and damn him [Obadiah] unless he repent and make satisfaction. Amen. So be it,----so be it. Amen.''
I declare, quoth my uncle Toby, my heart would not let me curse the devil himself with so much bitterness.------He is the father of curses, replied Dr. Slop.----So am not I, replied my uncle.-----But he is cursed, and damned already, to all eternity,------replied Dr. Slop.
I am sorry for it, quoth my uncle Toby.
Dr. Slop drew up his mouth, and was just beginning to re-turn my uncle Toby the compliment of his whu------u-----u ----or interjectional whistle,--when the door hastily opening in the next chapter but one------put an end to the affair-.
I'll undertake this moment to prove it to any man in the world, except to a connoisseur;----though I declare I object only to a connoisseur in swearing,----as I would do to a connoisseur in painting, &c., &c., the whole set of 'em are so hung round and befetished with the bobs and trinkets of criticism;----or to drop my metaphor which by the bye is a pity,----for I have fetched it as far as from the coast of Guinea;-----their heads, Sir, are stuck so full of rules and compasses, and have that eternal propensity to apply them upon all occasions, that a work of genius had better go to the devil at once, than stand to be pricked and tortured to death by 'em.
----And how did Garrick speak the soliloquy last night? -----Oh, against all rule, my Lord,-----most ungrammatically! betwixt the substantive and the adjective, which should agree together in number, case, and gender, he made a breach thus,-----stopping, as if the point wanted settling;----and betwixt the nominative case, which your Lordship knows should govern the verb, he suspended his voice in the epilogue a dozen times, three seconds and three fifths by a stop watch, my Lord, each time.----Admirable grammarian!-----But in suspending his voice-----was the sense suspended likewise? Did no expression of attitude or countenance fill up the chasm?----was the eye silent? Did you narrowly look?----- I looked only at the stop watch, my Lord.-----Excellent observer!
And what of this new book the whole world makes such a rout about?----Oh! 'tis out of all plumb, my Lord,----- quite an irregular thing!----not one of the angles at the four corners was a right angle.--I had my rule and compasses, &c., my Lord, in my pocket.--Excellent critic!
----And for the epic poem your Lordship bid me look at;
-----And did you step in, to take a look at the grand picture, in your way back.----'Tis a melancholy daub! my Lord; not one principle of the pyramid in any one group! -----and what a price!----for there is nothing of the colouring of Titian,------the expression of Rubens,------the grace of Raphael,-----the purity of Domenichino,-----the cor- regiescity of Correggio,-----the learning of Poussin,------the airs of Guido,-----the taste of the Carraccis,-----or the grand contour of Angelo.-----Grant me patience, just heaven!----- Of all the cants which are canted in this canting world,---- though the cant of hypocrites may be the worst,-----the cant of criticism is the most tormenting!
I would go fifty miles on foot, for I have not a horse worth riding on, to kiss the hand of that man whose generous heart will give up the reins of his imagination into his author's hands,-----be pleased he knows not why, and cares not wherefore.
Great Apollo! if thou art in a giving humour,-----give me, -----I ask no more, but one stroke of native humour, with a single spark of thy own fire along with it,----and send Mercury, with the rules and compasses, if he can be spared, with my compliments to----no matter.
Now to anyone else, I will undertake to prove that all the oaths and imprecations which we have been puffing off upon the world for these two hundred and fifty years last past, as originals,-----except St. Paul's thumb,----God's flesh and God's fish, which were oaths monarchical, and, considering who made them, not much amiss; and as kings' oaths, 'tis not much matter whether they were fish or flesh;------else, I say, there is not an oath, or at least a curse amongst them, which has not been copied over and over again out of Ernulphus, a thousand times: but, like all other copies, how infinitely short of the force and spirit of the original!-----It is thought to be no bad oath,------and by itself passes very well------ ``G--d damn you.''-----Set it beslde Ernulphus's-----``God almighty the Father damn you,----God the Son damn you, ----God the Holy Ghost damn you,''----you see 'tis nothing ----There is an Orientality in his we cannot rise up to: besides, he is more copious in his invention,------possessed more of the excellencies of a swearer,------had such a thorough knowledge of the human frame, its membranes, nerves,
My father, who generally looked upon everything in a light very different from all mankind,-----would, after all, never allow this to be an original.-----He considered rather Ernulphus's anathema as an institute of swearing, in which, as he suspected, upon the decline of swearing in some milder pontificate, Ernulphus, by order of the succeeding pope, had with great learning and diligence collected together all the laws of it;-----for the same reason that Justinian, in the decline of the empire, had ordered his chancellor Tribonian to collect the Roman or civil laws all together into one code or digest,----lest through the rust of time,-----and the fatality of all things committed to oral tradition, they should be lost to the world forever.
For this reason my father would ofttimes affirm there was not an oath, from the great and tremendous oath of william the Conqueror (By the splendour of God) down to the lowest oath of a scavenger (Damn your eyes) which was not to be found in Ernulphus.-----In short, he would add,------l defy a man to swear out of it.
The hypothesis is, like most of my father's, singular and
ingenious too;----nor have I any objection to it but that it
overturns my own.
Human nature is the same in all professions.
The midwife had just before been put over Dr. Slop's head.
----He had not digested it.------No, replied Dr. Slop, 'twould
be full as proper if the midwife came down to me.-----I like
subordination, quoth my uncle Toby,-----and but for it, after
the reduction of Lille, I know not what might have become
of the garrison of Ghent, in the mutiny for bread, in the
year Ten.-----Nor, replied Dr. Slop (parodying my uncle
Toby's hobby-horsical reflection, though full as
hobbyhorsically himself),----do l know, Captain Shandy, what
might have become of the garrison abovestairs, in the mutiny
and confusion I find all things are in at present, but for the
subordination of fingers and thumbs to * * * * * *----- the
application of which, Sir, under this accident of mine, comes
in so a propos that without it, the cut upon my thumb might
have been felt by the Shandy family, as long as the Shandy
family had a name.
It is a singular stroke of eloquence (at least it was so when
eloquence flourished at Athens and Rome, and would be so
now, did orators wear mantles) not to mention the name of
a thing, when you had the thing about you, in petto, ready
to produce, pop, in the place you want it. A scar, an axe, a
sword, a pinked doublet, a rusty helmet, a pound and a half
of potashes in an urn, or a three-halfpenny pickle pot,
----but above all, a tender infant royally accoutred.-----
Though if it was too young, and the oration as long as
Tully's second Philippic,-----it must certainly have beshit the
orator's mantle.------And then again, if too old,-----it must
have been unwieldy and incommodious to his action,-----so
as to make him lose by his child almost as much as he could
gain by it.-----Otherwise, when a state orator has hit the
precise age to a minute,-----hid his BAMBINO in his mantle
so cunningly that no mortal could smell it,----and produced
it so critically that no soul could say it came in by head
and shoulders,-----Oh, Sirs! it has done wonders.------It has
These feats however are not to be done, except in those
states and times, I say, where orators wore mantles,--and
pretty large ones too, my brethren, with some twenty or
fiveand-twenty yards of good purple, superfine, marketable cloth
in them,----with large flowing folds and doubles, and in a
great style of design.-----All which plainly shows, may it
please your worships, that the decay of eloquence, and the
little good service it does at present, both within and without
doors, is owing to nothing else in the world but short coats,
and the disuse of trunk hose.-----we can conceal nothing
under ours, Madam, worth showing.
when a proposition can be taken in two senses,----'tis a
law in disputation, That the respondent may reply to which of
the two he pleases, or finds most convenient for him.-----This
threw the advantage of the argument quite on my uncle
Toby's side.-----``Good God!'' cried my uncle Toby, ``are chil-
dren brought into the world with a squirt?''
Pray do, added my uncle Toby.
-----what the possibility was, Dr. Slop whispered very low to my father, and then to my uncle Toby.--There is no such danger, continued he, with the head.-----No, in truth, quoth my father,----but when your possibility has taken place at the hip,-----you may as well take off the head too.
-----It is morally impossible the reader should understand
this;------'tis enough Dr. Slop understood it;------so taking the
green baize bag in his hand, with the help of Obadiah's
pumps he tripped pretty nimbly, for a man of his size, across
the room to the door,-------and from the door was shown
the way, by the good old midwife, to my mother's apartment.
-----Here-----pray, Sir, take hold of my cap,-----nay, take
the bell along with it, and my pantofles too.------
Now, Sir, they are all at your service; and I freely make
you a present of 'em, on condition you give me all your
attention to this chapter.
Though my father said, ``he knew not how it happened,''
----yet he knew very well how it happened;--and at the
instant he spoke it, was predetermined in his mind to give
my uncle Toby a clear account of the matter by a
metaphysical dissertation upon the subject of duration and its
simple modes, in order to show my uncle Toby by what
mechanism and mensurations in the brain it came to pass
that the rapid succession of their ideas, and the eternal
scampering of discourse from one thing to another, since Dr.
Slop had come into the room, had lengthened out so short a
period to so inconceivable an extent.----I know not how it
happens,------cried my father,--but it seems an age.
-----'Tis owing, entirely quoth my uncle Toby, to the
succession of our ideas.
My father, who had an itch in common with all philosophers
Do you understand the theory of that affair? replied my father.
Not I, quoth my uncle.
-----But you have some ideas, said my father, of what you talk about.-----
No more than my horse, replied my uncle Toby.
Gracious heaven! cried my father, looking upwards, and clasping his two hands together,----there is a worth in thy honest ignorance, brother Toby;-----'twere almost a pity to exchange it for a knowledge.-----But I'll tell thee.-----
To understand what time is aright, without which we never can comprehend infinity, insomuch as one is a portion of the other,-----we ought seriously to sit down and consider what idea it is we have of duration, so as to give a satisfactory account how we came by it.--what is that to anybody? quoth my uncle Toby.* For if you will turn your eyes in- wards upon your mind, continued my father, and observe at- tentively, you will perceive, brother, that whilst you and I are talking together, and thinking and smoking our pipes; or whilst we receive successively ideas in our minds; we know that we do exist, and so we estimate the existence or the con- tinuation of the existence of ourselves, or anything else com- mensurate to the succession of any ideas in our minds, the duration of ourselves, or any such other thing coexisting with our thinking,-----and so according to that preconceived----
* Vid. Locke.
-------''tis owing to this, replied my father, that in our computations of time, we are so used to minutes, hours, weeks, and months,------and of clocks (I wish there was not a clock in the kingdom), to measure out their several portions to us, and to those who belong to us,-----that 'twill be well, if in time to come, the succession of our ideas be of any use or service to us at all.
Now, whether we observe it or no, continued my father, in
every sound man's head, there is a regular succession of
ideas of one sort or other which follow each other in train
just like--------A train of artillery? said my uncle Toby.-----
A train of a fiddlestick!----quoth my father,------which follow
and succeed one another in our minds at certain
distances, just like the images in the inside of a lantern turned
round by the heat of a candle.-----I declare, quoth my
uncle Toby, mine are like a smokejack.-----Then, brother
Toby, I have nothing inore to say to you upon the subject,
said my father.
As for my uncle Toby, his smokejack had not made a dozen revolutions before he fell alseep also.-----Peace be with them both.----Dr. Slop is engaged with the midwife and my mother abovestairs.----Trim is busy in turning an old pair of jack boots into a couple of mortars to be employed in the siege of Messina next summer,------and is this instant boring the touchholes with the point of a hot poker. ----All my heroes are off my hands;-----'tis the first time I have had a moment to spare,-----and I'll make use of it, and write my preface.
THE
AUTHOR'S PREFACE No, I'll not say a word about it,------here it is;-----in publishing it,-----I have appealed to the world,--and to the world I leave it;----it must speak for itself.
All I know of the matter is,-----when I sat down, my intent was to write a good book; and as far as the tenuity of my understanding would hold out,--a wise, aye, and a discreet,-----taking care only, as I went along, to put into it
Now, Agelastes (speaking dispraisingly) sayeth, That there may be some wit in it, for aught he knows,------but no judgment at all. And Triptolemus and Phutatorius, agreeing thereto, ask, How is it possible there should? for that wit and judgment in this world never go together; inasmuch as they are two operations differing from each other as wide as east is from west.-----So says Locke;------so are farting and hiccuping, say I. But in answer to this, Didius, the great church lawyer, in his code de fartandi et illustrandi fallaciis, doth maintain and make fully appear, That an illustration is no argument,-----nor do I maintain the wiping of a looking glass clean to be a syllogism;----but you all, may it please your worships, see the better for it,-----so that the main good these things do is only to clarify the understanding, previous to the application of the argument itself, in order to free it from any little motes, or specks of opacular matter, which, if left swimming therein, might hinder a conception and spoil all.
Now, my dear Anti-Shandeans, and thrice-able critics, and fellow-labourers (for to you I write this Preface),--and to you, most subtle statesmen and discreet doctors (do------pull off your beards) renowned for gravity and wisdom;----- Monopolus, my politician;-----Didius, my counsel; Kysarcius my friend;----Phutatorius, my guide;-----Gastripheres, the preserver of my life; Somnolentius, the balm and repose of it,-----not forgetting all others as well sleeping as waking, -----ecclesiastical as civil, whom for brevity, but out of no resentment to you, I lump all together.-----Believe me, right worthy,
My most zealous wish and fervent prayer in your behalf, and in my own too, in case the thing is not done already for us,----is that the great gifts and endowments both of wit and judgment, with everything which usually goes along with them,-----such as memory, fancy, genius, eloquence, quick parts, and whatnot, may this precious moment without stint or measure, let or hinderance, be poured down warm as each of us could bear it,-----scum and sediment an' all (for I would not have a drop lost) into the several receptacles, cells, cellules, domiciles, dormitories, refectories, and spare places of our brains,-----in such sort, that they might continue to be injected and tunned into, according to the true intent and
Bless us!----what noble work we should make!-----how should I tickle it off!-----and what spirits should I find myself in, to be writing away for such readers!-----and you, -----just heaven!-----with what raptures would you sit and read,------but oh!-----'tis too much,----I am sick,-----I faint away deliciously at the thoughts of it!------'tis more than nature can bear!-----lay hold of me,----I am giddy,-----I am stone blind,------I'm dying,----I am gone.----Help! Help! Help!----But hold,--- I grow something better again for I am beginning to foresee, when this is over, that as we shall all of us continue to be great wits,-----we should never agree amongst ourselves, one day to an end:-----there would be so much satire and sarcasm,----scoffing and flouting, with rail-lying and reparteeing of it,------thrusting and parrying in one corner or another,-----there would be nothing but mischief amongst us.------Chaste stars! what biting and scratching, and what a racket and a clatter we should make, what with breaking of heads, and rapping of knuckles, and hitting of sore places,----there would be no such thing as living for us.
But then again, as we should all of us be men of great judgment, we should make up matters as fast as ever they went wrong; and though we should abominate each other, ten times worse than so many devils or devilesses, we should nevertheless, my dear creatures, be all courtesy and kindness, -----milk and honey,-----'twould be a second land of promise,-----a paradise upon earth, if there was such a thing to be had,------so that upon the whole we should have done well enough.
All I fret and fume at, and what most distresses my invention at present, is how to bring the point itself to bear; for as your worships well know, that of these heavenly emanations of wit and iudgment, which I have so bountifully wished both for your worships and myself,-----there is but a certain quantum stored up for us all, for the use and behoof of the whole race of mankind; and such small modi- cums of 'em are only sent forth into this wide world, circulating here and there in one by corner or another,-----and in such narrow streams, and at such prodigious intervals from each other, that one would wonder how it holds out, or could be sufficient for the wants and emergencies of so many great states, and populous empires.
Indeed there is one thing to be considered, that in Nova Zembla, North Lapland, and in all those cold and dreary tracts of the globe, which lie more directly under the arctic and antarctic circles,------where the whole province of a man's concernments lies for near nine months together within the narrow compass of his cave,-----where the spirits are compressed almost to nothing,-----and where the passions of a man, with everything which belongs to them, are as frigid as the zone itself;------there the least quantity of judgment imaginable does the business,----and of wit-----there is a total and an absolute saving,----for as not one spark is wanted,----so not one spark is given. Angels and ministers of grace defend us! what a dismal thing would it have been to have governed a kingdom, to have fought a battle, or made a treaty, or run a match, or wrote a book, or got a child, or held a provincial chapter there, with so plentiful a lack of wit and judgment about us! for mercy's sake! let us think no more about it, but travel on as fast as we can southwards into Norway,------crossing over Swedeland, if you please, through the small triangular province of Angermania to the lake of Bothnia, coasting along it through east and west Bothnia, down to Karelia, and so on, through all those states and provinces which border upon the far side of the Gulf of Finland, and the northeast of the Baltic, up to Petersburg, and just stepping into Ingria;-----then stretching over directly from thence through the north parts of the Russian empire----leaving Siberia a little upon the left hand till we get into the very heart of Russian and Asiatic Tartary.
Now throughout this long tour which I have led you, you observe the good people are better off by far than in the polar countries which we have just left:-----for if you hold your hand over your eyes, and look very attentively, you may perceive some small glimmerings (as it were) of wit, with a comfortable provision of good plain household judgment, which taking the quality and quantity of it together, they make a very good shift with,-----and had they more of either the one or the other, it would destroy the proper balance betwixt them, and I am satisfied moreover they would want occasions to put them to use.
Now, Sir, if I conduct you home again into this warmer and more luxuriant island, where you perceive the spring tide of our blood and humours runs high,-----where we have more ambition, and pride, and envy, and lechery and other whoreson passions upon our hands to govern and subject to
It must however be confessed on this head that, as our air blows hot and cold,----wet and dry, ten times in a day, we have them in no regular and settled way;------so that sometimes, for near half a century together, there shall be very little wit or judgment either to be seen or heard of amongst us:-----the small channels of them shall seem quite dried up;-----then all of a sudden the sluices shall break out, and take a fit of running again like fury;-----you would think they would never stop:----and then it is that in writing and fighting, and twenty other gallant things, we drive all the world before us.
It is by these observations, and a wary reasoning by analogy in that kind of argumentative process which Suidas calls dialectic induction,-----that I draw and set up this position as most true and veritable.
That of these two luminaries, so much of their irradiations are suffered from time to time to shine down upon us as he, whose infinite wisdom which dispenses everything in exact weight and measure, knows will just serve to light us on our way in this night of our obscurity; so that your Reverences and worships now find out, nor is it a moment longer in my power to conceal it from you, That the fervent wish in your behalf with which I set out was no more than the first insinuating How d'ye of a caressing prefacer stifling his reader, as a lover sometimes does a coy mistress into silence. For alas! could this effusion of light have been as easily procured as the exordium wished it------I tremble to think how many thousands, for it, of benighted travellers (in the learned sciences at least) must have groped and blundered on in the dark, all the nights of their lives,------running their heads against posts, and knocking out their brains, without ever getting to their journey's end;-----some falling with their noses perpendicularly into sinks,-----others horizontally with their tails into kennels. Here one half of a learned profession tilting full butt against the other half of it, and then tumbling and rolling one over the other in the dirt like hogs.-----Here the brethren of another profession, who should have run in opposition to each other, flying on the contrary like a flock of wild geese, all in a row the same
In the foreground of this picture, a statesman turning the political wheel, like a brute, the wrong way round--against the stream of corruption,----by heaven!-----instead of with it.
In this corner, a son of the divine Aesculapius, writing a book against predestination; perhaps worse,-----feeling his patient's pulse, instead of his apothecary's;-----a brother of the faculty in the background, upon his knees in tears,---- drawing the curtains of a mangled victim to beg his forgiveness;-----offering a fee,----instead of taking one.
In that spacious HALL, a coalition of the gown, from all the bars of it, driving a damned, dirty, vexatious cause before them, with all their might and main, the wrong way; ----kicking it out of the great doors, instead of in,-----and with such fury in their looks, and such a degree of inveteracy in their manner of kicking it, as if the laws had been originally made for the peace and preservation of mankind:-----perhaps a more enormous mistake committed by them still, ----a litigated point fairly hung up;-----for instance, whether John o' Nokes his nose could stand in Tom o' Stiles his face, without a trespass, or not,------rashly determined by them in five-and-twenty minutes, which, with the cautious pros and cons required in so intricate a proceeding might have taken up as many months,----and if carried on upon a military plan, as your Honours know an ACTION should be, with all the stratagems practicable therein,-----such as feints, -----forced marches,----surprises,-----ambuscades,----mask batteries, and a thousand other strokes of generalship which consist in catching at all advantages on both sides,-----might reasonably have lasted them as many years, finding food and raiment all that term for a centumvirate of the profession.
As for the clergy------No-----If I say a word against them, I'll be shot.----I have no desire,-----and besides, if I had,--I durst not for my soul touch upon the subject; ----with such weak nerves and spirits, and in the condition I am in at present, 'twould be as much as my life was worth, to deject and contrist myself with so sad and melancholy an account,----and therefore, 'tis safer to draw a curtain across, and hasten from it, as fast as I can, to the main and principal point I have undertaken to clear up,-----and that is,
This, by the help of the observations already premised, and I hope already weighed and perpended by your Reverences and worships, I shall forthwith make appear.
I hate set dissertations,----and above all things in the world, 'tis one of the silliest things in one of them to darken your hypothesis by placing a number of tall, opaque words, one before another, in a right line, betwixt your own and your reader's conception,----when in all likelihood, if you had looked about, you might have seen something standing, or hanging up, which would have cleared the point at once; ----``for what hinderance, hurt, or harm doth the laudable desire of knowledge bring to any man, if even from a sot, a pot, a fool, a stool, a winter mittain, a truckle for a pully, the lid of a goldsmith's crucible, an oil bottle, an old slipper, or a cane chair?''-----I am this moment sitting upon one. will you give me leave to illustrate this affair of wit and judgment by the two knobs on the top of the back of it;-----they are fastened on, you see, with two pegs stuck slightly into two gimlet holes, and will place what I have to say in so clear a light as to let you see through the drift and meaning of my whole preface, as plainly as if every point and particle of it was made up of sunbeams.
I enter now directly upon the point.
------Here stands wit,-----and there stands judgment, close beside it, just like the two knobs I'm speaking of upon the back of this selfsame chair on which I am sitting.
-----You see, they are the highest and most ornamental parts of its frame,-----as wit and judgment are of ours,---- and like them too, indubitably both made and fitted to go together, in order, as we say in all such cases of duplicated embellishments,-----to answer one another.
Now for the sake of an experiment, and for the clearer illustrating this matter,----let us for a moment take off one of these two curious ornaments (I care not which) from the point or pinnacle of the chair it now stands on;----nay, don't laugh at it.----But did you ever see in the whole course of your lives such a ridiculous business as this has made of it?----why, 'tis as miserable a sight as a sow with one ear; and there is just as much sense and symmetry in the one as
in the other:-----do,-----pray, get off your seats, only to take
Now these two knobs,-----or top ornaments of the mind of man, which crown the whole entablature,--being, as I said, wit and judgment, which of all others, as I have proved it, are the most needful,-----the most prized,-----the most calamitous to be without, and consequently the hardest to come at,-----for all these reasons put together, there is not a mortal amongst us so destitute of a love of good fame or feeding,------or so ignorant of what will do him good therein,----who does not wish and steadfastly resolve in his own mind to be, or to be thought, at least, master of the one or the other, and indeed of both of them, if the thing seems any way feasible, or likely to be brought to pass.
Now your graver gentry having little or no kind of chance in aiming at the one,----unless they laid hold of the other, ----pray what do you think would become of them?----- why, Sirs, in spite of all their gravities, they must e'en have been contented to have gone with their insides naked:----- this was not to be borne, but by an effort of philosophy not to be supposed in the case we are upon,-----so that no one could well have been angry with them, had they been satisfied with what little they could have snatched up and secreted under their cloaks and great perriwigs, had they not raised a hue and cry at the same time against the lawful owners.
I need not tell your worships that this was done with so much cunning and artifice----that the great Locke, who was seldom outwitted by false sounds,-----was nevertheless bubbled here. The cry, it seems, was so deep and solemn a one, and what with the help of great wigs, grave faces, and other implements of deceit, was rendered so general a one against the poor wits in this matter, that the philosopher himself was deceived by it;-----it was his glory to free the world from the lumber of a thousand vulgar errors,-----but this was not of the number; so that instead of sitting down coolly, as such a philosopher should have done, to have examined the matter of fact before he philosophised upon it;-----on the contrary,
This has been made the Magna Charta of stupidity ever since,-----but your Reverences plainly see it has been obtained in such a manner that the title to it is not worth a groat;-----which by the bye is one of the many and vile impositions which gravity and grave folks have to answer for hereafter.
As for great wigs, upon which I may be thought to have
spoken my mind too freely,-----I beg leave to qualify whatever
has been unguardedly said to their dispraise or prejudice,
by one general declaration-----That I have no abhorrence
whatever, nor do I detest and abjure either great wigs
or long beards,-----any further than when I see they are
bespoke and let grow on purpose to carry on this selfsame
imposture------for any purpose,------peace be with them;----
@hd mark only,--------I write not for them.
-----Inconsistent soul that man is!----languishing under
wounds which he has the power to heal!----his whole life a
contradiction to his knowledge!------his reason, that precious
gift of God to him-----(instead of pouring in oil) serving
but to sharpen his sensibilities,-----to multiply his pains and
render him more melancholy and uneasy under them!-----
poor unhappy creature, that he should do so!-----are not the
necessary causes of misery in this life enow, but he must add
By all that is good and virtuous! if there are three drops of
oil to be got, and a hammer to be found within ten miles of
Shandy Hall,------the parlour-door hinge shall be mended this
reign.
Now next to the moral lesson I had in view in mentioning
the affair of hinges, I had a speculative consideration arising
out of it, and it is this.
Had the parlour door opened and turned upon its hinges,
as a door should do-----
----Or for example, as cleverly as our government has
been turning upon its hinges-----(that is, in case things have
all along gone well with your worship,------otherwise I give
up my simile),-----in this case, I say, there had been no danger
either to master or man in Corporal Trim's peeping in:
the moment he had beheld my father and my uncle Toby fast
asleep,----the respectfulness of his carriage was such, he
would have retired as silent as death, and left them both in
their armchairs, dreaming as happy as he had found them:
but the thing was morally speaking so very impracticable
that for the many years in which this hinge was suffered to
be out of order, and amongst the hourly grievances my father
submitted to upon its account,-----this was one; that he
never folded his arms to take his nap after dinner, but the
thoughts of being unavoidably awakened by the first person
who should open the door was always uppermost in his
imagination, and so incessantly stepped in betwixt him and the
first balmy presage of his repose as to rob him, as he often
declared, of the whole sweets of it.
``When things move upon bad hinges, an' please your Lordships, how can it be otherwise?''
Pray, what's the matter? who is there? cried my father, waking, the moment the door began to creak.-----I wish the smith would give a peep at that confounded hinge.-----'Tis nothing, an' please your Honour, said Trim, but two mortars I am bringing in.----They shan't make a clatter with them here, cried my father hastily.-----If Dr. Slop has any drugs to pound, let him do it in the kitchen.-----May it please your Honour, cried Trim,------they are two mortar pieces for a siege next summer, which I have been making out of a pair of jack boots which Obadiah told me your Honour had left off wearing.----By heaven! cried my father springing out of his chair, as he swore,-----I have not one appointment belonging to me which I set so much store by as I do by these jack boots;----they were our great-grandfather's, brother Toby,----they were hereditary. Then I fear, quoth my uncle Toby, Trim has cut off the entail.----I have only cut off the tops, an' please your Honour, cried Trim.-----I hate perpetuities as much as any man alive, cried my father, ----but these jack boots, continued he (smiling, though very angry at the same time), have been in the family, brother, ever since the civil wars;-----Sir Roger Shandy wore them at the battle of Marston Moor.----I declare I would not have taken ten pounds for them.-----I'll pay you the money, brother Shandy, quoth my uncle Toby, looking at the two mortars with infinite pleasure, and putting his hand into his breeches pocket as he viewed them.----I'll pay you the ten pounds this moment with all my heart and soul.-----
Brother Toby, replied my father, altering his tone, you care not what money you dissipate and throw away, provided, continued he, 'tis but upon a SIEGE.----Have I not a hundred and twenty pounds a year, besides my half-pay? cried my uncle Toby.-----what is that,-----replied my father, hastily,----to ten pounds for a pair of jack boots?-----twelve guineas for your pontoons,------half as much for your Dutch drawbridge;-----to say nothing of the train of little brass artillery you bespoke last week, with twenty other preparations for the siege of Messina; believe me, dear brother Toby, continued my father, taking him kindly by the hand,-----these military operations of yours are above your strength;----- you mean well, brother,------but they carry you into greater expenses than you were first aware of,-----and take my word, ----dear Toby, they will in the end quite ruin your fortune, and make a beggar of you.-----what signifies it if they do,
My father could not help smiling for his soul;-----his anger at the worst was never more than a spark,-----and the zeal and simplicity of Trim,-----and the generous (though hobbyhorsical) gallantry of my uncle Toby, brought him into perfect good humour with them in an instant.
Generous souls!-----God prosper you both, and your mortar
pieces too, quoth my father to himself.
You must know, my uncle Toby mistook the bridge as
widely as my father mistook the mortars;-----but to understand
how my uncle Toby could mistake the bridge,-----I
fear I must give you an exact account of the road which led
to it;-----or to drop my metaphor (for there is nothing more
dishonest in an historian than the use of one),-----in order
to conceive the probability of this error in my uncle Toby
aright, I must give you some account of an adventure of
Trim's, though much against my will. I say much against my
will, only because the story, in one sense, is certainly out of
its place here; for by right it should come in either amongst
the anecdotes of my uncle Toby's amours with widow
-----what would your worships have me to do in this case?
---Tell it, Mr. Shandy, by all means.------You are a fool, Tristram, if you do.
O ye POWERS! (for powers ye are, and great ones too)---- which enable mortal man to tell a story worth the hearing, -----that kindly show him where he is to begin it,-----and where he is to end it,-----what he is to put into it,-----and what he is to leave out,-----how much of it he is to cast into shade,-----and whereabouts he is to throw his light!--Ye who preside over this vast empire of biographical freebooters, and see how many scrapes and plunges your subjects hourly fall into;----will you do one thing?
I beg and beseech you (in case you will do nothing better
for us) that wherever, in any part of your dominions it so
falls out, that three several roads meet in one point, as they
have done just here,--that at least you set up a guidepost, in
the center of them, in mere charity to direct an uncertain
devil which of the three he is to take.
Now, my dear friend Garrick, whom I have so much cause to esteem and honour----(why, or wherefore, 'tis no matter), -----can it escape your penetration,-----I defy it,----that so many playwrights, and opificers of chitchat have ever since been working upon Trim's and my uncle Toby's pattern.----- I care not what Aristotle, or Pacuvius, or Bossu, or Ricaboni say-----(though I never read one of them);------there is not a greater difference between a single-horse chair and Madam Pompadour's vis-@`a-vis, then betwixt a single amour and an amour thus nobly doubled, and going upon all four, prancing throughout a grand drama.-----Sir, a simple, single, silly affair of that kind-----is quite lost in five acts,----but that is neither here or there.
After a series of attacks and repulses in a course of nine months on my uncle Toby's quarter, a most minute account of every particular of which shall be given in its proper place, my uncle Toby, honest man! found it necessary to draw off his forces, and raise the siege somewhat indignantly.
Corporal Trim, as I said, had made no such bargain either with himself----or with anyone else;------the fidelity however of his heart not suffering him to go into a house which his master had forsaken with disgust,-----he contented himself with turning his part of the siege into a blockade;----- that is, he kept others off,----for though he never after went to the house, yet he never met Bridget in the village but he would either nod, or wink, or smile, or look kindly at her, ----or (as circumstances directed) he would shake her by the hand,-----or ask her lovingly how she did,------or would give her a ribband,-----and now and then, though never but when it could be done with decorum, would give Bridget a-------
Precisely in this situation did these things stand for five years; that is, from the demolition of Dunkirk in the year 13, to the latter end of my uncle Toby's campaign in the year 18, which was about six or seven weeks before the time I'm speaking of.----When Trim, as his custom was, after he had put my uncle Toby to bed, going down one moonshiny night to see that everything was right at his fortifications,--in the lane separated from the bowling green with flowering
shrubs and holly,-----he espied his Bridget.
As the corporal thought there was nothing in the world so well worth showing as the glorious works which he and my uncle Toby had made, Trim courteously and gallantly took her by the hand, and led her in: this was not done so privately but that the foul-mouthed trumpet of Fame carried it from ear to ear, till at length it reached my father's, with this untoward circumstance along with it, that my uncle Toby's curious drawbridge, constructed and painted after the Dutch fashion, and which went quite across the ditch,----- was broke down, and somehow or other crnshed all to pieces that very night.
My father, as you have observed, had no great esteem for my uncle Toby's hobby-horse,----he thought it the most ridiculous horse that ever gentleman mounted, and indeed unless my uncle Toby vexed him about it, could never think of it once without smiling at it;-----so that it never could get lame or happen any mischance but it tickled my father's imagination beyond measure; but this being an accident much more to his humour than any one which had yet be-fallen it, it proved an inexhaustible fund of entertainment to him.----well,-----but dear Toby! my father would say, do tell us seriously how this affair of the bridge happened. ----How can you tease me so much about it? my uncle Toby would reply;----I have told it you twenty times, word for word as Trim told it me.-----Prithee how was it then, corporal? my father would cry, turning to Trim.----It was a mere misfortune, an' please your Honour,-----I was showing Mrs. Bridget our fortifications, and in going too near the edge of the fosse, I unfortunately slipped in.-----Very well, Trim! my father would cry-----(smiling mysteriously, and giving a nod,-----but without interrupting him);----and being linked fast, an' please your Honour, arm in arm with Mrs. Bridget, I dragged her after me, by means of which she fell backwards soss against the bridge;-----and Trim's foot (my uncle Toby would cry, taking the story out of his mouth) getting into the cuvette, he tumbled full against the bridge too.-----It was a thousand to one, my uncle Toby would add, that the poor fellow did not break his leg.-------Ay truly! my father would say,-----a limb is soon broke, brother Toby, in such encounters.-----And so, an' please your Honour, the bridge, which your Honour knows was a very slight one, was broke down betwixt us, and splintered all to pieces.
At other times, but especially when my uncle Toby was so unfortunate as to say a syllable about cannons, bombs, or
My uncle Toby would never attempt any defence against
the force of this ridicule but that of redoubling the
vehemence of smohing his pipe; in doing which, he raised so
dense a vapour one night after supper that it set my father,
who was a little phthisical, into a suffocating fit of violent
coughing: my uncle Toby leaped up without feeling the pain
upon his groin,---- and, with infinite pity, stood beside his
brother's chair, tapping his back with one hand, and holding
his head with the other, and from time to time, wiping his
eyes with a clean cambric handkerchief, which he pulled
out of his pocket.-----The affectionate and endearing manner
in which my uncle Toby did these little offices-----cut my
father through his reins for the pain he had just been giving
him.----May my brains be knocked out with a battering ram
or a catapulta, I care not which, quoth my father to himself,
----if ever I insult this worthy soul more.
----we will go on with it then, upon the old model, cried my uncle Toby.
when Corporal Trim had about half finished it in that style,-----my uncle Toby found out a capital defect in it, which he had never thoroughly considered before. It turned, it seems, upon hinges at both ends of it, opening in the middle, one half of which turning to one side of the fosse, and the other, to the other; the advantage of which was this, that by dividing the weight of the bridge into two equal portions, it impowered my uncle Toby to raise it up or let it down with the end of his crutch, and with one hand, which, as his garrison was weak, was as much as he could well spare; -----but the disadvantages of such a construction were insurmountable,-----for by this means, he would say, I leave one half of my bridge in my enemy's possesslon,----and pray of what use is the other?
The natural remedy for this was no doubt to have his bridge fast only at one end with hinges, so that the whole might be lifted up together, and stand bolt upright,----but that was rejected for the reason given above.
For a whole week after he was determined in his mind to have one of that particular construction which is made to draw back horizontally to hinder a passage, and to thrust forwards again to gain a passage,-----of which sorts your Worships might have seen three famous ones at Spires before its destruction,----and one now at Breisach, if I mistake not;----but my father advising my uncle Toby, with great earnestness, to have nothing more to do with thrusting bridges,----and my uncle foreseeing moreover that it would but perpetuate the memory of the corporal's misfortune,---- he changed his mind, for that of the Marquis d'H@^opital's in
My uncle Toby understood the nature of a parabola as
well as any man in England,----but was not quite such a
master of the cycloid;--he talked however about it every
day;-----the bridge went not forwards.-----we'll ask somebody
about is, cried my uncle Toby to Trim.
Had my uncle Toby's head been a Savoyard's box, and my
father peeping in all the time at one end of it,------it could
not have given him a more distinct conception of the operations
in my uncle Toby's imagination than what he had; so
notwithstanding the catapulta and battering ram, and his bitter
imprecation about them, he was just beginning to
triumph.-----
When Trim's answer, in an instant, tore the laurel from his
brows, and twisted it to pieces.
Master's nose.-----In bringing him into the world with
-----Lead me, brother Toby, cried my father, to my room
this instant.
I enter upon this part of my story in the most pensive and
melancholy frame of mind that ever sympathetic breast was
touched with.-----My nerves relax as I tell it.----Every line
I write, I feel an abatement of the quickness of my pulse,
and of that careless alacrity with it, which every day of my
life prompts me to say and write a thousand things I should
not.-----And this moment that I last dipped my pen into my
ink, I could not help taking notice what a cautious air of
sad composure and solemnity there appeared in my manner
of doing it.-----Lord! how different from the rash jerks, and
harebrained squirts thou art wont, Tristram! to transact it
with in other humours,-----dropping thy pen,----spurting
thy ink about thy table and thy books,----as if thy pen and
thy ink, thy books and thy furniture cost thee nothing.
The moment my father got up into his chamber, he threw himself prostrate across his bed in the wildest disorder imaginable, but at the same time, in the most lamentable attitude of a man borne down with sorrows that ever the eye of pity dropped a tear for.-----The palm of his right hand, as he fell upon the bed, receiving his forehead, and covering the greatest part of both his eyes, gently sunk down with his head (his elbow giving way backwards) till his nose touched the quilt;-----his left arm hung insensible over the side of the bed, his knuckles reclining upon the handle of the chamber pot, which peeped out beyond the valance;-----his right leg (his left being drawn up towards his body) hung half over the side of the bed, the edge of it pressing upon his shinbone. -----He felt it not. A fixed, inflexible sorrow took possession of every line of his face.-----He sighed once,-----heaved his breast often,-----but uttered not a word.
An old set-stitched chair, valanced and fringed around with parti-coloured worsted bobs, stood at the bed's head, opposite to the side where my father's head reclined.-----My uncle Toby sat him down in it.
Before an affliction is digested,------consolation ever coines
too soon;-----and after it is digested,-----it comes too late:
so that you see, Madam, there is but a mark between these
two, as fine almost as a hair, for a comforter to take aim at:
my uncle Toby was always either on this side or on that of
it, and would often say, He believed in his heart, he could
as soon hit the longitude; for this reason, when he sat down
in the chair, he drew the curtain a little forwards, and having
a tear at everyone's service,-----he pulled out a cambric
handkerchief,-----gave a low sigh,---but held his peace.
No doubt, the breaking down of the bridge of a child's nose by the edge of a pair of forceps,-----however scientifically applied,-----would vex any man in the world who was at so much pains in begetting a child as my father was;------ yet it will not account for the extravagance of his affliction, or will it justify the un-Christian manner he abandoned and surrendered himself up to it.
To explain this, I must leave him upon the bed for half an
hour,-----and my good uncle Toby in his old fringed chair
sitting beside him.
-----``Because,'' replied my great-grandmother, ``you have
little or no nose, Sir.''-----
Now, before I venture to make use of the word Nose a
second time,----to avoid all confusion in what will be said
upon it, in this interesting part of my story, it may not be
amiss to explain my own meaning, and define, with all possible
exactness and precision, what I would willingly be understood
to mean by the term: being of opinion that 'tis owing to
the negligence and perverseness of writers, in despising this
precaution, and to nothing else,-----That all the polemical
writings in divinity are not as clear and demonstrative as
those upon a Will-o'-the-Wisp, or any other sound part of
philosophy, and natural pursuit; in order to which, what have
you to do, before you set out, unless you intend to go
puzzling on to the day of judgment,-----but to give the world a
good definition, and stand to it, of the main word you have
most occasion for,-----changing it, Sir, as you would a
guinea, into small coin?-----which done,-----let the father of
confusion puzzle you, if he can; or put a different idea either
into your head, or your reader's head, if he knows how.
In books of strict morality and close reasoning, such as this I am engaged in,-----the neglect is inexcusable; and heaven is witness, how the world has revenged itself upon me for leaving so many openings to equivocal strictures,---- and for depending so much as I have done, all along, upon the cleanliness of my readers' imaginations.
-----Here are two senses, cried Eugenius, as we walked along, pointing with the forefinger of his right hand to the word Crevice, in the fifty-second page of the second volume of this book of books,*-------here are two senses,-----quoth he.-----And here are two roads, replied I, turning short upon him,------a dirty and a clean one;------which shall we take? -----The clean,----by all means, replied Eugenius. Eugenius, said I, stepping before him, and laying my hand upon his breast,-----to define-----is to distrust.------Thus I triumphed over Eugenius; but I triumphed over him as I always do, like a fool.------'Tis my comfort, however, I arn not an obstinate one; therefore
I define a nose as follows,-----intreating only beforehand,
and beseeching my readers, both male and female, of what
age, complexion, and condition soever, for the love of God
and their own souls, to guard against the temptations and
suggestions of the devil, and suffer him by no art or wile to
put any other ideas into their minds than what I put into
my definition.-----For by the word Nose, throughout all this
long chapter of noses, and in every other part of my work
where the word Nose occurs,----I declare, by that word I
mean a Nose, and nothing more, or less.
S'death! cried my great-grandfather, clapping his hand
upon his nose,-----'tis not so small as that comes to;-----,tis
a full inch longer than my father's.----Now, my great-grandfather's
nose was for all the world like unto the noses of
all the men, women, and children whom Pantagruel found
* In this edition, page 85.
-----'Twas shaped, Sir, like an ace of clubs.
-----'Tis a full inch, continued my great-grandfather, pressing up the ridge of his nose with his finger and thumb; and repeating his assertion,-----'tis a full inch longer, Madam, than my father's-----.You must mean your uncle's, replied my great-grandmother.
-------My great-grandfather was convinced.------He
untwisted the paper, and signed the article.
My father, replied my grandfather, had no more nose, my
dear, saving the mark, than there is upon the back of my
hand.-----
----Now, you must know that my great-grandmother
out-lived my grandfather twelve years; so that my father had the
jointure to pay, a hundred and fifty pounds half-yearly-----
(on Michaelmas and Lady Day)-----during all that time.
No man discharged pecuniary obligations with a better
grace than my father.-------And as far as the hundred
pounds went, he would fling it upon the table, guinea by
guinea, with that spirited jerk of an honest welcome which
generous souls, and generous souls only, are able to fling
down money: but as soon as ever he entered upon the odd
fifty,-----he generally gave a loud Hem!------rubbed the side
of his nose leisurely with the flat part of his forefinger,-----
inserted his hand cautiously betwixt his head and the caul of
his wig,-----looked at both sides of every guinea, as he parted
with it,-----and seldom could get to the end of the fifty
pounds without pulling out his handkerchief, and wiping his
temples.
Defend me, gracious heaven! from those persecuting spirits
who make no allowances for these workings within us.-----
Never,-----O never may I lay down in their tents, who cannot
For three generations at least, this tenet in favour of long noses had gradually been taking root in our family.------- TRADITION was all along on its side, and INTEREST was every half year stepping in to strengthen it; so that the whimsicality of my father's brain was far from having the whole honour of this, as it had of almost all his other strange notions.----For in a great measure he might be said to have sucked this in with his mother's milk. He did his part however.----If education planted the mistake (in case it was one), my father watered it, and ripened it to perfection.
He would often declare, in speaking his thoughts upon the subject, that he did not conceive how the greatest family in England could stand it out against an uninterrupted succession of six or seven short noses.-----And for the contrary reason, he would generally add, That it must be one of the greatest problems in civil life, where the same number of long and jolly noses following one another in a direct line did not raise and hoist it up into the best vacancies in the kingdom.--------He would often boast that the Shandy family ranked very high in King Harry the VIIIth's time, but owed its rise to no state engine,------he would say,-----but to that only;------but that, like other families, he would add,----it had felt the turn of the wheel, and had never recovered the blow of my great-grandfather's nose.-----It was an ace of clubs, indeed, he would cry, shaking his head,----and as vile a one for an unfortunate family as ever turned up trumps.
--------Fair and softly, gentle reader!--------where is thy fancy carrying thee?----If there is truth in man, by my great-grandfather's nose, I mean the external organ of smelling, or that part of man which stands prominent in his face, -----and which painters say, in good jolly noses and well-proportioned faces, should comprehend a full third,-----that is, measuring downwards from the setting on of the hair.-----
-----What a life of it has an author, at this pass!
what a shuttlecock of a fellow would the greatest philosopher that ever existed be whisked into at once, did he read such books, and observe such facts, and think such thoughts, as would eternally be making him change sides!
Now, my father, as I told you last year, detested all this. ------He picked up an opinion, Sir, as a man in a state of nature picks up an apple.-----It becomes his own,----and if he is a man of spirit, he would lose his life rather than give it up.------
I am aware that Didius, the great civilian, will contest this point; and cry out against me, Whence comes this man's right to this apple? ex confesso, he will say,-----things were in a state of nature.-----The apple as much Frank's apple as John's. Pray, Mr. Shandy, what patent has he to show for it? and how did it begin to be his? was it when he set his heart upon it? or when he gathered it? or when he chewed it? or when he roasted it? or when he peeled? or when he brought it home? or when he digested?-----or when he ----- --- ? -----. For 'tis plain, Sir, if the first picking up of the apple made it not his,-----that no subsequent act could.
Brother Didius, Tribonius will answer-----(now Tribonius the civilian and church lawyer's beard being three inches and a half and three eighths longer than Didius his beard,----- I'm glad he takes up the cudgels for me, so I give myself no further trouble about the answer.)-----Brother Didius, Tribonius will say, it is a decreed case, as you may find it in the fragments of Gregorius and Hermogenes's codes, and in all the codes from Justinian's down to the codes of Louis and Des Eaux,------That the sweat of a man's brows, and the exudations of a man's brains, are as much a man's own property as the breeches upon his backside;------which said exudations, &c., being dropped upon the said apple by the labour of finding it, and picking it up; and being moreover indissolubly wasted, and as indissolubly annexed by the
By the same learned chain of reasoning my father stood up for all his opinions: he had spared no pains in picking them up, and the more they lay out of the common way, the better still was his title.-----No mortal claimed them: they had cost him moreover as much labour in cooking and digesting as in the case above, so that they might well and truly be said to be of his own goods and chattels.----Accordingly he held fast by 'em, both by teeth and claws,----- would fly to whatever he could lay his hands on,-----and in a word, would intrench and fortify them round with as many circumvallations and breastworks as my uncle Toby would a citadel.
There was one plaguy rub in the way of this,-----the scarcity of materials to make anything of a defence with, in case of a smart attack; inasmuch as few men of great genius had exercised their parts in writing books upon the subject of great noses: by the trotting of my lean horse, the thing is incredible! and I am quite lost in my understanding when I am considering what a treasure of precious time and talents together has been wasted upon worse subjects,----and how many millions of books in all languages, and in all possible types and bindings, have been fabricated upon points not half so much tending to the unity and peacemaking of the world. what was to be had, however, he set the greater store by; and though my father would ofttimes sport with my uncle Toby's library,-----which, by the bye, was ridiculous enough, -----yet at the very same time he did it, he collected every book and treatise which had been systematically wrote upon noses, with as much care as my honest uncle Toby had done those upon military architecture.-----'Tis true, a much less table would have held them,------but that was not thy transgression, my dear uncle.-----
Here,-----but why here,----rather than in any other part of my story,-----I am not able to tell;-------but here it is, -------my heart stops me to pay to thee, my dear uncle Toby, once for all, the tribute I owe thy goodness.----Here let me thrust my chair aside, and kneel down upon the ground, whilst I am pouring forth the warmest sentiments of love for thee, and veneratlon for the excellency of thy character, that
whilst I am worth one, to pay a weeder,------thy path
from thy door to thy bowling green shall never be grown
up.----Whilst there is a rood and a half of land in the
Shandy family, thy fortifications, my dear uncle Toby, shall
never be demolished.
To those who do not yet know of which gender Bruscambille
is,-----inasmuch as a prologue upon long noses might
easily be done by either,-----'twill be no objection against
the simile-----to say, That when my father got home, he
solaced himself with Bruscambille after the manner in which,
'tis ten to one, your worship solaced yourself with your first
mistress,-------that is, from morning even unto night: which
by the bye, how delightful soever it may prove to the
-----And pray who was Tickletoby's mare?---,tis just as discreditable and unscholar-like a question, Sir, as to have asked what year (ab urb. con.) the second Punic war broke out.-----who was Tickletoby's mare!-----Read, read, read, read, my unlearned reader! read,-----or by the knowledge of the great saint Paraleipomenon-----I tell you beforehand, you had better throw down the book at once; for without much reading, by which your Reverence knows I mean much knowledge, you will no more be able to penetrate the moral of the next marbled page (motley emblem of my work!) than the world with all its sagacity has been able to unravel the many opinions, transactions, and truths which still lie mystically hid under the dark veil of the black one.
The doctrine, you see, was laid down by Erasmus, as my father wished it, with the utmost plainness; but my father's disappointment was in finding nothing more from so able a pen but the bare fact itself; without any of that speculative subtilty or ambidexterity of argumentation upon it which heaven had bestowed upon man on purpose to investigate truth and fight for her on all sides.-----My father pished and pughed at first most terribly;-----'tis worth something to have a good name. As the dialogue was of Erasmus, my father soon came to himself, and read it over and over again with great application, studying every word and every syllable of it through and through in its most strict and literal interpretation;----he could still make nothing of it that way. Mayhaps there is more meant than is said in it, quoth my father.----- Learned men, brother Toby, don't write dialogues upon long noses for nothing.-----I'll study the mystic and the allegoric sense;-----here is some room to turn a man's self in, brother.
My father read on.-----
Now, I find it needful to inform your Reverences and worships that besides the many nautical uses of long noses enumerated by Erasmus, the dialogist affirmeth that a long nose is not without its domestic conveniences also, for that in a case of distress,-----and for want of a pair of bellows, it will do excellently well, ad excitandum focum (to stir up the fire).
Nature had been prodigal in her gifts to my father beyond measure, and had sown the seeds of verbal criticism as deep within him as she had done the seeds of all other knowledge,-----so that he had got out his penknife, and was trying experiments upon the sentence, to see if he could not scratch some better sense into it.-----I've got within a single letter, brother Toby, cried my father, of Erasmus his mystic meaning.----You are near enough, brother, replied my uncle, in all conscience.-----Pshaw! cried my father, scratching on,
How the communication was conveyed into Slawkenbergius's sensorium,-----so that Slawkenbergius should know whose finger touched the key,----and whose hand it was that blew the bellows,------as Hafen Slawkenbergius has been dead and laid in his grave above fourscore and ten years,-----we can only raise conjectures.
Slawkenbergius was played upon, for aught I know, like one of Whitefield's disciples,----that is, with such a distinct intelligence, Sir, of which of the two masters it was that had been practising upon his instrument,-----as to make all reasoning upon it needless.
-----For in the account which Hafen Slawkenbergius gives the world of his motives and occasions for writing, and spending so many years of his life upon this one work----towards the end of his prolegomena, which by the bye should have come first,-----but the bookbinder has most injudiciously placed it betwixt the analytical contents of the book, and the book itself,----he informs his reader that ever since he had
And to do justice to Slawkenbergius, he has entered the list with a stronger lance, and taken a much larger career in it, than any one man who had ever entered it before him,---- and indeed, in many respects, deserves to be enniched as a prototype for all writers, of voluminous works at least, to model their books by,------for he has taken in, Sir, the whole subject,------examined every part of it, dialectically,----then brought it into full day; dilucidating it with all the light which either the collision of his own natural parts could strike,----or the profoundest knowledge of the sciences had impowered him to cast upon it,-----collating, collecting, and compiling,-----begging, borrowing, and stealing, as he went along, all that had been wrote or wrangled thereupon in the schools and porticos of the learned: so that Slawkenbergius his book may properly be considered, not only as a model, ----but as a thorough-stitched DIGEST and regular institute of noses,- comprehending in it all that is or can be needful to be known about them.
For this cause it is that I forbear to speak of so many (otherwise) valuable books and treatises of my father's collecting, wrote either plump upon noses,----or collaterally touching them;------such for instance as Prignitz, now lying upon the table before me, who with infinite learning, and from the most candid and scholar-like examination of above four thousand different skulls, in upwards of twenty charnel houses in Silesia, which he had rummaged,-----has informed us that the mensuration and configuration of the osseous or bony parts of human noses, in any given tract of country, except Crim Tartary, where they are all crushed down by the thumb, so that no judgment can be formed upon them,----- are much nearer alike than the world imagines;------the difference amongst them being, he says, a mere trifle, not worth taking notice of,-----but that the size and jollity of every individual nose, and by which one nose ranks above another,
It is for the same reason, that is, because 'tis all comprehended in Slawkenbergius, that I say nothing likewise of Scroderus (Andrea) who all the world knows set himself to oppugn Prignitz with great violence,-----proving it in his own way, first logically and then by a series of stubborn facts, ``That so far was Prignitz from the truth, in affirming that the fancy begat the nose, that on the contrary,-----the nose begat the fancy.''
----The learned suspected Scroderus of an indecent sophism in this,-----and Prignitz cried out aloud in the dispute that Scroderus had shifted the idea upon him,----but Scroderus went on, maintaining his thesis.------
My father was just balancing within himself which of the two sides he should take in this affair, when Ambrose Paraeus decided it in a moment, and by overthrowing the systems both of Prignitz and Scroderus, drove my father out of both sides of the controversy at once.
Be witness------
I don't acquaint the learned reader,----in saying it, I mention it only to show the learned I know the fact myself-----
That this Ambrose Paraeus was chief surgeon and nose. mender to Francis the Ninth of France, and in high credit with him and the two preceding, or succeeding, kings (I know not which)-----and that except in the slip he made in his story of Taliacotius's noses, and his manner of setting them on,------he was esteemed by the whole college of physicians at that time as more knowing in matters of noses than anyone who had ever taken them in hand.
Now Ambrose Paraeus convinced my father that the true
and efficient cause of what had engaged so much the attention of the world, and upon which Prignitz and Scroderus
had wasted so much learning and fine parts,-----was neither this nor that,-----but that the length and goodness of the nose was owing simply to the softness and flaccidity in the nurse's breast,-----as the flatness and shortness of puisne
I have but two things to observe of Paraeus; first, that he proves and explains all this with the utmost chastity and decorum of expression:----for which may his soul forever rest in peace!
And, secondly, that besides the systems of Prignitz and Scroderus, which Ambrose Paraeus his hypothesis effectually overthrew,----it overthrew at the same time the system of peace and harmony of our family; and for three days together, not only embroiled matters between my father and my mother, but turned likewise the whole house and everything in it, except my uncle Toby, quite upside down.
Such a ridiculous tale of a dispute between a man and his wife never surely in any age or country got vent through the keyhole of a street door!
My mother, you must know,-----but I have fifty things more necessary to let you know first;-----I have a hundred difficulties which I have promised to clear up, and a thousand distresses and domestic misadventures crowding in upon me thick and threefold, one upon the neck of another;-----a cow broke in (to-morrow morning) to my uncle Toby's fortifications, and eat up two rations and a half of dried grass, tearing up the sods with it which faced his hornwork and covered way.----Trim insists upon being tried by a courtmartial,-----the cow to be shot,------Slop to be crucifixed, ----myself to be tristramed, and at my very baptism made a martyr of;----poor unhappy devils that we all are!----I want swaddling,-----but there is no time to be lost in exclamations.-----I have left my father lying across his bed, and my uncle Toby in his old fringed chair, sitting beside him, and promised I would go back to them in half an hour, and five-and-thirty minutes are lapsed already.-----Of all the perplexities a mortal author was ever seen in,-----this certainly is the greatest,-----for I have Hafen Slawkenbergius's folio, Sir, to finish------a dialogue between my father and my uncle Toby, upon the solution of Prignitz, Scroderus,
Not any one of these was more diverting I say, in this whimsical theatre of ours,-----than what frequently arose out of this selfsame chapter of long noses,-----especially when my father's imagination was heated with the enquiry, and nothing would serve him but to heat my uncle Toby's too.
My uncle Toby would give my father all possible fair play in this attempt; and with infinite patience would sit smoking his pipe for whole hours together, whilst my father was practising upon his head, and trying every accessible avenue to drive Prignitz and Scroderus's solutions into it.
whether they were above my uncle Toby's reason,------or contrary to it,-----or that his brain was like wet tinder. and no spark could possibly take hold,----or that it was so full of saps, mines, blinds, curtains, and such military disqualifications to his seeing clearly into Prignitz and Scroderus's
doctrines,-----I say not,-----let schoolmen--scullions, anatomists, and engineers fight for it amongst themselves.------
'Twas some misfortune, I make no doubt, in this affair,
that my father had every word of it to translate for the benefit
of my uncle Toby, and render out of Slawkenbergius's
Latin, of which, as he was no great master, his translation
was not always of the purest,-----and generally least so
where 'twas most wanted;----this naturally opened a door to
a second misfortune,-----that in the warmer paroxysms of his
zeal to open my uncle Toby's eyes,-----my father's ideas
run on as much faster than the translation as the translation
outmoved my uncle Toby's;----neither the one or the
other added much to the perspicuity of my father's lecture.
The gift of doing it as it should be, amongst us,-----or the
great and principal act of ratiocination in man, as logicians
tell us, is the finding out the agreement or disagreement of
two ideas one with another, by the intervention of a third
(called the medius terminus); just as a man, as Locke well
observes, by a yard finds two men's ninepin alleys to be of
the same length, which could not be brought together, to
measure their equality, by juxta-position.
Had the same great reasoner looked on, as my father
illustrated his systems of noses, and observed my uncle Toby's
deportment,----what great attention he gave to every word,
----and as oft as he took his pipe from his mouth, with what
wonderful seriousness he contemplated the length of it,----
surveying it transversely as he held it betwixt his finger and
his thumb,------then foreright,-----then this way, and then
that, in all its possible directions and foreshortenings,----he
Now it happened then, as indeed it had often done before, that my uncle Toby's fancy, during the time of my father's explanation of Prignitz to him,----having nothing to stay it there, had taken a short flight to the bowling green;------his body might as well have taken a turn there too,-----so that with all the semblance of a deep schoolman intent upon the medius terminus,-----my uncle Toby was in fact as ignorant of the whole lecture, and all its pros and cons, as if my father had been translating Hafen Slawkenbergius from the Latin tongue into the Cherokee. But the word siege, like a talismanic power, in my father's metaphor, wafting back my uncle Toby's fancy, quick as a note could follow the touch, -----he opened his ears,------and my father observing that he took his pipe out of his mouth, and shuffled his chair nearer the table, as with a desire to profit,-----my father with great pleasure began his sentence again,----changing only the plan, and dropping the metaphor of the siege of it, to keep clear of some dangers my father apprehended from it.
'Tis a pity, said my father, that truth can only be on one side, brother Toby,-----considering what ingenuity these
-----My father thrust back his chair,----rose up,----put on his hat,------took four long strides to the door,----jerked it open,----thrust his head halfway out,-----shut the door again, -----took no notice of the bad hinge,----returned to the table,----plucked my mother's thread paper out of Slawkenbergius's book,-----went hastily to his bureau,----walked slowly back, twisting my mother's thread paper about his thumb,-----unbuttoned his waistcoat,-----threw my mother's thread paper into the fire,-----bit her satin pincushion in two, filled his mouth with bran,----confounded it;-----but mark!-----the oath of confusion was levelled at my uncle Toby's brain,----which was e'en confused enough already; ----the curse came charged only with the bran;----the bran, may it please your Honours,-----was no more than powder to the ball.
'Twas well my father's passions lasted not long; for so long as they did last, they led him a busy life on't, and it is one of the most unaccountable problems that ever I met with in my observations of human nature, that nothing should prove my father's mettle so much, or make his passions go off so like gunpowder, as the unexpected strokes his science met with from the quaint simplicity of my uncle Toby's questions.-----Had ten dozen of hornets stung him behind in so many different places all at one time,-----he could not have exerted more mechanical functions in fewer seconds,-----or started half so much, as with one single quaere of three words unseasonably popping in full upon him in his hobbyhorsical career.
'Twas all one to my uncle Toby;-----he smoked his pipe on, with unvaried composure;-----his heart never intended offence to his brother,-----and as his head could seldom find out where the sting of it lay,-----he always gave my father the credit of cooling by himself.-----He was five minutes and thirty-five seconds about it in the present case.
By all that's good! said my father, swearing, as he came to himself, and taking the oath out of Ernulphus's digest of curses----(though to do my father justice, it was a fault (as he told Dr. Slop in the affair of Ernulphus) which he as seldom committed as any man upon earth).----By all that's good and great! brother Toby, said my father, if it was not for the aids of philosophy, which befriend one so much as they do, ------you would put a man beside all temper.----why, by the solutions of noses, of which I was telling you, I meant, as you
What is become of my wife's thread paper?
I am not such a bigot to Slawkenbergius as my father;----- there is a fund in him, no doubt; but in my opinion, the best, I don't say the most profitable, but the most amusing part of Hafem Slawkenbergius is his tales,-----and, considering he was a German, many of them told not without fancy:---- these take up his second book, containing nearly one half of his folio, and are comprehended in ten decads, each decad comtaining ten tales.-----Philosophy is not built upon tales; and therefore 'twas certainly wrong in Slawkenbergius to send them into the world by that name;-----there are a few of them in his eighth, ninth, and tenth decads which I own seem rather playful and sportive than speculative,----but in general they are to be looked upon by the learned as a detail of so many independent facts, all of them turning round somehow or other upon the main hinges of his subject, and collected by him with great fidelity, and added to his work as so many illustrations upon the doctrines of noses.
As we have leisure enough upon our hands,-----if you give me leave, Madam, I'll tell you the ninth tale of his tenth decad.
&
SLAWKENBERGII
FABELLA* Vespera qu@^adam frigidul@^a, posteriori in parte mensis Au- gusti, peregrinus, mulo fusco colore insidens, mantic@^a a tergo, paucis indusijs, binis calceis, braccisque sericis coccinejs replet@^a, Argentoratum ingressus est.
Militi eum percontanti, quum portus intraret, dixit, se apud Nasorum promontorium fuisse, Francofurtum profici- sci, et Argentoratum, transitu ad fines Sarmatiae mensis in- tervallo, reversurum.
Miles peregrini in faciem suspexit-----Di boni, nova forma nasi!
At multum mihi profuit, inquit peregrinus, carpum amento extrahens, e quo pependit acinaces: Loculo manum inseruit; & magn@^a cum urbanitate, pilei parte anteriore tact@^a manu sinistr@^a, ut extendit dextram, militi florinum dedit et proces- sit.
Dolet mihi, ait miles, tympanistam nanum et valgum allo- quens, virum adeo urbanum vaginam perdidisse; itinerari haud poterit nud@^a acinaci, neque vaginam toto Argentorato, habi- lem inveniet.-----Nullam unquam habui, respondit peregrinus
* As Hafen Slawkenbergius de Nasis is extremely scarce, it may not be unacceptable to the learned reader to see the specimen of a few pages of his original; I will make no reflection upon it, but that his storytelling Latin is much more concise than his philosophic-----and, I think, has more of Latinity in it.
SLAWKENBERGIUS'S
TALE It was one cool refreshing evening, at the close of a very sultry day, in the latter end of the month of August, when a stranger, mounted upon a dark mule, with a small cloak bag behind him, containing a few shirts, a pair of shoes, and a crimson satin pair of breeches, entered the town of Strasburg.
He told the sentinel who questioned him as he entered the gates that he had been at the Promontory of NOSES-----was going on to Frankfort-----and should be back again at Strasburg that day month, in his way to the borders of Crim Tartary.
The sentinel looked up into the stranger's face----never saw such a nose in his life!
-----I have made a very good venture of it, quoth the stranger-----so slipping his wrist out of the loop of a black ribband, to which a short scimitar was hung: He put his hand into his pocket, and with great courtesy touching the forepart of his cap with his left hand, as he extended his right -----he put a florin into the sentinel's hand, and passed on.
It grieves me, said the sentinel, speaking to a little dwarfish bandy-legged drummer, that so courteous a soul should have lost his scabbard----he cannot travel without one to his scimitar, and will not be able to get a scabbard to fit it in all Strasburg.-----I never had one, replied the stranger,
Non immerito, benigne peregrine, respondit miles.
Nihili aestimo, ait ille tympanista, e pergamen@^a factitius est.
Prout christianus sum, inquit miles, nasus ille, ni sexties major sit, meo esset conformis.
Crepitare audivi ait tympanista.
Mehercule! sanguinem emisit, respondit miles.
Miseret me, inquit tympanista, qui non ambo tetigimus!
Eodem temporis puncto, quo haec res argumentata fuit inter militem et tympanistam, disceptabatur ibidem tubicine & uxore su@^a, qui tunc accesserunt, et peregrino praetereunte, res- titerunt.
Quantus nasus! aeque longus est, ait tubicina, ac tuba.
Et ex eodem metallo, ait tubicen, velut sternutamento audias.
Tantum abest, respondit illa, quod fistulam dulcedine vincit.
Aeneus est, ait tubicen.
Nequaquam, respondit uxor.
Rursum affirmo, ait tubicen, quod aeneus est.
Rem penitus explorabo; prius, enim digito tangam, ait uxor, quam dormivero.
Mulus peregrini, gradu lento progressus est, ut unum- quodque verbum controversiae, non tantum inter militem et tympanistam, verum etiam inter tubicinem et uxorem ejus, audiret.
Nequaquam, ait ille, in muli collum fraena demittens, & manibus ambabus in pectus positis (mulo lent@`e progrediente), nequaquam, ait ille, respiciens, non necesse est ut res isthaec dilucidata foret. Minime gentium! meus nasus nunquam tan- getur, dum spiritus hos reget artus-----ad quid agendum? ait uxor burgomagistri.
Peregrinus illi non respondit. Votum faciebat tunc tem- poris sancto Nicolao, quo facto, sinum dextram inserens, e
It is well worth it, gentle stranger, replied the sentinel.
-----'Tis not worth a single stiver, said the bandy-legged drummer;---'tis a nose of parchinent.
As I am a true Catholic-----except that it is six times as big----'tis a nose, said the sentinel, like my own.
-----I heard it crackle, said the drummer.
By dunder, said the sentinel, I saw it bleed.
what a pity, cried the bandy-legged drummer, we did not both touch it!
At the very time that this dispute was maintaining by the sentinel and the drummer----was the same point debating betwixt a trumpeter and a trumpeter's wife, who were just then coming up, and had stopped to see the stranger pass by.
Benedicity!------what a nose! 'tis as long, said the trumpeter's wife, as a trumpet.
And of the same metal, said the trumpeter, as you hear by its sneezing.
------'Tis as soft as a flute, said she.
-----'Tis brass, said the trumpeter.
------'Tis a pudding's end----said his wife.
I tell thee again, said the trumpeter, 'tis a brazen nose.
I'll know the bottom of it, said the trumpeter's wife, for I will touch it with my finger before I sleep.
The stranger's mule moved on at so slow a rate that he heard every word of the dispute, not only betwixt the sentinel and the drummer, but betwixt the trumpeter and the trumpeter's wife.
No! said he, dropping his reins upon his mule's neck, and laying both his hands upon his breast, the one over the other in a saintlike position (his mule going on easily all the time), No! said he, looking up,----I am not such a debtor to the world-----slandered and disappointed as I have been---- as to give it that conviction----no! said he, my nose shall never be touched whilst heaven gives me strength----To do what? said a burgomaster's wife.
The stranger took no notice of the burgomaster's wife----- he was making a vow to St. Nicolas; which done, having uncrossed his arms with the same solemnity with which he crossed them, he took up the reins of his bridle with his left hand, and putting his right hand into his bosom, with his
Peregrinus mulo descendens stabulo includi, & manticam inferri jussit: qu@^a apert@^a et coccineis sericis femoralibus ex- tractis cum argenteo laciniato <9Perizomat@`e,>9 his sese induit, statimque, acinaci in manu, ad forum deambulavit.
Quod ubi peregrinus esset ingressus, uxorem tubicinis obviam euntem aspicit, illico cursum flectit, metuens ne nasus suus exploraretur, atque ad diversorium regressus est----- exuit se vestibus; braccas coccineas sericas manticae im- posuit mulumque educi iussit.
Francofurtum proficiscor, ait ille, et Argentoratum quatuor abhinc hebdomadis revertar.
Bene curasti hoc jumenturn (ait) muli faciem manu demul- cens-----me, manticamque meam, plus sexcentis mille passi- bus portavit.
Longa via est! respondet hospes, nisi plurimum esset negoti.-----Enimvero ait peregrinus a nasorum promontorio redij, et nasum speciosissimum, egregiosissimumque quem unquam quisquam sortitus est acquisivi!
Dum peregrinus hanc miram rationem, de seipso reddit, hospes et uxor ejus, oculis intentis, peregrini nasum contem- plantur----Per sanctos, sanctasque omnes, ait hospitis uxor, nasis duodecim maximis, in toto Argentorato major est!---- estne, ait illa mariti in aurem insusurrans, nonne est nasus praegrandis?
Dolus inest, anime mi, ait hospes---nasus est falsus.----
Verus est, respondit uxor.-----
Ex abiete factus est, ait ille, terebinthinum olet-----
Carbunculus inest, ait uxor.
Mortuus est nasus, respondit hospes.
Vivus est, ait illa,-----& si ipsa vivam tangam.
The moment the stranger alighted, he ordered his mule to be led into the stable, and his cloak bag to be brought in; then opening, and taking out of it, his crimson satin breeches, with a silver-fringed-----(appendage to them, which I dare not translate)-----he put his breeches, with his fringed codpiece, on and forthwith, with his short scimitar in his hand, walked out to the grand parade.
The stranger had just taken three turns upon the parade, when he perceived the trumpeter's wife at the opposite side of it--so turning short, in pain lest his nose should be attempted, he instantly went back to his inn--undressed himself, packed up his crimson satin breeches, &c., in his cloakbag, and called for his mule.
I am going forwards, said the stranger, for Frankfort---- and shall be back at Strasburg this day month.
I hope, continued the stranger, stroking down the face of his mule with his left hand as he was going to mount it, that you have been kind to this faithful slave of mine-----it has carried me and my cloak bag, continued he, tapping the mule's back, above six hundred leagues.
-----'Tis a long journey, Sir, replied the master of the inn ----unless a man has great business.-----Tut! tut! said the stranger, I have been at the Promontory of Noses; and have got me one of the goodliest and jolliest, thank heaven, that ever fell to a single man's lot.
Whilst the stranger was giving this odd account of himself, the master of the inn and his wife kept both their eyes fixed full upon the stranger's nose----By St. Radagunda, said the innkeeper's wife to herself, there is more of it than in any dozen of the largest noses put together in all Strasburg! is it not, said she, whispering her husband in his ear, is it not a noble nose?
'Tis an imposture, my dear, said the master of the inn----- 'tis a false nose.-----
'Tis a true nose, said his wife.-----
'Tis made of fir tree, said he;-----I smell the turpentine.-------
There's a pimple on it, said she.
'Tis a dead nose, replied the innkeeper.
'Tis a live nose, and if I am alive myself, said the innkeeper's wife, I will touch it.
Votum feci sancto Nicolao, ait peregrinus, nasum meum intactum fore usque ad-----Quodnam termpus? illico re- spondit illa.
Minime tangetur, inquit ille (manibus in pectus compositis) usque ad illam horam----Quam horam? ait illa.-----Nullam, respondit peregrinus, donec pervenio, ad-----Quem locum, -----obsecro? ait illa-----Peregrinus nil respondens mulo conscenso discessit.
I have made a vow to St. Nicolas this day, said the stranger, that my nose shall not be touched till--Here the stranger, suspending his voice, looked up------Till when? said she hastily.
It never shall be touched, said he, clasping his hands and bringing them close to his breasts, till that hour-----What hour? cried the innkeeper's wife.-----Never!-----never! said the stranger, never till I am got-----For heaven sake into what place? said she.-----The stranger rode away without saying a word.
The stranger had not got half a league on his way towards Frankfort, before all the city of Strasburg was in an uproar about his nose. The Compline bells were just ringing to call the Strasburgers to their devotions, and shut up the duties of the day in prayer:----no soul in all Strasburg heard ,em-----the city was like a swarm of bees-------men, women, and children (the Compline bells tinkling all the time) flying here and there----in at one door, out at another-----this way and that way----long ways and cross ways-----up one street, down another street----in at this alley, out at that------did you see it? did you see it? did you see it? O! did you see it? -------who saw it? who did see it? for mercy's sake, who saw it?
Alack o' day! I was at vespers!-----I was washing, I was starching, I was scouring, I was quilting-----God help me! I never saw it----I never touched it!-----would I had been a sentinel, a bandy-legged drummer, a trumpeter, a trumpeter's wife, was the general cry and lamentation in every street and corner of Strasburg.
Whilst all this confusion and disorder triumphed throughout the great city of Strasburg, was the courteous stranger going on as gently upon his mule in his way to Frankfort, as if he had had no concern at all in the affair-------talking all the way he rode in broken sentences, sometimes to his mule --sometimes to himself----sometimes to his Julia.
O Julia, my lovely Julia!-----nay, I cannot stop to let thee bite that thistle-----that ever the suspected tongue of a rival should have robbed me of enjoyment when I was upon the point of tasting it.-----
-----Pugh!-----'tis nothing but a thistle--never mind it ------thou shalt have a better supper at night.----
----Banished from my country--my friends--from thee.----
Poor devil, thou'rt sadly tired with thy journey!--come ----get on a little faster---there's nothing in my cloak bag
-----But why to Frankfort?------is it that there is a hand unfelt, which secretly is conducting me through these meanders and unsuspected tracts-----
----Stumbling! by St. Nicolas! every step----why, at this rate we shall be all night in getting in--------
-----To happiness-----or am I to be the sport of fortune and slander-----destined to be driven forth unconvicted----- unheard-----untouched----if so, why did I not stay at Strasburg, where justice-----but I had sworn!------Come, thou shalt drink-----to St. Nicolas----O Julia!--------what dost thou prick up thy ears at?-----'tis nothing but a man, &c.------
The stranger rode on, communing in this manner with his mule and Julia----till he arrived at his inn, where, as soon as he arrived, he alighted--------saw his mule, as he had promised it, taken good care of-----took off his cloak bag, with his crimson satin breeches, &c., in it----called for an omelet to his supper, went to his bed about twelve o'clock, and in five minutes fell fast asleep.
It was about the same hour when, the tumult in Strasburg being abated for that night,------the Strasburgers had all got quietly into their beds------but not like the stranger, for the rest either of their minds or bodies; Queen Mab, like an elf as she was, had taken the stranger's nose, and without reduction of its bulk, had that night been at the pains of slitting and dividing it into as many noses of different cuts and fashions as there were heads in Strasburg to hold them. The Abbess of Quedlinburg, who with the four great dignitaries of her chapter, the prioress, the deaness, the subchantress, and senior canoness, had that week come to Strasburg to consult the university upon a case of conscience relating to their placket holes--------was ill all the night.
The courteous stranger's nose had got perched upon the top of the pineal gland of her brain, and made such rousing work in the fancies of the four great dignitaries of her chapter, they could not get a wink of sleep the whole night through for it----there was no keeping a limb still amongst them-----in short, they got up like so many ghosts.
The penitentiaries of the third order of St. Francis---- the nuns of Mt. Calvary----the Praemonstratenses-----the Clunienses *----the Carthusians, and all the severer orders of nuns who lay that night in blankets or haircloth, were
* Hafen Slawkenbergius means the Benedictine nuns of Cluny, founded in the year 940, by Odo, abb@'e de Cluny.
The nuns of St. Ursula acted the wisest----they never attempted to go to bed at all.
The dean of Strasburg, the prebendaries, the capitulars and domiciliars (capitularly assembled in the morning to consider the case of buttered bums) all wished they had followed the nuns of St. Ursula's example.------In the hurry and confusion everything had been in the night before, the bakers had all forgot to lay their leaven----there were no buttered buns to be had for breakfast in all Strasburg---- the whole close of the cathedral was in one eternal commotion------such a cause of restlessness and disquietude, and such a zealous inquiry into the cause of that restlessness, had never happened in Strasburg since Martin Luther, with his doctrines, had turned the city upside down.
If the stranger's nose took this liberty of thrusting itself thus into the dishes * of religious orders, &c., what a carnival did his nose make of it in those of the laity!-----'tis more than my pen, worn to the stump as it is, has power to describe; though I acknowledge (cries Slawkenbergius with more gaiety of thought than I could have expected from him) that there is many a good simile now subsisting in the world which might give my countrymen some idea of it; but at the close of such a folio as this, wrote for their sakes, and in which I have spent the greatest part of my life-----though I own to them the simile is in being, yet would it not be unreasonable in them to expect I should have either time or inclination to search for it? Let it suffice to say that the riot and disorder it occasioned in the Strasburgers' fantasies was so general------such an overpowering mastership had it got of all the faculties of the Strasburgers' minds-----so many strange things, with equal confidence on all sides, and with equal eloquence in all places, were spoken and sworn
* Mr. Shandy's compliments to orators-----is very sensible that Slawkenbergius has here changed his metaphor-------which he is very guilty of;-----that as a translator, Mr. Shandy has all along done what he could to make him stick to it-----but that here 'twas impossible.
Now what might add, if anything may be thought necessary to add to so vehement a desire-----was this, that the sentinel, the bandy-legged drummer, the trumpeter, the trumpeter's wife, the burgomaster's widow, the master of the inn, and the master of the inn's wife how widely soever they all differed every one from another in their testimonies and descriptions of the stranger's nose-----they all agreed together in two points----namely, that he was gone to Frankfort, and would not return to Strasburg till that day month; and secondly, whether his nose was true or false, that the stranger himself was one of the most perfect paragons of beauty-----the finest-made man!------the most genteel!----- the most generous of his purse------the most courteous in his carriage that had ever entered the gates of Strasburg----- that as he rode, with his scimitar slung loosely to his wrist, through the streets----and walked with his crimson satin breeches across the parade----'twas with so sweet an air of careless modesty, and so manly withal-----as would have put the heart in jeopardy (had his nose not stood in his way) of every virgin who had cast her eyes upon him.
I call not upon that heart which is a stranger to the throbs and yearnings of curiosity so excited to justify the Abbess of Quedlinburg, the prioress, the deaness and sub-chantress for sending at noonday for the trumpeter's wife: she went through the streets of Strasburg with her husband's trumpet in her hand,-----the best apparatus the straitness of the time would allow her for the illustration of her theory;----she stayed no longer than three days.
The sentinel and the bandy-legged drummer!-----nothing on this side of old Athens could equal them! they read their lectures under the city gates to comers and goers, with all the pomp of a Chrysippus and a Crantor in their porticos.
The master of the inn, with his ostler on his left hand, read his also in the same style,-----under the ponfico or gateway of his stable yard----his wife, hers more privately in a back room: all flocked to their lectures; not promiscuously-----but to this or that, as is ever the way, as faith and
'Tis worth remarking, for the benefit of all demonstrators in natural philosophy, &c., that as soon as the trumpeter's wife had finished the Abbess of Quedlinburg's private lecture, and had begun to read in public, which she did upon a stool in the middle of the great parade-----she incommoded the other demonstrators mainly, by gaining incontinently the most fashionable part of the city of Strasburg for her auditory-----But when a demonstrator in philosophy (cries Slawkenbergius) has a trumpet for an apparatus, pray what rival in science can pretend to be heard besides him?
Whilst the unlearned, through these conduits of intelligence, were all busied in getting down to the bottom of the well, where TRUTH keeps her little court,-------were the learned in their way as busy in pumping her up through the conduits of dialect induction-----they concerned themselves not with facts--------they reasoned-------
Not one profession had thrown more light upon this subject than the faculty----had not all their disputes about it run into the affair of Wens and oedematous swellings, they could not keep clear of them for their blood and souls------ the stranger's nose had nothing to do either with wens or oedematous swellings.
It was demonstrated however very satisfactorily that such a ponderous mass of heterogeneous matter could not be congested and conglomerated to the nose whilst the infant was in utero, without destroying the statical balance of the foetus, and throwing it plump upon its head nine months before the time.--------
----The opponents granted the theory----they denied the consequences.
And if a suitable provision of veins, arteries, &c., said they, was not laid in, for the due nourishment of such a nose, in the very first stamina and rudiments of its formation before it came into the world (bating the case of wens), it could not regularly grow and be sustained afterwards.
This was all answered by a dissertation upon nutriment. and the effect which nutriment had in extending the vessels, and in the increase and prolongation of the muscular parts to the greatest growth and expansion imaginable------In the triumph of which theory, they went so far as to affirm that there was no cause in nature why a nose might not grow to the size of the man himself.
The respondents satisfied the world this event could never happen to them so long as a man had but one stomach and one pair of lungs----For the stomach, said they, being the only organ destined for the reception of food, and turning it into chyle,-----and the lungs the only engine of sanguification,-----it could possibly work off no more than what the appetite brought it: or admitting the possibility of a man's overloading his stomach, nature had set bounds however to his lungs-----the engine was of a determined size and strength, and could elaborate but a certain quantity in a given time------that is, it could produce just as much blood as was sufficient for one single man, and no more; so that, if there was as much nose as man-----they proved a mortification must necessarily ensue; and forasmuch as there could not be a support for both, that the nose must either fall off from the man, or the man inevitably fall off from his nose.
Nature accommodates herself to these emergencies, cried the opponents--else what do you say to the case of a whole stomach-----a whole pair of lungs, and but half a man, when both his legs have been unfortunately shot off?----
He dies of a plethora, said they-----or must spit blood, and in a fortnight or three weeks go off in a consumption-------
-----It happens otherways--replied the opponents.----
It ought not, said they.
The more curious and intimate inquirers after Nature and her doings, though they went hand in hand a good way together, yet they all divided about the nose at last, almost as much as the faculty itself.
They amicably laid it down that there was a just and geometrical arrangement and proportion of the several parts of the human frame to its several destinations, offices, and functions, which could not be transgressed but within certain limits-----that Nature, though she sported--she sported within a certain circle;--and they could not agree about the diameter of it.
The logicians stuck much closer to the point before them than any of the classes of the literati;-----they began and ended with the word Nose; and had it not been for a petitio principii, which one of the ablest of them ran his head against in the beginning of the combat, the whole controversy had been settled at once.
A nose, argued the logician, cannot bleed without blood -----and not only blood--but blood circulating in it to supply the phenomenon with a succession of drops--(a stream being but a quicker succession of drops that is
I deny the definition-----Death is the separation of the soul from the body, said his antagonist----Then we don't agree about our weapon, said the logician-----Then there is an end of the dispute, replied the antagonist.
The civilians were still more concise; what they offered being more in the nature of a decree----than a dispute.
----Such a monstrous nose, said they, had it been a true nose, could not possibly have been suffered in civil society ----and if false-----to impose upon society with such false signs and tokens was a still greater violation of its rights, and must have had still less mercy shown it.
The only objection to this was that if it proved anything, it proved the stranger's nose was neither true nor false.
This left room for the controversy to go on. It was maintained by the advocates of the ecclesiastic court that there was nothing to inhibit a decree, since the stranger ex mero motu had confessed he had been at the Promontory of Noses, and had got one of the goodliest, &c.------To this it was answered, it was impossible there should be such a place as the Promontory of Noses, and the learned be ignorant where it lay. The commissary of the Bishop of Strasburg undertook the advocates, explained this matter in a treatise upon proverbial phrases, showing them that the Promontory of Noses was a mere allegoric expression, importing no more than that Nature had given him a long nose: in proof of which, with great learning he cited the underwritten authorities,* which had decided the point incontestably, had it not appeared that a dispute about some franchises of dean and chapter lands had been determined by it nineteen years before.
* Nonnulli ex nostratibus eadem loquendi formul@^a utun. Quinimo et Logistae & Canonistae------Vid. Parce Barne Jas in d. L. Provincial. Constitut. de conjec. vid. Vol. Lib. 4. Titul. l. N. 7. qu@^a etiam in re conspir. Om. de Promontorio Nas. Tichmak. ff. d. tit. 3. fol. 189 passim. Vid. Glos. de contrahend. empt. &c. nec non J. Scrudr. in cap. @ss. refut. ff. per totum Cum his cons. Rever. J. Tubal, Sentent. & Prov. cap. 9. ff. 1 1, 12 obiter. V. et. Librum, cui Tit. de Terris & Phras. Belg. ad finem, cum Comment. N. Bardy Belg. Vid. Scrip. Argentotarens. de Antiq. Ecc. in Episc. Archiv. fid. coll. per Von Jacobum Koinshoven Folio Argent. 1583, praecip. ad finem. Quibus add. Rebuff in L. obvenire de Signif. Nom. ff. fol. & de Jure, Gent. & Civil. de protib. aliena teud. per federa, test. Joha. Luxius in prolegom. quem velim videas, de Analy. Cap. 1, 2, 3. Vid. Idea.
It happened----I must not say unluckily for Truth, because they were given her a lift another way in so doing; that the two universities of Strasburg------the Lutheran, founded in the year 1538 by Jacobus Sturmius, counsellor of the senate,-----and the Popish, founded by Leopold, Archduke of Austria, were, during all this time, employing the whole depth of their knowledge (except just what the affair of the Abbess of Quedlinburg's placket holes required)-----in determining the point of Martin Luther's damnation.
The Popish doctors had undertaken to demonstrate a priori that from the necessary influence of the planets on the twenty-second day of October, 1483,-----when the moon was in the twelfth house-------Jupiter, Mars, and Venus in the third, the Sun, Saturn, and Mercury all got together in the fourth-----that he must in course, and unavoidably, be a damned man----and that his doctrines, by a direct corollary, must be damned doctrines too.
By inspection into his horoscope, where five planets were in coition all at once with Scorpio * (in reading this my father would always shake his head) in the ninth house, which the Arabians allotted to religion-----it appeared that Martin Luther did not care one stiver about the matter----and that from the horoscope directed to the conjunction of Mars----- they made it plain likewise he must die cursing and blaspheming----with the blast of which his soul (being steeped in guilt) sailed before the wind, into the lake of hellfire.
The little objection of the Lutheran doctors to this was that it must certainly be the soul of another man, born Oct. 22, '83, which was forced to sail down before the wind in that manner---inasmuch as it appeared from the register of Islaben, in the county of Mansfelt, that Luther was not born in the year 1483, but in '84; and not on the 22d day of October, but on the 10th of November, the eve of Martinmas Day, from whence he had the name of Martin.
[-----I must break off my translation for a moment; for if I did not, I know I should no more be able to shut my
* Haec mira, satisque horrenda. [5] Planetarum coitio sub Scorpio Asterismo in non@^a coeli statione, quam Arabes religioni deputabant efficit Martinum Lutherun sacrilegum hereticum, christianae religionis hostem acerrimum atque prophanum, ex horoscopi directione ad Martis coitum, [ir]religiosissimus obiit, ejus Anima scelestissima ad infernos navigavit-----ab Alecto, Tisiphone, et Megaera flagellis igneis cruciata perenniter.
------Lucas Gauricus in Tractatu astrologico de praeteritis multorum hominum accidentibus per genituras examinatis.
-----Now you see, brother Toby, he would say, looking up, ``that Christian names are not such indifferent things;''----- had Luther here been called by any other name but Martin, he would have been damned to all eternity-------Not that I look upon Martin, he would add, as a good name------far from it---'tis something better than a neutral, and but a little ----yet little as it is, you see it was of some service to him.
My father knew the weakness of this prop to his hypothesis, as well as the best logician could show him-----yet so strange is the weakness of man at the same time, as it fell in his way, he could not for his life but make use of it; and it was certainly for this reason that though there are many stories in Hafen Slawkenbergius's Decads full as entertaining as this I am translating, yet there is not one amongst them which my father read over with half the delight-----it flattered two of his strangest hypotheses together----his NAMES and his NOSES-----I will be bold to say, he might have read all the books in the Alexandrian library, had not fate taken other care of them, and not have met with a book or a passage in one which hit two such nails as these upon the head at one stroke.]
The two universities of Strasburg were hard tugging at this affair of Luther's navigation. The Protestant doctors had demonstrated that he had not sailed right before the wind, as the Popish doctors had pretended; and as everyone knew there was no sailing full in the teeth of it,-----they were going to settle, in case he had sailed, how many points he was off; whether Martin had doubled the cape, or had fallen upon a leeshore; and no doubt, as it was an enquiry of much edification, at least to those who understood this sort of NAVIGATION, they had gone on with it in spite of the size of the stranger's nose, had not the size of the stranger's nose drawn off the attention of the world from what they were about-----it was their business to follow.------
The Abbess of Quedlinburg and her four dignitaries was no stop; for the enormity of the stranger's nose running full as much in their fancies as their case of conscience--The affair of their placket holes kept cold----In a word, the printers were ordered to distribute their types----all controversies dropped.
'Twas a square cap with a silk tassel upon the crown of it ----to a nutshell-----to have guessed on which side of the nose the two universities would split.
,Tis above reason, cried the doctors on one side.
'Tis below reason, cried the others.
'Tis faith, cried one.
'Tis a fiddlestick, said the other.
'Tis possible, cried the one.
'Tis impossible, said the other.
God's power is infinite, cried the Nosarians; he can do anything.
He can do nothing, replied the Antinosarians, which implies contradictions.
He can make matter think, said the Nosarians.
As certainly as you can make a velvet cap out of a sow's ear, replied the Antinosarians.
He can make two and two five, replied the Popish doctors. -----'Tis false, said their opponents.----
Infinite power is infinite power, said the doctors who maintained the reality of the nose.-----It extends only to all possible things, replied the Lutherans.
By God in heaven, cried the Popish doctors, he can make a nose, if he thinks fit, as big as the steeple of Strasburg.
Now the steeple of Strasburg being the biggest and the tallest church steeple to be seen in the whole world, the Antinosarians denied that a nose of 575 geometrical feet in length could be worn, at least by a middle-sized man-----The Popish doctors swore it could----The Lutheran doctors said No;----it could not.
This at once started a new dispute, which they pursued a great way, upon the extent and limitation of the moral and natural attributes of God----That controversy led them naturally into Thomas Aquinas, and Thomas Aquinas to the devil.
The stranger's nose was no more heard of in the dispute ----it just served as a frigate to launch them into the gulf of school divinity,-----and then they all sailed before the wind.
Heat is in proportion to the want of true knowledge.
The controversy about the attributes, &c., instead of cooling, on the contrary had inflamed the Strasburgers' imaginations to a most inordinate degree-----The less they understood of the matter, the greater was their wonder about it -----they were left in all the distresses of desire unsatisfied ------saw their doctors, the Parchmentarians, the Brassarians, the Turpentarians, on one side-----the Popish doctors on the
----The poor Strasburgers left upon the beach!
-----What was to be done?----No delay-----the uproar increased-----everyone in disorder----the city gates set open.-----
Unfortunate Strasburgers! was there in the storehouse of nature-----was there in the lumber rooms of learning----- was there in the great arsenal of chance, one single engine left undrawn forth to torture your curiosities, and stretch your desires, which was not pointed by the hand of fate to play upon your hearts?-----I dip not my pen into my ink to excuse the surrender of yourselves----'tis to write your panegyric. Show me a city so macerated with expectation------ who neither eat, or drank, or slept, or prayed, or hearkened to the calls either of religion or nature for seven-and-twenty days together, who could have held out one day longer.
On the twenty-eighth the courteous stranger had promised to return to Strasburg.
Seven thousand coaches (Slawkenbergius must certainly have made some mistake in his numerical characters) 7000 coaches----15000 single-horse chairs-----20000 waggons, crouded as full as they could all hold with senators, counsellors, syndics-----Beguines, widows, wives, virgins, canons, concubines, all in their coaches-----The Abbess of Quedlinburg, with the prioress, the deaness and subchantress leading the procession in one coach, and the Dean of Strasburg, with the four great dignitaries of his chapter on her left hand----the rest following higglety-pigglety as they could; some on horseback----some on foot-----some led ----some driven----some down the Rhine-----some this way-----some that-----all set out at sunrise to meet the courteous stranger on the road.
Haste we now towards the catastrophe of my tale--I say Catastrophe (cries Slawkenbergius) inasmuch as a tale, with parts rightly disposed, not only rejoiceth (gaudet) in the Catastrophe and Peripetia of a DRAMA, but rejoiceth moreover in all the essential and integrant parts of it-----it has its Protasis, Epitasis, Catastasis, its Catastrophe or Peripetia growing one out of the other in it, in the order Aristotle first planted them-----without which a tale had better never be told at all, says Slawkenbergius, but be kept to a man's self.
In all my ten tales, in all my ten decads, have I, Slawkenbergius tied down every tale of them as tightly to this rule, as I have done this of the stranger and his nose.
-----From his first parley with the sentinel, to his leaving the city of Strasburg, after pulling off his crimson satin pair of breeches, is the Protasis or first entrance----where the characters of the Personae Dramatis are just touched in, and the subject slightly begun.
The Epitasis, wherein the action is more fully entered upon and heightened, till it arrives at its state or height called the Catastasis, and which usually takes up the 2d and 3d act, is included within that busy period of my tale betwixt the first night's uproar about the nose, to the conclusion of the trumpeter's wife's lectures upon it in the middle of the grand parade; and from the first embarking of the learned in the dispute-----to the doctors finally sailing away, and leaving the Strasburgers upon the beach in distress, is the Catastasis or the ripening of the incidents and passions for their bursting forth in the fifth act.
This commences with the setting out of the Strasburgers in the Frankfort road, and terminates in unwinding the labyrinth and bringing the hero out of a state of agitation (as Aristotle calls it) to a state of rest and quietness.
This, says Hafen Slawkenbergius, constitutes the Catastro- phe or Peripetia of my tale-----and that is the part of it I am going to relate.
We left the stranger behind the curtain asleep--he enters now upon the stage.
----What dost thou prick up thy ears at?-----'tis nothing but a man upon a horse----was the last word the stranger uttered to his mule. It was not proper then to tell the reader that the mule took his master's word for it; and without any more if's or ands, let the traveller and his horse pass by.
The traveller was hastening with all diligence to get to Strasburg that night-----What a fool am I, said the traveller to himself, when he had rode about a league farther, to think of getting into Strasburg this night-----Strasburg!-----the great Strasburg!-----Strasburg, the capital of all Alsatia! Strasburg, an imperial city! Strasburg, a sovereign state! Strasburg, garrisoned with five thousand of the best troops in all the world!----Alas! if I was at the gates of Strasburg this moment, I could not gain admittance into it for a ducat-----nay, a ducat and half-----'tis too much------better go back to the last inn I have passed----than lie I know not where----or give I know not what. The traveller, as he made these reflections in his mind, turned his horse's head about, and three minutes after the stranger had been con-ducted into his chamber, he arrived at the same inn.
----We have bacon in the house, said the host, and bread----and till eleven o'clock this night had three eggs in it-----but a stranger, who arrived an hour ago, has had them dressed into an omelet, and we have nothing.-----
-----Alas! said the traveller, harrassed as I am, I want nothing but a bed---I have one as soft as is in Alsatia, said the host.
----The stranger, continued he, should have slept in it, for 'tis my best bed, but upon the score of his nose-------He has got a defluxion, said the traveller-----Not that I know, cried the host-----But 'tis a camp bed, and Jacinta, said he, looking towards the maid, imagined there was not room in it to turn his nose in------Why so? cried the traveller, starting back-----It is so long a nose, replied the host----- The traveller fixed his eyes upon Jacinta, then upon the ground-----kneeled upon his right knee-----had just got his hand laid upon his breast-----Trifle not with my anxiety, said he, rising up again-----'Tis no trifle, said Jacinta 'tis the most glorious nose!----The traveller fell upon his knee again -----laid his hand upon his breast-----then said he, looking up to heaven, thou hast conducted me to the end of my pilgrimage-----'Tis Diego!
The traveller was the brother of the Julia so often invoked that night by the stranger as he rode from Strasburg upon his mule; and was come, on her part, in quest of him. He had accompanied his sister from Valadolid across the Pyrenean mountains through France, and had many an entangled skein to wind off in pursuit of him through the many meanders and abrupt turnings of a lover's thorny tracks.
-----Julia had sunk under it-----and had not been able to go a step farther than to Lyons, where, with the many disquietudes of a tender heart, which all talk of----but few feel-----she sickened, but had just strength to write a letter to Diego; and having conjured her brother never to see her face till he had found him out, and put the letter into his hands, Julia took to her bed.
Fernandez (for that was her brother's name)-----though the camp bed was as soft as any one in Alsace, yet he could not shut his eyes in it.----As soon as it was day he rose, and hearing Diego was risen too, he entered his chamber, and discharged his sister's commission.
The letter was as follows:
``Seig. DIEGO.
``whether my suspicions of your nose were justly excited
``How could I know so little of myself, when I sent my Due@`na to forbid your coming more under my lattice? or how could I know so little of you, Diego, as to imagine you would not have stayed one day in Valadolid to have given ease to my doubts?----was I to be abandoned, Diego, because I was deceived? or was it kind to take me at my word, whether my suspicions were just or no, and leave me, as you did, a prey to much uncertainty and sorrow?
``In what manner Julia has resented this---my brother, when he puts this letter into your hands, will tell you: He will tell you in how few moments she repented of the rash message she had sent you----in what frantic haste she flew to her lattice, and how many days and nights together she leaned immovably upon her elbow, looking through it towards the way which Diego was wont to come.
``He will tell you, when she heard of your departure ----how her spirits deserted her----how her heart sickened------how piteously she mourned-----how low she hung her head. O Diego! how many weary steps has my brother's pity led me by the hand languishing to trace out yours! how far has desire carried me beyond strength----and how oft have I fainted by the way, and sunk into his arms, with only power to cry out----0 my Diego!
``If the gentleness of your carriage has not belied your heart, you will fly to me, almost as fast as you fled from me -----haste as you will, you will arrive but to see me expire. ----'Tis a bitter draught, Diego, but O!'tis embittered still more by dying un--------,,
She could proceed no farther.
Slawkenbergius supposes the word intended was uncon- vinced, but her strength would not enable her to finish her letter.
The heart of the courteous Diego overflowed as he read the letter----he ordered his mule forthwith and Fernandez's horse to be saddled; and as no vent in prose is equal to that of poetry in such conflicts----chance, which as often directs us to remedies as to diseases, having thrown a piece of charcoal into the window-----Diego availed himself of it, and whilst the ostler was getting ready his mule, he eased his mind against the wall as follows.
ODE
Harsh and untuneful are the notes of love,
Unless my Julia strikes the key,
Her hand alone can touch the part,
Whose dulcet move-
ment charms the heart,
And governs all the man with sympathetic sway.
2d
O Julia!
The lines were very natural-----for they were nothing at all to the purpose, says Slawkenbergius, and 'tis a pity there were no more of them; but whether it was that Seig. Diego was slow in composing verses--or the ostler quick in saddling mules-----is not averred; certain it was that Diego's mule and Fernandez's horse were ready at the door of the inn before. Diego was ready for his second stanza; so without staying to finish his ode, they both mounted, sallied forth, passed the Rhine, traversed Alsace, shaped their course towards Lyons, and before the Strasburgers and the Abbess of Quedlinburg had set out on their cavalcade, had Fernandez, Diego, and his Julia crossed the Pyrenean mountains, and got safe to Valadolid.
'Tis needless to inform the geographical reader that when Diego was in Spain, it was not possible to meet the courteous stranger in the Frankfort road; it is enough to say that of all restless desires, curiosity being the strongest-----the Strasburgers felt the full force of it; and that for three days and nights they were tossed to and fro in the Frankfort road with the tempestuous fury of this passion, before they could submit to return home------when alas! an event was prepared for them, of all others the most grievous that could befall a free people.
As this revolution of the Strasburgers' affairs is often spoken of, and little understood, I will, in ten words, says Slawkenbergius, give the world an explanation of it, and with it put an end to my tale.
Everybody knows of the grand system of Universal Monarchy, wrote by order of Mons. Colbert, and put in manuscript into the hands of Lewis the Fourteenth, in the year 1664.
'Tis as well known that one branch out of many of that
It is the lot of few to trace out the true springs of this and suchlike revolutions----The vulgar look too high for them ----Statesmen look too low--Truth (for once) lies in the middle.
what a fatal thing is the popular pride of a free city! cries one historian-----The Strasburgers deemed it a diminution of their freedom to receive an imperial garrison------and so fell a prey to a French one.
The fate, says another, of the Strasburgers may be a warning to all free people to save their money-------They anticipated their revenues----brought themselves under taxes, exhausted their strength, and in the end became so weak a people, they had not strength to keep their gates shut, and so the French pushed them open.
Alas! alas! cries Slawkenbergius, 'twas not the French----- 'twas CURIOSITY pushed them open-------The French indeed, who are ever upon the catch, when they saw the Strasburgers, men, women, and children, all marched out to follow the stranger's nose--each man followed his own, and marched in.
Trade and manufactures have decayed and gradually grown down ever since-----but not from any cause which commercial heads have assigned; for it is owing to this only, that Noses have ever so run in their heads, that the Strasburgers could not follow their business.
Alas! alas! cries Slawkenbergius, making an exclamation -----it is not the first----and I fear will not be the last fortress that has been either won----or lost by NOSES.
The END of
Slawkenbergius's TALE
----Throw yourself down upon the bed a dozen times -----taking care only to place a looking glass first in a chair on one side of it, before you do it------But was the stranger's nose a true nose-----or was it a false one?
To tell that beforehand, Madam, would be to do injury to one of the best tales in the Christian world; and that is the tenth of the tenth decad which immediately follows this.
This tale, crieth Slawkenbergius somewhat exultingly, has been reserved by me for the concluding tale of my whole work; knowing right well that when I shall have told it and my reader shall have read it through-----'twould be even high time for both of us to shut up the book; inasmuch, continues Slawkenbergius, as I know of no tale which could possibly ever go down after it.
-----'Tis a tale indeed!
This sets out with the first interview in the inn at Lyons, when Fernandez left the courteous stranger and his sister Julia alone in her chamber, and is overwritten,
The INTRICACIES
of
Diego and Julia
Heavens! thou art a strange creature, Slawkenbergius! what a whimsical view of the involutions of the heart of woman hast thou opened! how this can ever be translated, and yet if this specimen of Slawkenbergius's tales, and the exquisitiveness of his moral, should please the world----
Now whether the compression shortened my uncle Toby's Lace into a more pleasurable oval,----or that the philanthropy of his heart, in seeing his brother beginning to emerge out of the sea of his afflictions, had braced up his muscles, -----so that the compression upon his chin only doubled the benignity which was there before, is not hard to decide. -----My father, in turning his eyes, was struck with such a gleam of sunshine in his face, as melted down the sullenness of his grief in a moment.
He broke silence as follows.
--------Had my uncle Toby shot a bullet through my father's
heart, he could not have fallen down with his nose upon the
quilt more suddenly.
Bless me! said my uncle Toby.
-----My father could not help blushing.
'Twould be a pity, Trim quoth my uncle Toby, thou shouldst ever feel sorrow of thy own------thou feelest it so tenderly for others.-----Alack o' day, replied the corporal, brightening up his face---------your Honour knows I have neither wife or child-----I can have no sorrows in this world.-----My father could not help smiling.----As few as any man, Trim, replied my uncle Toby; nor cam I see how a fellow of thy light heart can suffer, but from the distress of poverty in thy old age-----when thou art passed all services, Trim,-----and hast outlived thy friends-----An' please your Honour, never fear, replied Trim cheerily----- But I would have thee never fear, Trim, replied my uncle; and therefore, continued my uncle Toby, throwing down his crutch, and getting up upon his legs as he uttered the word therefore-----in recompense, Trim, of thy long fidelity to me, and that goodness of thy heart I have had such proofs of-----whilst thy master is worth a shilling-----thou shalt never ask elsewhere, Trim, for a penny. Trim attempted to thank my uncle Toby,----but had not power------tears trickled down his cheeks faster than he could wipe them off -----He laid his hands upon his breast----made a bow to the ground, and shut the door.
-----I have left Trim my bowling green, cried my uncle
Toby-----My father smiled----I have left him moreover a
pension, continued my uncle Toby-----My father looked
grave.
For which reason my father played the same jig over
again with his toe upon the floor-----pushed the chamber
pot still a little farther within the valance----gave a hem
-----raised himself up upon his elbow------and was just
beginning to address himself to my uncle Toby-----when
recollecting the unsuccessfulness of his first effort in that
attitude,----he got upon his legs, and in making the third
turn across the room, he stopped short before my uncle
Toby; and laying the three first fingers of his right hand
in the palm of his left, and stooping a little, he addressed
himself to my uncle Toby as follows.
----That is cutting the knot, said my father, instead of untying it.-----But give me leave to lead you, brother Toby, a little deeper into this mystery.
With all my heart, replied my uncle Toby.
My father instantly exchanged the attitude he was in for that in which Socrates is so finely painted by Raphael in his school of Athens; which your Connoisseurship knows is so exquisitely imagined that even the particular manner of the reasoning of Socrates is expressed by it----for he holds the forefinger of his left hand between the forefinger and the thumb of his right, and seems as if he was saying to the libertine he is reclaiming------``You grant me this----- and this: and this, and this, I don't ask of you--they follow of themselves in course.''
So stood my father, holding fast his forefinger betwixt his finger and his thumb, and reasoning with my uncle Toby
Now, my dear brother, said my father, replacing his forefinger, as he was coming closer to the point,-----had my child arrived safe into the world, unmartyred in that precious part of him------fanciful and extravagant as I may appear to the world in my opinion of Christian names, and of that magic bias which good or bad names irresistably impress upon our characters and conducts----heaven is witness! that in the warmest transports of my wishes for the prosperity of my child, I never once wished to crown his head with more glory and honour than what GEORGE or EDWARD would have spread around it.
But alas! continued my father, as the greatest evil has be-fallen him-----I must counteract and undo it with the greatest good.
He shall be christened Trismegistus, brother.
I wish it may answer-----replied my uncle Toby, rising up.
The double success of my father's repartees tickled off the pain of his shin at once----it was well it so fell out----- (chance! again)--or the world to this day had never known-the subject of my father's calculation----to guess it----- there was no chance----What a lucky chapter of chances has this turned out! for it has saved me the trouble of writing one express, and in truth I have enough already upon my hands without it------Have not I promised the world a chapter of knots? two chapters upon the right and the wrong end of a woman? a chapter upon whiskers? a chapter upon wishes?-----a chapter of noses?----No, I have done that----- a chapter upon my uncle Toby's modesty: to say nothing of a chapter upon chapters which I will finish before I sleep----- by my great-grandfather's whiskers, I shall never get half of 'em through this year.
Take pen and ink in hand, and calculate it fairly, brother Toby, said my father, and it will turn out a million to one that of all the parts of the body, the edge of the forceps should have the ill luck just to fall upon and break down that one part which should break down the fortunes of our house with it.
It might have been worse, replied my uncle Toby-----I don't comprehend, said my father-------Suppose the hip had presented, replied my uncle Toby, as Dr. Slop foreboded.
My father reflected half a minute------looked down------ touched the middle of his forehead alightly with his finger--------
-----True, said he.
The deuce of any other rule have I to govern myself by in
this affair-----and if I had one----as I do all things out of all
rule-----I would twist it and tear it to pieces, and throw it
into the fire when I had done-----Am I warm? I am, and
the cause demands it------a pretty story! is a man to follow
rules-------or rules to follow him?
Now this, you must know, being my chapter upon chapters,
which I promised to write before I went to sleep, I thought
it meet to ease my conscience entirely before I laid down,
by telling the world all I knew about the matter at once: Is
not this ten times better than to set out dogmatically with a
sententious parade of wisdom, and telling the world a story
of a roasted horse-----that chapters relieve the mind------
that they assist-----or impose upon the imagination-----and
that in a work of this dramatic cast they are as necessary
as the shifting of scenes-----with fifty other cold conceits,
enough to extinguish the fire which roasted him.----O! but
to understand this, which is a puff at the fire of Diana's
temple----you must read Longinus------read away----if you
are not a jot the wiser by reading him the first time over-----
never fear------read him again------Avicenna and Licetus read
Aristotle's metaphysics forty times through apiece, and
never understood a single word.----But mark the
So much for my chapter upon chapters, which I hold to be the best chapter in my whole work; and take my word, whoever reads it is full as well employed as in picking straws.
* Ce Foetus n'@'etoit pas plus grand que la paume de la main; mais son p@`ere l'ayant @'examin@'e en qualit@'e de M@'edecin, & ayant trouv@'e que c'@'etoit quelque chose de plus qu'un Embryon, le fit transporter tout vivant @`a Rapallo, o@`u il le fit voir @`a Jer@^ome Bardi & @`a d'autres Medecins du lieu. On trouva qu'il ne lui manquoit rien d'essential @`a la vie; & son p@`ere pour faire voir un essai de son exp@`erience, entreprit d'achever l'ouvrage de la Nature, & de travailler @`a la formation de l'Enfant avec le m@^eme artifice que celui dont on se sert pour faire @'eclorre les Poulets in Egypte. Il instruisit une Nourrice de tout ce qu'elle avoit @`a faire, & ayant fait mettre son fils dans un four proprement accommod@'e, il reussit @`a l'@'elever et @`a lui faire prendre ses accroissemens n@'ecessaires, par l'uniformit@'e d'une chaleur @'etrang@'ere measur@'ee exactement sur les d@'egr@'es d'un Thermom@`etre, ou d'un autre instrument @'equivalent. (Vide Mich. Giustinian, ne gii Scritt. Liguri @`a Cart. 223.488.)
On auroit toujours @'et@'e tr@`es satisfait de l'industrie d'un P@`ere si exp@'eriment@'e dans l'Art de la G@'en@'eration, quand il n'auroit p@^u prolonger la vie @`a son fils que pour quelques mois, ou pour peu d'ann@'ees.
Mais quand on se represente que l'Enfant a v@'ecu pres de quatrevingts ans, & qu'il a compos@'e quatre-vingts Ouvrages diff@'erents tous fruits d'une longue lecture,-----il faut convenir que tout ce qui est incroyable n'est pas toujours faux, & que la Vraifembiance n'est pas toujours du c@^ot@'e de la V@'erlt@'e.
Il n'avoit que dix-neuf ans lorsqu'il composa Gonopsychanthropologia de Origine Animae humanae.
(Les Enfans c@'el@`ebres, rev@^us & corrig@'es par M. De la Monnoye de l'Acad@'emie Fran@,coise.)
----In course, said my father.
Of all the riddles of a married life, said my father, crossing the landing, in order to set his back against the wall, whilst . he propounded it to my uncle Toby-----of all the puzzling riddles, said he, in a marriage state,-----of which you may trust me, brother Toby, there are more asses' loads than all Job's stock of asses could have carried----there is not one that has more intricacies in it than this-----that from the very moment the mistress of the house is brought to bed, every female in it, from my lady's gentlewoman down to the
I think rather, replied my uncle Toby, that 'tis we who sink an inch lower.-----If I meet but a woman with child-----I do it-----'Tis a heavy tax upon that half of our fellowcreatures, brother Shandy, said my uncle Toby----'Tis a piteous burden upon 'em, continued he, shaking his head. -----Yes, yes, 'tis a painful thing-----said my father, shaking his head too-----but certainly, since shaking of heads came into fashion, never did two heads shake together, in concert, from two such different springs.
God bless z 'em all------said my uncle Toby and
Deuce take z my father, each to himself.
-----'Tis even high time; for except a short nap, which
they both got whilst Trim was boring the jack boots-----and
which, by the bye, did my father no sort of good upon the
score of the bad hinge-----they have not else shut their
eyes since nine hours before the time that Dr. Slop was led
into the back parlour in that dirty pickle by Obadiah.
Was every day of my life to be as busy a day as this,----
and to take up,-----truce----
I will not finish that sentence till I have made an observation
upon the strange state of affairs between the reader and
myself, just as things stand at present----an observation
never applicable before to any one biographical writer since
the creation of the world but to myself----and I believe
will never hold good to any other, until its final
destruction----and therefore, for the very novelty of it alone, it
must be worth your Worships' attending to.
I am this month one whole year older than I was this
time twelvemonth; and having got, as you perceive, almost
Will this be good for your worships' eyes?
It will do well for mine; and, was it not that my OPINIONS will be the death of me, I perceive I shall lead a fine life of it out of this selfsame life of mine; or, in other words, shall lead a couple of fine lives together.
As for the proposal of twelve volumes a year, or a volume a month, it no way alters my prospect-----write as I will, and rush as I may into the middle of things, as Horace advises,-----I shall never overtake myself-----whipped and driven to the last pinch, at the worst I shall have one day the start of my pen-----and one day is enough for two volumes-----and two volumes will be enough for one year.----
Heaven prosper the manufactures of paper under this propitious reign which is now opened to us,-----as I trust its providence will prosper everything else in it that is taken in hand.----
As for the propagation of Geese----I give myself no concern----Nature is all bountiful-----I shall never want tools to work with.
----So then, friend! you have got my father and my uncle Toby off the stairs, and seen them to bed?----And how did you manage it?----You dropped a curtain at the stairs' foot-----I thought you had no other way for it-----Here's a crown for your trouble.
Were one sure, said my father to himself, scratching his eyebrow, that the child was expiring, one might as well compliment my brother Toby as not----and 'twould be a pity, in such a case, to throw away so great a name as Trismegistus upon him-----But he may recover.
No, no,----said my father to Susannah, I'll get up----- There is no time, cried Susannah, the child's as black as my shoe. Trismegistus, said my father-----But stay-----thou art a leaky vessel, Susannah, added my father; canst thou carry Trismegistus in thy head the length of the gallery without scattering----Can I? cried Susannah, shutting the door in a huff-----If she can, I'll be shot, said my father bouncing out of bed in the dark, and groping for his breeches.
Susannah ran with all speed along the gallery.
My father made all possible speed to find his breeches.
Susannah got the start, and kept it-----'Tis Tris-----something, cried Susannah-----There is no Christian name in the world, said the curate, beginning with Tris-----but Tristram. Then 'tis Tristram-gistus quoth Susannah.
-----There is no gisrus to it, noodle!-----'tis my own name, replied the curate, dipping his hand as he spoke into the basin---------Tristram! said he, &c., &c., &c., &c., so Tristram was I called, and Tristram shall I be to the day of my death.
My father followed Susannah with his nightgown across his arm, with nothing more than his breeches on, fastened
----She has not forgot the name? cried my father, half opening the door-----No, no, said the curate, with a tone of intelligence----And the child is better, cried Susannah ----And how does your Mistress? As well, said Susannah, as can be expected----Pish! said my father, the button of his breeches slipping out of the buttonhole-----So that whether the interjection was levelled at Susannah, or the buttonhole,-----whether pish was an interjection of contempt or an interjection of modesty, is a doubt, and must be a doubt till I shall have time to write the three following favorite chapters, that is, my chapter of chambermaids-----my chapter of pishes, and my chapter of buttonholes.
All the light I am able to give the reader at present is
this, that the moment my father cried Pish! he whisked
himself about------and with his breeches held up by one hand,
and his nightgown thrown across the arm of the other, he
returned along the gallery to bed, something slower than he
came.
A fitter occasion could never have presented itself than
what this moment offers, when all the curtains of the family
are drawn-----the candles put out-----and no creature's eyes
are open but a single one, for the other has been shut these
twenty years, of my mother's nurse.
It is a fine subject!
And yet, as fine as it is, I would undertake to write a dozen
chapters upon buttonholes, both quicker and with more fame
than a single chapter upon this.
Buttonholes!-----there is something lively in the very idea
of 'em----and trust me, when I get amongst 'em----You
gentry with great beards----look as grave as you will----I'll
make merry work with my buttonholes-----I shall have 'em
all to myself-----'tis a maiden subject------I shall run foul of
no man's wisdom or fine sayings in it.
But for sleep-----I know I shall make nothing of it before
-----God's blessing, said Sancho Panza, be upon the man who first invented this selfsame thing called sleep----it covers a man all over like a cloak. Now there is more to me in this, and it speaks warmer to my heart and affections, than all the dissertations squeezed out of the heads of the learned together upon the subject.
----Not that I altogether disapprove of what Montaigne advances upon it--'tis admirable in its way.-----(I quote by memory.)
The world enjoys other pleasures, says he, as they do that of sleep, without tasting or feeling it as it slips and passes by ----we should study and ruminate upon it, in order to render proper thanks to him who grants it to us----for this end I cause myself to be disturbed in my sleep, that I may the better and more sensibly relish it-----And yet I see few, says he again, who live with less sleep when need requires; my body is capable of a firm, but not of a violent and sudden agitation-----I evade of late all violent exercises-----I am never weary with walking-----but from my youth, I never liked to ride upon pavements. I love to lie hard and alone, and even without my wife----This last word may stagger the faith of the world-----but remember, ``La Vraisem- blance [as Baylet says in the affair of Licetus] n'est pas toujours du C@^ot@'e la V@'erit@'e.'' And so much for sleep.
----Go, tell Susannah, Obadiah, to step here.
She is run upstairs, answered Obadiah, this very instant, sobbing and crying, and wringing her hands as if her heart would break.----
We shall have a rare month of it, said my father, turning his head from Obadiah, and looking wistfully in my uncle Toby's face for some time----we shall have a devilish month of it, brother Toby, said my father, setting his arms akimbo, and shaking his head; fire, water, women, wind----- brother Toby!-----'Tis some misfortune, quoth my uncle Toby----That it is, cried my father,-----to have so many jarring elements breaking loose, and riding triumph in every corner of a gentleman's house----Little boots it to the peace of a family, brother Toby, that you and I possess ourselves, and sit here silent and unmoved,-----whilst such a storm is whistling over our heads.--------
----And what's the matter, Susannah? They have called the child Tristram----and my Mistress is just got out of an hysteric fit about it----No!-----'tis not my fault, said Susannah-----I told him it was Tristram-gistus.
----Make tea for yourself, brother Toby, said my father, taking down his hat----but how different from the sallies amd agitations of voice and members which a common reader would imagine!
----For he spake in the sweetest modulation------and took down his hat with the gentlest movement of limbs, that ever affliction harmonized and attuned together.
----Go to the bowling green for Corporal Trim, said my uncle Toby, speaking to Obadiah, as soon as my father left the room.
The different weight, dear Sir,----nay even the different package of two vexations of the same weight,----makes a very wide difference in our manners of bearing and getting through with them.------It is not half an hour ago, when (in the great hurry and precipitation of a poor devil's writing for daily bread) I threw a fair sheet, which I had just finished and carefully wrote out, slap into the fire, instead of the foul one.
Instantly I snatched off my wig, and threw it perpendicularly, with all imaginable violence, up to the top of the room-----indeed I caught it as it fell-----but there was an end of the matter; nor do I think anything else in Nature would have given such immediate ease: She, dear Goddess, by an instantaneous impulse, in all provoking cases, determines us to a sally of this or that member----or else she thrusts us into this or that place, or posture of body, we know not why----But mark, Madam, we live amongst riddles and mysteries-----the most obvious things which come in our way have dark sides, which the quickest sight cannot penetrate into; and even the clearest and most exalted understandings amongst us find ourselves puzzled and at a loss in almost every cranny of Nature's works; so that this, like a thousand other things falls out for us in a way which, though we cannot reason upon it,-----yet we find the good of it, may it please your Reverences and your Worships-----and that's enough for us.
Now, my father could not lie down with this affliction for his life----nor could he carry it upstairs like the other----- He walked composedly out with it to the fish pond.
Had my father leaned his head upon his hand, and
Trim found he was upon a wrong scent, and stopped short with a low bow-----Two misfortunes, quoth the corporal to himself, are twice as many at least as are needful to be talked over at one time;-----the mischief the cow has done in breaking into the fortifications may be told his Honour hereafter -----Trim's casuistry and address, under the cover of his low bow, prevented all suspicion in my uncle Toby, so he went on with what he had to say to Trim as follows.
--------For my own part, Trim, though I can see little or no difference betwixt my nephew's being called Tristram or Trismegistus----yet as the thing sits so near my brother's heart, Trim,----I would freely have given a hundred pounds rather than it should have happened-----A hundred pounds, an' please your Honour, replied Trim;-----I would not give a cherry stone to boot------Nor would I, Trim, upon my own account, quoth my uncle Toby-----but my brother, whom
My father hung up his hat with the same air he took it down; and after giving a slight look at the disorder of the room, he took hold of one of the chairs which had formed the corporal's breach, and placing it over against my uncle Toby, he sat down in it, and as soon as the tea things were taken away and the door shut, he broke out in a lamentation as follows.
My FATHER'S LAMENTATION It is in vain longer, said my father, addressing himself as much to Ernulphus's curse, which was laid upon the corner of the chimney piece,----as to my uncle Toby, who sat under it----it is in vain longer, said my father, in the most querulous monotone imaginable, to struggle as I have done against this most uncomfortable of human persuasions----I see it plainly that either for my own sins, brother Toby, or the sins and follies of the Shandy family, heaven has thought fit to draw forth the heaviest of its artillery against me; and that the prosperity of my child is the point upon which the whole force of it is directed to play-----Such a thing would batter the whole universe about our ears, brother Shandy, said my uncle Toby,----if it was so-----Unhappy Tristram! child of wrath! child of decrepitude! interruption! mistake! and discontent! what one misfortune or disaster in the book of embryotic evils that could unmechanize thy frame, or entangle thy filaments! which has not fallen upon thy head, ere ever thou camest into the world------what evils in thy passage into it!-----What evils since!----produced into being in the decline of thy father's days-----when the powers of his imagination and of his body were waxing feeble----when radical heat and radical moisture, the elements which should have tempered thine, were drying up; and nothing left to found thy stamina in but negations-----'tis pitiful------brother Toby, at the best, and called out for all the little helps that care and attention on both sides could give it. But how were we defeated! You know the event, brother Toby-----'tis too melancholy a one to be repeated now-----when the few animal spirits I was worth in the world, and with which memory, fancy, and quick parts should have been conveyed,---- were all dispersed, confused confounded, scattered, and sent to the devil.-----
Here then was the time to have put a stop to this persecution against him;----and tried an experiment at least----- whether calmness and serenity of mind in your sister, with a due attention, brother Toby, to her evacuations and repletions----and the rest of her non-naturals, might not, in a course of nine months' gestation, have set all things to rights. -----My child was bereft of these!----What a teasing life did she lead herself, and consequently her foetus too, with that nonsensical anxiety of hers about lying in in town? I thought
But what was all this, my dear Toby, to the injuries done us by my child's coming head foremost into the world, when all I wished, in this general wreck of his frame, was to have saved this little casket unbroke, unrifled-----
with all my precautions, how was my system turned topside-turvy in the womb with my child! his head exposed to the hand of violence, and a pressure of 470 pounds avoirdupois weight acting so perpendicularly upon its apex---- that at this hour 'tis ninety per cent insurance that the fine network of the intellectual web be not rent and torn to a thousand tatters.
-----Still we could have done.------Fool, coxcomb, puppy ----give him but a NOSE-----Cripple, Dwarf, Driviller, Goose-cap-----(shape him as you will) the door of Fortune stands open-----0 Licetus! Licetus! had I been blest with a foetus five inches long and a half, like thee------fate might have done her worst.
Still, brother Toby, there was one cast of the die left for our child after all-----O Tristram! Tristram! Tristram!
We will send for Mr. Yorick, said my uncle Toby.
----You may send for whom you will, replied my father.
Now ride at this rate with what good intention and resolution you may,------'tis a million to one you'll do someone a mischief, if not yourself-----He's flung-----he's off-----he's lost his seat-----he's down------he'll break his neck------see! ----if he has not galloped full amongst the scaffolding of the undertaking critics!----he'll knock his brains out against some of their posts-----he's bounced out!------look------he's now riding like a madcap full tilt through a whole crowd of painters, fiddlers, poets, biographers, physicians, lawyers, logicians, players, schoolmen, churchmen, statesmen, soldiers, casuists, connoisseurs, prelates, popes, and engineers-----Don't fear, said I----I'll not hurt the poorest jackass upon the king's highway----But your horse throws dirt; see you've splashed a bishop-----I hope in God 'twas only Ernulphus, said I---- But you have squirted full in the faces of Mess. Le Moyne, De Romigny, and De Marcilly, doctors of the Sorbonne---- That was last year, replied I-----But you have trod this moment upon a king.----Kings have bad times on't, said I, to be trod upon by such people as me.
You have done it, replied my accuser.
I deny it, quoth I, and so have got off, and here am I
standing with my bridle in one hand, and with my cap in
the other, to tell my story--And what is it? You shall hear
in the next chapter.
* Vide Menagiana, vol. l.
I am astonished, said Francis the First (that day fortnight), speaking to his minister as he entered the closet, that we have had no answer from Switzerland----Sire, I wait upon you this moment, said Mons. le Premier, to lay before you my dispatches upon that business.----They take it kindly? said the king-----They do Sire, replied the minister, and have the highest sense of the honour your Majesty has done them----- but the republic, as godmother, claims her right, in this case, of naming the child.
In all reason, quoth the king-----she will christen him Francis, or Henry, or Lewis, or some name that she knows will be agreeable to us. Your Majesty is deceived, replied the minister----I have this hour received a dispatch from our resident, with the determination of the republic on that point also-----And what name has the republic fixed upon for the dauphin?-----Shadrach, Meshach, and Abednego, replied the minister----By St. Peter's girdle, I will have nothing to do with the Swiss, cried Francis the First, pulling up his breeches and walking hastily across the floor.
Your Majesty, replied the minister calmly, cannot bring yourself off.
We'll pay them in money-----said the king.
Sire, there are not sixty thousand crowns in the treasury, answered the minister----I'll pawn the best jewel in my crown, quoth Francis the First.
Your Honour stands pawned already in this matter, answered Mons. le Premier.
Then, Mons. le Premier, said the king, by-----we'll go to
war with 'em.
----Let my old tiewig, quoth my uncle Toby, and my laced regimentals be hung to the fire all night, Trim.
But before I begin my demonstration, let me only tell you that the chapter which I have torn out, and which otherwise you would all have been reading just now, instead of this,--was the description of my father's, my uncle Toby's, Trim's, and Obadiah's setting out and journeying to the visitations at ****.
We'll go in the coach, said my father-----Prithee, have the arms been altered, Obadiah?-----It would have made my story much better to have begun with telling you that at the time my mother's arms were added to the Shandys', when the coach was repainted upon my father's marriage it had so fallen out that the coach painter, whether by performing all his works with the left hand, like Turpilius the Roman, or Hans Holbein of Basel-----or whether 'twas more from the blunder of his head than hand-------or whether, lastly, it was from the sinister turn which everything relating to our family was apt to take----It so fell out, however, to our reproach, that instead of the bend dexter, which since Harry the Eighth's reign was honestly our due-----a bend sinister, by some of these fatalities, had been drawn quite across the field of the Shandy arms. 'Tis scarce credible that the mind of so wise a man as my father was could be so much incommoded with so small a matter. The word coach-----let it be whose it would-----or coachman, or coach horse, or coach hire, could never be named in the family, but he constantly
------Has the bend sinister been brushed out, I say? said my father----There has been nothing brushed out, Sir, answered Obadiah, but the lining. We'll go o' horseback, said my father, turning to Yorick-----Of all things in the world, except politics, the clergy know the least of heraldry, said Yorick----No matter for that, cried my father-----I should be sorry to appear with a blot in my escutcheon before them -----Never mind the bend sinister, said my uncle Toby, put-ting on his tiewig-----No, indeed, said my father,--you may go with my aunt Dinah to a visitation with a bend sinister, if you think fit-----My poor uncle Toby blushed. My father was vexed at himself-----No-----my dear brother Toby, said my father, changing his tone-----but the damp of the coach lining about my loins may give me the Sciatica again, as it did December, January, and February last winter ----so if you please, you shall ride my wife's pad------and as you are to preach, Yorick, you had better make the best of your way before,-----and leave me to take care of my brother Toby, and to follow at our own rates.
Now the chapter I was obliged to tear out was the description of this cavalcade, in which Corporal Trim and Obadiah, upon two coach horses abreast, led the way as slow as a patrol----whilst my uncle Toby, in his laced regimentals and tiewig, kept his rank with my father, in deep roads and dissertations alternately upon the advantage of learning and arms, as each could get the start.
----But the painting of this journey, upon reviewing it, appears to be so much above the style and manner of anything else I have been able to paint in this book, that it could not have remained in it without depreciating every other scene; and destroying at the same time that necessary equipoise and balance (whether of good or bad) betwixt chapter and chapter, from whence the just proportions and harmony of the whole work results. For my own part, I am but just set up in the business, so know little about it----but, in my opinion, to write a book is for all the world like humming
-----This is the reason, may it please your Reverences, that some of the lowest and flattest compositions pass off very well ----(as Yorick told my uncle Toby one night) by siege----- My uncle Toby looked brisk at the sound of the word siege, but could make neither head or tail of it.
I'm to preach at court next Sunday, said Homenas-----run over my notes-----so I hummed over Dr. Homenas's notes -----the modulation's very well-----'twill do, Homenas, if it holds on at this rate-----so on I hummed--and a tolerable tune I thought it was; and to this hour, may it please your Reverences, had never found out how low, how flat, how spiritless and jejune it was, but that all of a sudden, up started an air in the middle of it, so fine, so rich, so heavenly ----it carried my soul up with it into the other world; now had I (as Montaigne complained in a parallel accident)----- had I found the declivity easy, or the ascent accessible----- certes I had been outwitted-----Your notes, Homenas, I should have said, are good notes,--but it was so perpendicular a precipice-----so wholly cut off from the rest of the work, that by the first note I hummed, I found myself flying into the other world, and from thence discovered the vale from whence I came, so deep, so low, and dismal, that I shall never have the heart to descend into it again.
@hdA dwarf who brings a standard along with him to
measure his own size,-----take my word, is a dwarf in more
articles than one-----And so much for tearing out of
chapters.
Methinks, said Didius, half rising from his chair in order
to remove a bottle and a tall decanter, which stood in a
direct line betwixt him and Yorick--you might have spared
this sarcastic stroke, and have hit upon a more proper place,
-----I have got him fast hung up, quoth Didius to himself, upon one of the two horns of my dilemma--let him get off as he can.
I have undergone such unspeakable torments in bringing forth this sermon, quoth Yorick, upon this occasion,----that I declare, Didius, I would suffer martyrdom----and if it was possible, my horse with me, a thousand times over, before I would sit down and make such another: I was delivered of it at the wrong end of me----it came from my head instead of my heart-----and it is for the pain it gave me, both in the writing and preaching of it, that I revenge myself of it in this manner.-----To preach, to show the extent of our reading, or the subtleties of our wit-----to parade it in the eyes of the vulgar with the beggarly accounts of a little learning, tinseled over with a few words which glitter but convey little light and less warmth----is a dishonest use of the poor single half hour in a week which is put into our hands------ 'Tis not preaching the gospel-----but ourselves-----For my own part, continued Yorick, I had rather direct five words point-blank to the heart-----
As Yorick pronounced the word point-blank, my uncle Toby rose up to say something upon projectiles-----when a single word, and no more, uttered from the opposite side of the table, drew everyone's ears towards it----a word, of all others in the dictionary, the last in that place to be expected ----a word I am ashamed to write-----yet must be written -----must be read;-----illegal------uncanonical-----guess ten thousand guesses, multiplied into themselves------rack----- torture your invention forever, you're where you was------- In short, I'll tell it in the next chapter.
One or two who had very nice ears, and could distinguish the expression and mixture of the two tones as plainly as a third or a fifth, or any other chord in music-----were the most puzzled and perplexed with it-----the concord was good in itself-----but then 'twas quite out of the key, and no way applicable to the subject stated;-----so that with all their knowledge, they could not tell what in the world to make of it.
Others, who knew nothing of musical expression, and merely lent their ears to the plain import of the word, imagined that Phutatorius, who was somewhat of a choleric spirit, was just going to snatch the cudgels out of Didius's hands, in order to bemaul Yorick to some purpose----and that the desperate monosyllable Z-----ds was the exordium to an oration, which, as they judged from the sample, presaged but a rough kind of handling of him; so that my uncle Toby's good nature felt a pang for what Yorick was about to undergo. But seeing Phutatorius stop short, without any attempt or desire to go on-----a third party began to suppose that it was no more than an involuntary respiration, casually forming itself into the shape of a twelvepenny oath---- without the sin or substance of one.
Others, and especially one or two who sat next him, looked upon it, on the contrary, as a real and substantial oath propensely formed against Yorick, to whom he was known to bear no good liking------which said oath, as my father philosophized upon it, actually lay fretting and fuming at that very time in the upper regions of Phutatorius's purtenance; and so was naturally, and according to the due course of things, first squeezed out by the sudden influx of blood
How finely we argue upon mistaken facts!
There was not a soul busied in all these various reasonings upon the monosyllable which Phutatorius uttered-----who did not take this for granted, proceeding upon it as from an axiom, namely, that Phutatorius's mind was intent upon the subject of debate which was anising between Didius and Yorick; and indeed as he looked first towards the one, and then towards the other, with the air of a man listening to what was going forwards,-----who would not have thought the same? But the truth was that Phutatorius knew not one word or one syllable of what was passing----but his whole thoughts and attention were taken up with a transaction which was going forwards at that very instant within the precincts of his own Galligaskins, and in a part of them where of all others he stood most interested to watch accidents: So that notwithstanding he looked with all the attention in the world, and had gradually screwed up every nerve and muscle in his face to the utmost pitch the instrument would bear, in order, as it was thought, to give a sharp reply to Yorick, who sat over against him-----Yet, I say, was Yorick never once in any one domicile of Phutatorius's brain-----but the true cause of his exclamation lay at least a yard below.
This I will endeavour to explain to you with all imaginable decency.
You must be informed then, that Gastripheres, who had taken a turn into the kitchen a little before dinner, to see how things went on----observing a wicker basket of fine chesnuts standing upon the dresser, had ordered that a hundred or two of them might be roasted and sent in, as soon as dinner was over------Gastripheres enforcing his orders about them, that Didius, but Phutatorius especially, were particularly fond of 'em.
About two minutes before the time that my uncle Toby interrupted Yorick's harangue----Gastripheres's chesnuts were brought in----and as Phutatorius's fondness for 'em was uppermost in the waiter's head, he laid them directly before Phutatorius, wrapt up hot in a clean damask napkin.
Now whether it was physically impossible, with half a dozen hands all thrust into the napkin at a time-----but that some one chesnut, of more life and rotundity than the rest,
The neglect of this punctilio in Phutatorius (which by the bye should be a warning to all mankind) had opened a door to this accident.------
------Accident, I call it, in compliance to a received mode of Acrites or Mythogeras in this matter; I know they were both prepossessed and fully persuaded of it-----and are so to this hour, That there was nothing of accident in the whole event-----but that the chesnut's taking that particular course, and in a manner of its own accord------and then falling with all its heat directly into that one particular place, and no other-----was a real judgment upon Phutatorius, for that filthy and obscene treatise de Concubinis retinendis, which Phutatorius had published about twenty years ago----and was that identical week going to give the world a second edition of.
It is not my business to dip my pen in this controversy---- much undoubtedly may be wrote on both sides of the question-----all that concerns me as an historian is to represent the matter of fact, and render it credible to the reader, that the hiatus in Phutatorius's breeches was sufficiently wide to receive the chesnut;------and that the chesnut, somehow or other, did fall perpendicularly and piping hot into it, without Phutatorius's perceiving it, or anyone else at that time.
The genial warmth which the chestnut imparted was not undelectable for the first twenty or five-and-twenty seconds, -----and did no more than gently solicit Phutatorius's attention towards the part:----------But the heat gradually increasing, and in a few seconds more getting beyond the point of all sober pleasure, and then advancing with all speed into the regions of pain,-----the soul of Phutatorius, together with all his ideas, his thoughts, his attention, his imagination, judgment, resolution, deliberation, ratiocination, memory, fancy, with ten battalions of animal spirits, all
With the best intelligence which all these messengers could bring him back, Phutatorius was not able to dive into the secret of what was going forwards below, nor could he make any kind of conjecture, what the devil was the matter with it: However, as he knew not what the true cause might turn out, he deemed it most prudent, in the situation he was in at present, to bear it, if possible, like a stoic; which, with the help of some wry faces and compursions of the mouth, he had certainly accomplished, had his imagination continued neuter----but the sallies of the imagination are ungovernable in things of this kind-----a thought instantly darted into his mind that though the anguish had the sensation of glowing heat----it might, notwithstanding that, be a bite as well as a burn; and if so, that possibly a Newt, or an Asker, or some such detested reptile, had crept up, and was fastening his teeth-----the horrid idea of which, with a fresh glow of pain arising that instant from the chesnut, seized Phutatorius with a sudden panic, and in the first terrifying disorder of the passion, it threw him, as it has done the best generals upon earth, quite off his guard;----- the effect of which was this, that he leapt incontinently up, uttering as he rose that interjection of surprise so much descanted upon, with the aposiopetic break after it marked thus, Z--ds------which, though not strictly canonical, was still as little as any man could have said upon the occasion;------and which, by the bye, whether canonical or not, Phutatorius could no more help than he could the cause of it.
Though this has taken up some time in the narrative, it took up little more time in the transaction than just to allow time for Phutatorius to draw forth the chesnut, and throw it down with violence upon the floor----and for Yorick to rise from his chair, and pick the chesnut up.
It is curious to observe the triumph of slight incidents over the mind:-----What incredible weight they have in forming and governing our opinions, both of men and things,---- that trifles light as air shall waft a belief into the soul, and plant it so immovably within it,-----that Euclid's demonstrations, could they be brought to batter it in breach, should not all have power to overthrow it.
Yorick, I said, picked up the chesnut which Phutatorius's wrath had flung down----the action was trifling-----I am
When great or unexpected events fall out upon the stage of this sublunary world----the mind of man, which is an inquisitive kind of a substance, naturally takes a flight, behind the scenes, to see what is the cause and first spring of them-----The search was not long in this instance.
lt was well known that Yorick had never a good opinion of the treatise which Phutatorius had wrote de Concubinis retinendis, as a thing which he feared had done hurt in the world-----and 'twas easily found out that there was a mystical meaning in Yorick's prank-----and that his chucking the chesnut hot into Phutatorius's * * *-* * * * * was a sarcastical fling at his book------the doctrines of which they said, had inflamed many an honest man in the same place.
This conceit awakened Somnolentius----made Agelastes smile----and if you can recollect the precise look and air of a man's face intent in finding out a riddle-----it threw Gastripheres's into that form----and in short was thought by many to be a master stroke of arch-wit.
This, as the reader has seen from one end to the other, was as groundless as the dreams of philosophy: Yorick, no doubt, as Shakespeare said of his ancestor------- ``was a man of jest,'' but it was tempered with something which withheld him from that, and many other ungracious
This heroic cast produced him inconveniences in many respects-----in the present, it was followed by the fixed resentment of Phutatorius, who, as Yorick had just made an end of his chesnut, rose up from his chair a second time, to let him know it-----which indeed he did with a smile; saying only------that he would endeavour not to forget the obligation.
But you must mark and carefully separate and distinguish these two things in your mind.
-----The smile was for the company.
-----The threat was for Yorick.
Was it my case, said Gastripheres, as the main thing is the oil and lamp black, I should spread them thick upon a rag, and clap it on directly. That would make a very devil of it, replied Yorick-----And besides, added Eugenius, it would not answer the intention, which is the extreme neatness and elegance of the prescription, which the faculty hold to be half in half-----for consider, if the type is a very small one (which it should be), the sanative particles, which come into contact in this form, have the advantage of being spread so infinitely thin and with such a mathematical equality (fresh paragraphs and large capitals excepted) as no art or management of the spatula can come up to. It falls out very luckily, replied Phutatorius, that the second edition of my treatise de Concubinis retinendis is at this instant in the press---- You may take any leaf of it, said Eugenius--------No matter which-----provided, quoth Yorick, there is no bawdry in it--------
They are just now, replied Phutatorius, printing off the ninth chapter----which is the last chapter but one in the book------Pray what is the title to that chapter, said Yorick, making a respectful bow to Phutatorius as he spoke------I think, answered Phutatorius, 'tis that de re concubinaria.
For heaven's sake keep out of that chapter, quoth Yorick.
-----By all means-----added Eugenius.
My father delighted in subtleties of this kind, and listened with infinite attention.
Gastripheres, for example, continued Kysarcius, baptizes a child of John Stradling's in gomine gatris, &c., &c., instead of in nomine patris, &c.-----Is this a baptism? No, -----say the ablest canonists; inasmuch as the radix of each word is hereby torn up, and the sense and meaning of them removed and changed quite to another object; for gomine does not signify a name, nor gatris a father----what do they signify? said my uncle Toby----Nothing at all---- quoth Yorick-------Ergo, such a baptism is null, said Kysarcius------In course, answered Yorick, in a tone two parts jest and one part earnest----
But in the case cited, continued Kysarcius, where patriae is put for patris, filia for filii, and so on-----as it is a fault only in the declension, and the roots of the words continue untouched, the inflexions of their branches, either this way or that, does not in any sort hinder the baptism, inasmuch as the same sense continues in the words as before-----But then, said Didius, the intention of the priest's pronouncing them grammatically must have been proved to have gone along with it----Right, answered Kysarcius; and of this, brother Didius, we have an instance in a decree of the decretals of Pope Leo the IIId.----But my brother's child, cried my uncle Toby, has nothing to do with the Pope----- 'tis the plain child of a Protestant gentleman, christened Tristram against the wills and wishes both of its father and mother, and all who are akin to it----
If the wills and wishes, said Kysarcius, interrupting my uncle Toby, of those only who stand related to Mr. Shandy's
It has not only been a question,* Captain Shandy, amongst the best lawyers and civilians in this land, continued Kysarcius, ``Whether the mother be of kin to her child,''------but after much dispassionate enquiry and jactitation of the arguments on all sides,-----it has been adjudged for the negative,------ namely, ``That the mother is not of kin to her child.'' @++ My father instantly clapped his hand upon my uncle Toby's mouth, under colour of whispering in his ear------the truth was, he was alarmed for Lillabullero------and having a great desire to hear more of so curious an argument------he begged my uncle Toby, for heaven's sake, not to disappoint him in it-----My uncle Toby gave a nod-----resumed his pipe, and contenting himself with whistling Lillabullero inwardly----- Kysarcius, Didius, and Triptolemus went on with the discourse as follows.
This determination, continued Kysarcius, how contrary soever it may seem to run to the stream of vulgar ideas, yet had reason strongly on its side; and has been put of all manner of dispute from the famous case known commonly by the name of the Duke of Suffolk's case:------It is cited in Brook, said Triptolemus--------And taken notice of by Lord Coke, added Didius-----And you may find it in Swinburn on Testaments, said Kysarcius.
The case, Mr. Shandy, was this.
In the reign of Edward the Sixth, Charles, Duke of Suffolk, having issue a son by one venter, and a daughter by another venter, made his last will, wherein he devised goods to his son, and died; after whose death the son died also ------but without will, without wife, and without child----- his mother and his sister by the father's side (for she was born of the former venter) then living. The mother took the administration of her son's goods, according to the statute of the 21st of Harry the Eighth, whereby it is enacted, That in case any person die intestate, the administration of his goods shall be committed to the next of Kin.
The administratlon being thus (surreptitiously) granted to the mother, the sister by the father's side commenced a suit before the Ecclesiastical Judge, alleging, I st, That she her
* Vid. Swinbum on Testaments, Part 7. @ss8.
@++ Vid. Brook Abridg. Tit. Administr. N. 47.
Hereupon, as it was a great cause, and much depending upon its issue-----and many causes of great property likely to be decided in times to come by the precedent to be then made------the most learned, as well in the laws of this realm as in the civil law, were consulted together, whether the mother was of kin to her son, or no.------whereunto not only the temporal lawyers-----but the church lawyers------the jurisconsulti -----the jurisprudentes-----the civilians------the advocates------the commissanies-----the judges of the consistory and prerogative courts of Canterbury and York, with the master of the faculties, were all unanimously of opinion, That the mother was not of kin to her child------ *
And what said the Duchess of Suffolk to it? said my uncle Toby.
The unexpectedness of my uncle Toby's question confounded Kysarcius more than the ablest advocate-----He stopped a full minute, looking in my uncle Toby's face without replying----and in that single minute Triptolemus put by him, and took the lead as follows.
'Tis a ground and principle in the law, said Triptolemus, that things do not ascend, but descend in it; and I make no doubt 'tis for this cause, that however true it is that the child may be of the blood or seed of its parents-----that the parents, nevertheless, are not of the blood and seed of it; inasmuch as the parents are not begot by the child, but the child by the parents-----For so they write, Liberisunt de sanguine patris & matris, sed pater et mater non sunt de sanguine liberorum.
------But this, Triptolemus, cried Didius, proves too much-----for from this authority cited it would follow, not only what indeed is granted on all sides, that the mother is not of kin to her child-----but the father likewise----It is held, said Triptolemus, the better opinion; because the father, the mother, and the child, though they be three persons, yet are they but (caro una) @++ one flesh; and consequently no degree of kindred------or any method of acquiring one in nature----There you push the argument again too far,
* Mater non numeratur inter consanguineos. Bald. in ult. C. de Verb. signific.
@++ Vid. Brook Abridg. Tit. Administr. N. 47.
The company broke up-----
-----That may well be, said my father, shaking his head.
-----Let the learned say what they will, there must
certainly, quoth my uncle Toby, have been some sort of
consanguinity betwixt the Duchess of Suffolk and her son-----
The vulgar are of the same opinion, quoth Yorick, to this
hour.
My father had scarce read the letter, when taking the thing by the right end, he instantly begun to plague and puzzle his head how to lay it out mostly to the honour of his family-----A hundred and fifty odd projects took possession of his brains by turns------he would do this, and that, and t'other------He would go to Rome------he would go to law-----he would buy stock------he would buy John Hobson's farm-----he would new forefront his house, and add a new wing to make it even------There was a fine water mill on this side, and he would build a windmill on the other side of the river in full view to answer it------But above all things in the world, he would inclose the great Ox-moor, and send out my brother Bobby immediately upon his travels.
But as the sum was finite, and consequently could not do everything-----and in truth very few of these to any purpose, ------of all the projects which offered themselves upon this occasion, the two last seemed to make the deepest impression; and he would infallibly have determined upon both at once, but for the small inconvenience hinted at above, which absolutely put him under a necessity of deciding in favour either of the one or the other.
This was not altogether so easy to be done; for though 'tis
But having never hitherto been pressed with such a conjuncture of things as made it necessary to settle either the priority or justice of their claims,-----like a wise man he had refrained entering into any nice or critical examination about them: So that upon the dismission of every other project at this crisis,-------the two old projects, the OX-MOOR and my BROTHER, divided him again; and so equal a match were they for each other, as to become the occasion of no small contest in the old gentleman's mind,-----which of the two should be set o' going first.
-----People may laugh as they will-----but the case was this.
It had ever been the custom of the family, and by length of time was almost become a matter of common right, that the eldest son of it should have free ingress, egress, and regress into foreign parts before marriage,-----not only for the sake of bettering his own private parts, by the benefit of exercise and change of so much air------but simply for the mere delectation of his fancy, by the feather put into his cap of having been abroad-----tantum valet, my father would say, quantum sonat.
Now as this was a reasonable, and in course a most Christian indulgence-----to deprive him of it, without why or wherefore,------and thereby make an example of him, as the first Shandy unwhirled about Europe in a post chaise, and only because he was a heavy lad-----would be using him ten times worse than a Turk.
On the other hand, the case of the Ox-moor was full as hard.
Exclusive of the original purchase money, which was eight hundred pounds-----it had cost the family eight hundred pounds more in a lawsuit about fifteen years before----besides the Lord knows what trouble and vexation.
It had been moreover in possession of the Shandy family ever since the middle of the last century; and though it lay
However, as neither the purchasing this tract of ground -----nor indeed the placing of it where it lay, were either of them, properly speaking, of my father's doing------he had never thought himself any way concerned in the affair--------- till the fifteen years before, when the breaking out of that cursed lawsuit mentioned above (and which had arose about its boundaries)--------which being altogether my father's own act and deed, it naturally awakened every other argument in its favour; and upon summing them all up together, he saw not merely in interest, but in honour, he was bound to do something for it-----and that now or never was the time.
I think there must certainly have been a mixture of ill luck in it, that the reasons on both sides should happen to be so equally balanced by each other; for though my father weighed them in all humours and conditions--------spent many an anxious hour in the most profound and abstracted meditation upon what was best to be done-----reading books of farming one day--------books of travels another----laying aside all passlon whatever------viewing the arguments on both sides in all their lights and circumstances-----communing every day with my uncle Toby----arguing with Yorick, and talking over the whole affair of the Ox-moor with Obadiah--------yet nothing in all that time appeared so strongly in behalf of the one, which was not either strictly applicable to the other, or at least so far counterbalanced by some consideration of equal weight as to keep the scales even.
For to be sure, with proper helps, and in the hands of some people, though the Ox-moor would undoubtedly have made a different appearance in the world from what it did, or ever would do in the condition it lay----yet every tittle of this was true with regard to my brother Bobby---let Obadiah say what he would.--------
In point of interest-----the contest, I own, at first sight, did not appear so undecisive betwixt them; for whenever my
OX-MOOR &c &c ----with the certain profit it would bring him in return-----the latter turned out so prodigiously in his way of working the account, that you would have sworn the Ox-moor would have carried all before it. For it was plain he should reap a hundred lasts of rape, at twenty pounds a last, the very first year-----besides an excellent crop of wheat the year following------and the year after that, to speak within bounds, a hundred-----but, in all likelihood, a hundred and fifty---------if not two hundred quarters of pease and beans ----besides potatoes without end-----But then, to think he was all this while breeding up my brother like a hog to eat them-----knocked all on the head again, and generally left the old gentleman in such a state of suspense------that, as he often declared to my uncle Toby-----he knew no more than his heels what to do.
Nobody but he who has felt it can conceive what a plaguing thing it is to have a man's mind torn asunder by two projects of equal strength, both obstinately pulling in a contrary direction at the same time: For, to say nothing of the havoc which by a certain consequence is unavoidably made by it all over the finer system of the nerves, which you know convey the animal spirits and more subtle juices from the heart to the head, and so on-----It is not to be told in what a degree such a wayward kind of friction works upon the more gross and solid parts, wasting the fat and impairing the strength of a man every time as it goes backwards and forwards.
My father had certainly sunk under this evil, as certainly as he had done under that of my CHRISTIAN NAME-----had he not been rescued out of it as he was out of that, by a fresh evil--------the misfortune of my brother Bobby's death.
What is the life of man! Is it not to shift from side to
side?---------from sorrow to sorrow?--------to button up one
cause of vexation!-------and unbutton another!
The thing I lament is that things have crowded in so thick upon me that I have not been able to get into that part of my work towards which I have all the way looked forwards, with so much earnest desire; and that is the campaigns, but especially the amours, of my uncle Toby, the events of which are of so singular a nature, and so Cervantic a cast, that if I can so manage it as to convey but the same impressions to every other brain which the occurrences themselves excite in my own-----I will answer for it the book shall make its way in the world much better than its master has done before it------O Tristram! Tristram! can this but be once brought about-----the credit which will attend thee as an author shall counterbalance the many evils which have befallen thee as a man-----thou wilt feast upon the one------when thou hast lost all sense and remembrance of the other!------
No wonder I itch so much as I do to get at these amours -----They are the choicest morsel of my whole story! and when I do get at 'em-----assure yourselves, good folks----- (nor do I value whose squeamish stomach takes offence at it), I shall not be at all nice in the choice of my words;-----and that's the thing I have to declare.---------I shall never get all through in five minutes, that I fear-----and the thing I hope is that your Worships and Reverences are not offended----- if you are, depend upon't I'll give you something, my good gentry, next year, to be offended at-----that's my dear Jenny's way-----but who my Jenny is------and which is the right and which the wrong end of a woman, is the thing to be concealed------ it shall be told you the next chapter but one to my chapter of button holes,----and not one chapter before.
And now that you have just got to the end of these four volumes-----the thing I have to ask is, how you feel your heads? my own aches dismally-------as for your healths, I know they are much better-----True Shandeism, think what you will against it, opens the heart and lungs, and like all those affections which partake of its nature, it forces the blood and other vital fluids of the body to run freely through its channels, and makes the wheel of life run long and cheerfully round.
Was I left like Sancho Panza, to choose my kingdom, it should not be maritime-----or a kingdom of blacks to make a penny of-----no, it should be a kingdom of hearty laughing subjects: And as the bilious and more saturnine passions, by creating disorders in the blood and humours, have as bad an influence, I see, upon the body politic as body natural-----and as nothing but a habit of virtue can fully govern those passions, and subject them to reason-------I should add to my prayer-----that God would give my subjects grace to be as WISE as they were MERRY; and then should I be the happiest monarch, and they the happiest people under heaven-----
And so, with this moral for the present, may it please your Worships and your Reverences, I take my leave of you till this time twelvemonth, when (unless this vile cough kills me in the meantime) I'll have another pluck at your beards, and lay open a story to the world you little dream of.
--Si quis calumnietur levius esse quam decet theologum, aut mordacius guam deceat Chris- tianum--non Ego, sed Democritus dixit.--
ERASMUS.
To the Right Honourable
JOHN,
, Lord Viscount SPENCER
MY LORD, I humbly beg leave to offer you these two Volumes; they are the best my talents, with such bad health as I have, could produce:------had providence granted me a larger stock of either, they had been a much more proper present to your Lordship.
I beg your Lordship will forgive me if, at the same time I dedicate this work to you, I join Lady SPENCER, in the liberty I take of inscribing the story of Le Fever in the sixth volume to her name; for which I have no other motive, which my heart has informed me of, but that the story is a humane one.
I am,
My Lord,
Your Lordship's
Most Devoted,
And most humble Servant,
LAUR. STERNE
The London waggon confirmed me in my resolution: it hung tottering upon the hill, scarce progressive, dragged------ dragged up by eight heavy beasts------``by main strength!'' ------quoth I, nodding------``but your betters draw the same way------and something of everybody's!------O rare!''
Tell me, ye learned, shall we forever be adding so much to the bulk--, so little to the stock?
Shall we forever make new books, as apothecaries make new mixtures, by Pouring only out of one vessel into another?
Are we forever to be twisting and untwisting the same rope? forewer in the same track------forever at the same pace?
Shall we be destined to the days of eternity, on holy days as well as working days, to be showing the relics of learning, as monks do the relics of their saints------without working one------one single miracle with them?
Who made MAN, with powers which dart him from earth
heaven in a moment----that great, that most excellent, and most noble creature of the world-----the miracle of nature, as Zoroaster in his book <9per@`i f@'usew@ts>9 called him------ the SHEKINAH of the divine presence, as Chrysostom-----the image of God, as Moses-----the ray of divinity, as Plato---- the marvel of marvels, as Aristotle------to go sneaking on at this pitiful----pimping-----pettifogging rate?
I scorn to be as abusive as Horace upon the occasion----- but if there is no catachresis in the wish, and no sin in it, I wish from my soul that every imitator in Great Britain, France, and Ireland had the farcy for his pains; and that there was a good farcical house, large enough to hold-----aye ------and sublimate them, shagrag and bobtail, male and female, all together: and this leads me to the affair of Whiskers -----but by what chain of ideas-----I leave as a legacy in mortmain to Prudes and Tartuffes, to enjoy and make the most of.
Upon Whiskers
I'm sorry I made it------'twas as inconsiderate a promise as ever entered a man's head------A chapter upon whiskers! alas! the world will not bear it----'tis a delicate world------but I knew not of what mettle it was made-----nor had I ever seen the underwritten fragment; otherwise, as surely as noses are noses, and whiskers are whiskers still (let the world say what it will to the contrary), so surely would I have steered clear of this dangerous chapter.
The Fragment * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * You are half asleep, my good lady, said the old gentleman, taking hold of the old lady's hand and giving it a gentle squeeze, as he pronounced the word whiskers-----shall we change the subject? By no means, replied the old lady-----I like your account of these matters: so throwing a thin gauze handkerchief over her head, and leaning it back upon the chair with her face turned towards him, and advancing her two feet as she reclined herself-----I desire, continued she, you will go on.
The old gentleman went on as follows.-----Whiskers! cried the Queen of Navarre, dropping her knotting ball, as La
La Fosseuse's voice was naturally soft and low, yet 'twas an articulate voice: and every letter of the word whiskers fell distinctly upon the Queen of Navarre's ear-----Whiskers! cried the queen, laying a greater stress upon the word, and as if she had still distrusted her ears-----Whiskers, replied kn Fosseuse, repeating the word a third time-----There is not a cavalier, Madam, of his age in Navarre, continued the maid of honour, pressing the page's interest upon the queen, that has so gallant a pair-----Of what? cried Margaret, smiling--of whiskers, said kn Fosseuse, with infinite modesty.
The word whiskers still stood its ground, and continued to be made use of in most of the best companies throughout the little kingdom of Navarre, notwithstanding the indiscreet use which La Fosseuse had made of it: the truth was, La Fosseuse had pronounced the word not only before the queen, but upon sundry other occasions at court, with an accent which always implied something of a mystery-----And as the court of Margaret, as all the world knows, was at that time a mixture of gallantry and devotion-----and whiskers being as applicable to the one as the other, the word naturally stood its ground------ it gained full as much as it lost; that is, the clergy were for it-----the laity were against it------and for the women,-----they were divided.------
The excellency of the figure and mien of the young Sieur De Croix was at that time beginning to draw the attention of the maids of honour towards the terrace before the palace gate, where the guard was mounted. The Lady De Baussiere fell deeply in love with him,----La Battarelle did the same ------ it was the finest weather for it that ever was remembered in Navarre------La Guyol, La Maronette, La Sabatiere fell in love with the Sieur De Croix also-----La Rebours and La Fosseuse knew better-----De Croix had failed in an attempt to recommend himself to La Rebours; and La Rebours and La Fosseuse were inseparable.
The Queen of Navarre was sitting with her ladies in the painted bow window, facing the gate of the second court, as De Croix passed through it------He is handsome, said the Lady Baussiere.------He has a good mien, said La Battarelle. -----He is finely shaped, said La Guyol.-----I never saw an officer of the horse guards in my life, said La Maronette, with two such legs------Or who stood so well upon them, said La Sabatiere-----But he has no whiskers, cried La Fosseuse----- Not a pile, said La Rebours.
The queen went directly to her oratory musing all the way, as she walked through the gallery, upon the subject; turning it this way and that way in her fancy------Ave Maria ------ what can La Fosseuse mean? said she kneeling down upon the cushion.
La Guyol, La Battarelle, La Maronette, La Sabatiere retired instantly to their chambers-----Whiskers! said all four of them to themselves, as they bolted their doors on the inside.
The Lady Carnavallette was counting her beads with both hands, unsuspected under her farthingale-----from St. Antony down to St. Ursula inclusive, not a saint passed through her fingers without whiskers; St. Francis, St. Dominick, St. Bennet, St. Basil, St. Bridget had all whiskers.
The Lady Baussiere had got into a wilderness of conce its, with moralizing too intricately upon La Fosseuse's text----- She mounted her palfry, her page followed her-----the host passed by-----the Lady Bausslere rode on.
One denier, cried the order of mercy----one single denier, in behalf of a thousand patient captives, whose eyes look towards heaven and you for their redemption.
-----The Lady Baussiere rode on.
Pity the unhappy, said a devout, venerable, hoary-headed man, meekly holding up a box, begirt with iron, in his withered hands-----I beg for the unfortunate--good my Lady, 'tis for a prison----for an hospital-----'tis for an old man -----a poor man undone by shipwreck, by suretyship, by fire -----I call God and all his angels to witness-----'tis to clothe the naked-----to feed the hungry------'tis to comfort the sick and the brokenhearted.
------The Lady Baussiere rode on.
A decayed kinsman bowed himself to the ground.
-----The Lady Baussiere rode on.
He ran begging bareheaded on one side of her palfry, con-juring her by the former bonds of friendship, alliance, consanguinity, &c.-----Cousin, aunt, sister, mother-----for virtue's sake, for your own, for mine, for Christ's sake remember me-----pity me.
-----The Lady Baussiere rode on.
Take hold of my whiskers, said the Lady Baussiere--The Page took hold of her palfry. She dismounted at the end of the terrace.
There are some trains of certain ideas which leave prints of themselves about our eyes and eyebrows; and there is a consciousness of it, somewhere about the heart, which serves
Ha, ha! he, hee! cried La Guyol and La Sabatiere, looking close at each other's prints-----Ho, ho! cried La Battarelle and Maronette, doing the same:-----Whist! cried one-----st, st,----said a second,-----hush, quoth a third-----poo, poo, replied a fourth-----gramercy! cried the Lady Carnavallette; ----'twas she who bewhiskered St. Bridget.
La Fosseuse drew her bodkin from the knot of her hair, and having traced the outline of a small whisker with the blunt end of it, upon one side of her upper lip, put it into La Rebours's hand------La Rebours shook her head.
The Lady Baussiere coughed thrice into the inside of her muff----La Guyol smiled------Fie, said the Lady Baussiere. The Queen of Navarre touched her eye with the tip of her forefinger----as much as to say, I understand you all.
'Twas plain to the whole court the word was ruined: La Fosseuse had given it a wound, and it was not the better for passing through all these defiles-----It made a faint stand, however, for a few months; by the expiration of which, the Sieur De Croix, finding it high time to leave Navarre for want of whiskers-----the word in course became indecent, and (after a few efforts) absolutely unfit for use.
The best word, in the best language of the best world, must have suffered under such combinations.--------The curate of d'Estella wrote a book against them, setting forth the dangers of accessory ideas, and warning the Navarois against them.
Does not all the world know, said the curate d'Estella at the conclusion of his work, that Noses ran the same fate some centuries ago in most parts of Europe which Wkiskers have now done in the kingdom of Navarre----The evil indeed spread no further then,------but have not beds and bolsters, and nightcaps and chamber pots, stood upon the brink of destruction ever since? Are not trouse, and placket holes, and pump handles-----and spigots and faucets, in danger still, from the same association?----Chastity, by nature the gentlest of all affections------give it but its head-----'tis like a ramping and a roaring lion.
The drift of the curate d'Estella's argument was not understood.-----They ran the scent the wrong way.-----The world bridled his ass at the tail.-----And when the extremes of DELICACY, and the beginnings of CONCUPISCENCE, hold their next provincial chapter together, they may decree that bawdy also.
'Twas a most inauspicious journey; my father having had every foot of it to travel over again, and his calculation to begin afresh, when he had almost got to the end of it, by Obadiah's opening the door to acquaint him the family was out of yeast-----and to ask whether he might not take the great coach horse early in the morning, and ride in search of some.-----With all my heart, Obadiah, said my father (pursuing his journey),-----take the coach horse, and welcome. ------But he wants a shoe, poor creature! said Obadiah.---- Poor creature! said my uncle Toby, vibrating the note back again, like a string in unison. Then ride the Scotch horse, quoth my father hastily.------He cannot bear a saddle upon his back, quoth Obadiah, for the whole world.----The devil's in that horse; then take PATRIOT, cried my father, and shut the door.-----PATRIOT is sold, said Obadiah.-----Here's for you! cried my father, making a pause, and looking in my uncle Toby's face, as if the thing had not been a matter of fact.-----Your Worship ordered me to sell him last April, said Obadiah.-----Then go on foot for your pains, cried my father.------I had much rather walk than ride, said Obadiah, shutting the door.
What plagues! cried my father, going on with his calculation.-----But the waters are out, said Obadiah,------opening the door again.
Till that moment, my father, who had a map of Sanson's, and a book of the post roads before him, had kept his hand upon the head of his compasses, with one foot of them fixed upon Nevers, the last stage he had paid for----purposing to go on from that Point with his journey and calculation, as soon as Obadiah quitted the room; but this second attack of Obadiah's, in opening the door and laying the whole country under water, was too much.-----He let go his compasses----- or rather with a mixed motion betwixt accident and anger, he
When the letter was brought into the parlour which contained the news of my brother's death, my father had got forwards again upon his journey to within a stride of the compasses of the very same stage of Nevers.------By your leave, Mons. Sanson. cried my father, striking the point of his compasses through Nevers into the table,-----and nodding to my uncle Toby to see what was in the letter,-----twice of one night is too much for an English gentleman and Hs son, Mons. Sanson, to be turned back from so lousy a town as Nevers;-----what thinkst thou, Toby, added my father in a sprightly tone.------Unless it be a garrison town, said my uncle Toby,-----for then-----I shall be a fool, said my father, smiling to himself, as long as I live.------So giving a second nod-----and keeping his compasses still upon Nevers with one hand, and holding his book of the post roads in the other------half calculating and half listening, he leaned forwards upon the table with both elbows, as my uncle Toby hummed over the letter. ------ ------ ----- ----- ------he's gone! said my uncle Toby. ------Where------Who? cried my father.------My nephew, said my uncle Toby.-----What------without leave------without money----without governor? cried my father in amazement. No;-----he is dead, my dear brother, quoth my uncle Toby. ------Without being ill? cried my father again.----I dare say not, said my uncle Toby, in a low voice, and fetching a deep sigh from the bottom of his heart; he has been ill enough, poor lad! I'll answer for him-----for he is dead.
When Agrippina was told of her son's death, Tacitus informs us that not being able to moderate the violence of her passions, she abruptly broke off her work------My father stuck his compasses into Nevers, but so much the faster.------What contrarieties! his, indeed, was matter of calculation------ Agrippina's must have been quite a different affair; who else could pretend to reason from history?
How my father went on, in my opinion, deserves a chapter to itself.-----
'Tis either Plato, or Plutarch, or Seneca, or Xenophon, or Epictetus, or Theophrastus, or Lucian-----or someone perhaps of later date-----either Cardan, or Budaeus, or Petrarch, or Stella-----or possibly it may be some divine or father of the church, St. Austin, or St. Cyprian, or Bernard, who affirms that it is an irresistible and natural passion to weep for the loss of our friends or children----and Seneca (I'm positive) tells us somewhere that such griefs evacuate themselves best by that particular channel.-----And accordingly we find that David wept for Hs son Absalom-----Adrian for his Antino@:us----Niobe for her children, and that Apollodorus and Caito both shed tears for Socrates before his death.
My father managed his affliction otherwise; and indeed differently from most men either ancient or modern; for he neither wept it away, as the Hebrews and the Romans------or slept it off, as the Laplanders------or hanged it, as the English, or drowned it, as the Germans----nor did he curse it, or damn it, or excommunicate it, or rhyme it, or liliabullero it.------
-----He got rid of it, however.
Will your Worships give me leave to squeeze in a story between these two pages?
When Tully was bereft of his dear daughter Tullia, at first he laid it to his heart,-----he listened to the voice of Nature, and modulated his own unto it.-----O my Tullia! my daughter! my child!------still, still, still,-----'twas O my Tullia!----- my Tullia! Methinks I see my Tullia, I hear my Tullia, I talk with my Tullia.------But as soon as he began to look into the stores of philosophy, and consider how many excellent things might be said upon the occasion----nobody upon earth can conceive, says the great orator, how happy, how joyful it made me.
My father was as proud of his eloquence as MARCUS TULLIUS CICERO could be for his life, and for aught I am
This clue will unravel what otherwise would seem very inconsistent in my father's domestic character; and it is this, that in the provocations arising from the neglects and blunders of servants, or other mishaps unavoidable in a family, his anger, or rather the duration of it, eternally ran counter to all conjecture.
My father had a favourite little mare, which he had consigned over to a most beautiful Arabian horse, in order to have a pad out of her for his own riding: he was sanguine in all his projects; so talked about his pad every day with as absolute a security as if it had been reared, broke,----and bridled and saddled at his door ready for mounting. By some neglect or other in Obadiah, it so fell out that my father's expectations were answered with nothing better than a mule, and as ugly a beast of the kind as ever was produced.
My mother and my uncle Toby expected my father would be the death of Obadiah-----and that there never would be an end of the disaster.-----See here! you rascal, cried my father, pointing to the mule, what you have done!-----It was not me, said Obadiah.-----How do I know that? replied my father.
Triumph swam in my father's eyes, at the repartee-----the Attic salt brought water into them----and so Obadiah heard no more about it.
Now let us go back to my brother's death.
Philosophy has a fine saying for everything.-----For Death it has an entire set; the misery was, they all at once rushed into my father's head, that 'twas difficult to string them together, so as to make anything of a consistent show out of them..--He took them as they came.
``'Tis an inevitable chance-----the first statute in Magna
``If my son could not have died, it had been matter of wonder,-----not that he is dead.
``Monarchs and princes dance in the same ring with us.
``-----To die is the great debt and tribute due unto nature: tombs and monuments, which should perpetuate our memories, pay it themselves; and the proudest pyramid of them all, which wealth and science have erected, has lost its apex, and stands obtruncated in the traveller's horizon.'' (My father found he got great ease, and went on)------``Kingdoms and provinces, and towns and cities, have they not their periods? and when those principles and powers which at first cemented and put them together have performed their several evolutions, they fall back.''------Brother Shandy, said my uncle Toby, laying down his pipe at the word evolutions -----Revolutions, I meant, quoth my father,------by heaven! I meant revolutions, brother Toby------evolutions is nonsense. -----'Tis not nonsense-----said my uncle Toby.-----But is lt not nonsense to break the thread of such a discourse, upon such an occasion? cried my father-----do not------dear Toby, continued he, taking him by the hand, do not-----do not, I beseech thee, interrupt me at this crisis.------My uncle Toby put his pipe into his mouth.
``Where is Troy and Mycenae, and Thebes and Delos, and Persepolis and Agrigentum''----continued my father, taking up his book of post roads, which he had laid down. -----``What is become, brother Toby, of Nineveh and Babylon, of Cyzicus and Mytilene? The fairest towns that ever the sun rose upon are now no more: the names only are left, and those (for many of them are wrong spelt) are falling themselves by piecemeals to decay, and in length of time will be forgotten, and involved with everything in a perpetual night: the world itself, brother Toby, must-----must come to an end.
``Returning out of Asia, when I sailed from Aegina towards Megara'' (when can this have been? thought my uncle Toby), ``I began to view the country round about. Aegina was behind me, Megara was before, Piraeus on the right hand, Corinth on the left.-----what flourishing towns now prostrate upon the earth! Alas! alas! said I to myself, that man should disturb his soul for the loss of a child, when so much as this lies awfully buried in his presence-----Remember, said I to myself again----remember thou art a man.''-----
Now my uncle Toby knew not that this last paragraph was an extract of Servius Sulpicius's consolatory letter to Tully.
My uncle Toby had but two things for it; either to suppose his brother to be the wandering Jew, or that his misfortunes had disordered his brain.------``May the Lord God of heaven and earth protect him and restore him,'' said my uncle Toby, praying silently for my father, and with tears in his eyes.
-----My father placed the tears to a proper account, and went on with his harangue with great spirit.
``There is not such great odds, brother Toby, betwixt good and evil, as the world imagines''----(this way of setting off, by the bye, was not likely to cure my uncle Toby's suspicions)-----``Labour, sorrow, grief, sickness, want, and woe are the sauces of life.''-----Much good may it do them----- said my uncle Toby to himself.-----
``My son is dead!-----so much the better;-----'tis a shame in such a tempest to have but one anchor.
``But he is gone forever from us!----be it so. He is got from under the hands of his barber before he was bald----- he is but risen from a feast before he was surfeited--from a banquet before he had got drunken.
``The Thracians wept when a child was born''--(and we were very near it, quoth my uncle Toby)----``and feasted and made merry when a man went out of the world; and with reason.----Death opens the gate of fame, and shuts the gate of envy after it;-----it unlooses the chain of the captive, and puts the bondsman's task into another man's hands.
`'Show me the man, who knows what life is, who dreads it, and I'll show thee a prisoner who dreads his liberty.''
Is it not better, my dear brother Toby (for mark-----our appetites are but diseases),-----is it not better not to hunger at all than to eat?------not to thirst than to take physic to cure it?
Is it not better to be freed from cares and agues, from love and melancholy, and the other hot and cold fits of life, than like a galled traveller, who comes weary to his inn to be bound to begin his journey afresh?
There is no terror, brother Toby, in its looks, but what it borrows from groans and convulsions-----and the blowing of noses, and the wiping away of tears with the bottoms of curtains in a dying man's room.----Strip it of these, what is it------'Tis better in battle than in bed, said my uncle Toby. -----Take away its hearses, its mutes, and its mourning,----- its plumes, scutcheons, and other mechanic aids-----What is it?------Better in battle! continued my father, smiling, for he has absolutely forgot my brother Bobby-----'tis terrible no way------for consider, brother Toby,------when we are---- death is not;-----and when death is-----we are not. My uncle Toby laid down his pipe to consider the proposition; my father's eloquence was too rapid to stay for any man---- away it went,------and hurried my uncle Toby's ideas along with lt.-----
For this reason, continued my father, 'tis worthy to recollect how little alteration in great men the approaches of death have made.-----Vespasian died in a jest upon his close stool------Galba with a sentence-----Septimius Severus in a dispatch------Tiberius in dissimulation, and Caesar Augustus in a compliment.---I hope 'twas a sincere one-----quoth my uncle Toby.
-----'Twas to his wife,-----said my father.
-----And lastly------for of all the choice anecdotes which
history can produce of this matter, continued my father,-----
this, like the gilded dome which covers in the fabric,-----
crowns all.------
'Tis of Cornelius Gallus, the praetor-----which I dare say,
brother Toby, you have read.----I dare say I have not,
replied my uncle.------He died said my father, as ********Y*
-----And if it was with his wife, said my uncle Toby-----
there could be no hurt in it.----That's more than I know
-----replied my father.
In this attitude I am determined to let her stand for five
minutes: till I bring up the affairs of the kitchen (as Rapin
does those of the church) to the same period.
Amongst these there was one I am going to speak of in which, perhaps, it was not altogether so singular as in many others; and it was this, that whatever motion, debate, harangue, dialogue, project, or dissertation was going forwards in the parlour, there was generally another at the same time, and upon the same subject, running parallel along with it in the kitchen.
Now to bring this about, whenever an extraordinary message, or letter, was delivered in the parlour,--or a discourse suspended till a servant went out-----or the lines of discontent were observed to hang upon the brows of my father or mother----or, in short, when anything was supposed to be upon the tapis worth knowing or listening to, 'twas the rule to leave the door not absolutely shut, but somewhat ajar---- as it stands just now,-----which, under covert of the bad hinge (and that possibly might be one of the many reasons why it was never mended), it was not difficult to manage; by which means, in all these cases, a passage was generally left, not indeed as wide as the Dardanelles, but wide enough, for all that, to carry on as much of this windward trade as was sufficient to save my father the trouble of governing his house;-----my mother at this moment stands profiting by it. -----Obadiah did the same thing, as soon as he had left the letter upon the table which brought the news of my brother's death; so that before my father had well got over his surprise, and entered upon his harangue,----had Trim got upon his legs, to speak his sentiments upon the subject.
A curious observer of nature, had he been worth the inventory of all Job's stock-----though, by the bye your cur- ous observers are seldom worth a groat----would have given the half of it to have heard Corporal Trim and my father, two orators so contrasted by nature and education, haranguing over the same bier.
My father a man of deep reading---prompt memory---- with Cato, and Seneca, and Epictetus at his fingers' ends.--
The corporal-----with nothing-----to remember-----of no deeper reading than his muster roll--or greater names at his fingers' end than the contents of it.
The one proceeding from period to period, by metaphor and allusion, and striking the fancy as he went along (as men of wit and fancy do) with the entertainment and pleasantry of his pictures and images.
The other, without wit or antithesis, or point, or turn, this
-----My young Master in London is dead! said Obadiah.-----
------A green satin nightgown of my mother's, which had been twice scoured, was the first idea which Obadiah's exclamation brought into Susannah's head.------Well might Locke write a chapter upon the imperfections of words.----- Then, quoth Susannah, we must all go into mourning.---- But note a second time: the word mourning, notwithstanding Susannah made use of it herself-----failed also of doing its office; it excited not one single idea tinged either with grey or black;----all was green.------The green satin nightgown hung there still.
----O! 'twill be the death of my poor Mistress, cried Susannah.-----My mother's whole wardrobe followed.----What a procession! her red damask,----her orange-tawny,------her white and yellow lutestrings,----her brown taffeta,----her bone-laced caps, her bed gowns and comfortable underpetticoats.-----Not a rag was left behind.-----``No,-----she will never look up again,'' said Susannah.
We had a fat foolish scullion-----my father, I think, kept her for her simplicity;-----she had been all autumn struggling with a dropsy.------He is dead! said Obadiah,-----he is certainly dead!-----So am not I, said the foolish scullion.
-----Here is sad news, Trim! cried Susannah wiping her eyes as Trim stepped into the kitchen;----Master Bobby is dead and buried,--the funeral was an interpolation of Susannah's,-----we shall have all to go into mourning, said Susannah.
I hope not, said Trim.----You hope not! cried Susannah earnestly.-----The mourning ran not in Trim's head, whatever it did in Susannah's.------I hope-----said Trim, explaining himself, I hope in God the news is not true. I heard the
I lament for him from my heart and my soul, said Trim, fetching a sigh.--Poor creature!----poor boy! poor gentleman!
-----He was alive last Whitsuntide, said the coachman. ----Whitsuntide! alas! cried Trim, extending his right arm, and falling instantly into the same attitude in which he read the sermon;-----what is Whitsuntide, Jonathan (for that was the coachman's name), or Shrovetide, or any tide or time past, to this? Are we not here now, continued the corporal (striking the end of his stick perpendicularly upon the floor, so as to give an idea of health and stability),----and are we not----(dropping his hat upon the ground) gone! in a moment!-----'Twas infinitely striking! Susannah burst into a flood of tears.-----We are not stocks and stones.-----Jonathan, Obadiah, the cookmaid all melted.------The foolish fat scullion herself, who was scouring a fish kettle upon her knees, was roused with it.--The whole kitchen crowded about the corporal.
Now as I perceive plainly that the preservation of our constitution in church and state,---and possibly the preservation of the whole world-----or what is the same thing, the distribution and balance of its property and power, may in time to come depend greatly upon the right understanding of this stroke of the corporal's eloquence-----I do demand your attention,----your Worships and Reverences, for any ten pages together, take them where you will in any other part of the work, shall sleep for it at your ease.
I said, `'we were not stocks and stones''--'tis very well. I should have added, nor are we angels, I wish we were,---- but men clothed with bodies, and governed by our imaginations;----and what a junketing piece of work of it there is, betwixt these and our seven senses, especially some of them, for my own part, I own it, I am ashamed to confess. Let it suffice to affirm that of all the senses, the eye (for I absolutely deny the touch, though most of your Barbati I know, are for it) has the quickest commerce with the soul,-----gives a smarter stroke, and leaves something more inexpressible upon the fancy, than words can either convey-----or sometimes get rid of.
----I've gone a little about--no matter, 'tis for health ----let us only carry it back in our mind to the mortality of
-------``Are we not here now,''----continued the corporal, ``and are we not''-----(dropping his hat plumb upon the ground-----and pausing, before he pronounced the word)----- ``gone! in a moment?'' The descent of the hat was as if a heavy lump of clay had been kneaded into the crown of it. ----Nothing could have expressed the sentiment of mortality, of which it was the type and forerunner, like it;-----his hand seemed to vanish from under it,----it fell dead,------the corporal's eye fixed upon it, as upon a corpse,----and Susannah burst into a flood of tears.
Now-----Ten thousand, and ten thousand times ten thousand (for matter and motion are infinite) are the ways by which a hat may be dropped upon the ground, without any effect.----Had he flung it, or thrown it, or cast it, or skimmed it, or squirted, or let it slip or fall in any possible direction under heaven,-----or in the best direction that could be given to it,-----had he dropped it like a goose-----like a puppy---- like an ass-----or in doing it, or even after he had done, had he looked like a fool,-----like a ninny-----like a nincompoop ----it had failed, and the effect upon the heart had been lost.
Ye who govern this mighty world and its mighty concerns with the engines of eloquence,----who heat it, and cool it, and melt it, and mollify it,-----and then harden it again to your purpose------
Ye who wind and turn the passions with this great windlass,----and, having done it, lead the owners of them whither ye think meet-----
Ye, lastly, who drive------and why not, Ye also who are
driven, like turkeys to market, with a stick and a red clout
----meditate-----meditate, I beseech you, upon Trim's hat.
Amongst many other book debts, all of which I shall discharge in due time,-----I own myself a debtor to the world for two items,----a chapter upon chambermaids and button- holes, which, in the former part of my work, I promised and fully intended to pay off this year: but some of your Worships and Reverences telling me that the two subjects, especially so connected together, might endanger the morals of the world,-----I pray the chapter upon chambermaids and buttonholes may be forgiven me,----and that they will accept of the last chapter in lieu of it; which is nothing, an't please your reverences, but a chapter of chambermaids, green gowns, and old hats.
Trim took his off the ground,-----put it upon his head,
and then went on with his oration upon death, in manner
and form following.
----What is the finest face that ever man looked at!-----I could hear Trim talk so forever, cried Susannah,-----what is it! (Susannah laid her hand upon Trim's shoulder)----but corruption?----Susannah took it off.
-----Now I love you for this-----and 'tis this delicious
mixture within you which makes you dear creatures what
you are;----and he who hates you for it------all I can say
of the matter is-----That he has either a pumpkin for his
head------or a pippin for his heart,-----and whenever he is
dissected 'twill be found so.
Or whether the corporal began to be suspicious he had got
into the doctor's quarters, and was talking more like the
chaplain than himself----
Or whether - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - -
Or whether----for in all such cases a man of invention and
parts may with pleasure fill a couple of pages with
suppositions-----which of all these was the cause, let the curious
physiologist, or the curious anybody, determine----'tis
certain, at least, the corporal went on thus with his harangue.
For my own part, I declare it, that out of doors, I value not
death at all:------not this... added the corporal, snapping his
fingers,-----but with an air which no one but the corporal
could have given to the sentiment.-----In battle, I value
death not this . . . and let him not take me cowardly, like
poor Joe Gibbins, in scouring his gun.-----What is he? A
pull of a trigger-----a push of a bayonet an inch this way or
that----makes the difference.-----Look along the line------to
the right----see! Jack's down! well,-----'tis worth a regiment
of horse to him.-----No----'tis Dick. Then Jack's no worse.
----Never mind which,----we pass on,-----in hot pursuit
the wound itself which brings him is not felt,----the best
way is to stand up to him,-----the man who flies is in ten
-----Nature is nature, said Jonathan.-----And that is the reason, cried Susannah, I so much pity my Mistress.-----She will never get the better of it.----Now I pity the Captain the most of anyone in the family, answered Trim.----- Madam will get ease of heart in weeping,-----and the Squire in talking about it,-----but my poor Master will keep it all in silence to himself.----I shall hear him sigh in his bed for a whole month together, as he did for Lieutenant Le fever. An' please your Honour, do not sigh so piteously, I would say to him as I laid besides him. I cannot help it, Trim, my Master would say,----'tis so melancholy an accident-----I cannot get it off my heart.-----Your Honour fears not death yourself.-----I hope, Trim, I fear nothing, he would say, but the doing a wrong thing.----Well, he would add, whatever betides, I will take care of Le Fever's boy.-----And with that like a quieting draught, his Honour would fall asleep.
I like to hear Trim's stories about the Captain, said Susannah.----He is a kindly hearted gentleman, said Obadiah, as ever lived.----Aye,----and as brave a one too, said the corporal, as ever stept before a platoon.----There never was a better officer in the king's army,-----or a better man in God's world; for he would march up to the mouth of a cannon, though he saw the lighted match at the very touch hole,------ and yet, for all that, he has a heart as soft as a child for other people.------He would not hurt a chicken.----I would sooner, quoth Jonathan drive such a gentleman for seven pounds a year----than some for eight.-----Thank thee, Jonathan! for thy twenty shillings,----as much, Jonathan, said the corporal, shaking him by the hand, as if thou hadst put the money into my own pocket.----I would serve him to the day of my death out of love. He is a friend and a brother to me,----and could I be sure my poor brother Tom was dead,----continued the corporal, taking out his handkerchief,----was I worth ten thousand pounds, I would leave every shilling of it to the Captain.----Trim could not refrain
Susannah, the cook, Jonathan, Obadiah, and Corporal
Trim formed a circle about the fire; and as soon as the scullion
had shut the kitchen door,-----the corporal begun.
For my own part I never wonder at anything;----and so
often has my judgment deceived me in my life, that I always
suspect it right or wrong;----at least I am seldom hot upon
cold subjects. for all this, I reverence truth as much as
anybody; and when it has slipped us, if a man will but take me
by the hand, and go quietly and search for it, as for a thing
we have both lost, and can neither of us do well without,
-----I'll go to the world's end with him:-----But I hate
disputes,-----and therefore (bating religious points, or such as
touch society) I would almost subscribe to anything which
does not choke me in the first passage, rather than be drawn
into one-----But I cannot bear suffocation,----and bad
smells worst of all.-----for which reasons, I resolved from
the beginning, That if ever the army of martyrs was to be
augmented,-----or a new one raised,-----I would have no
hand in it, one way or t'other.
My uncle Toby's opinion, Madam, ``that there could be no harm in Cornelius Gallus the Roman praetor's lying with his wife;''-----or rather the last word of that opinion-----(for it was all my mother heard of it), caught hold of her by the weak part of the whole sex:----You shall not mistake me, ----I mean her curiosity;-----she instantly concluded herself the subject of the conversation, and with that prepossession upon her fancy, you will readily conceive every word my father said was accommodated either to herself, or her family concerns.
-----Pray, Madam, in what street does the lady live who would not have done the same?
From the strange mode of Cornelius's death, my father had made a transition to that of Socrates, and was giving my uncle Toby an abstract of his pleading before his judges; -----'twas irresistible:----not the oration of Socrates,----but my father's temptation to it.----He had wrote the Life of Socrates * himself the year before he left off trade, which, I fear, was the means of hastening him out of it;----so that no one was able to set out with so full a sail, and in so swelling a tide of heroic loftiness upon the occasion, as my father was. Not a period in Socrates's oration which closed with a shorter word than transmigration, or annihilation, ----or a worse thought in the middle of it than to be---- or not to be;-----the entering upon a new and untried state of things;-----or upon a long, a profound and peaceful sleep, without dreams, without disturbance;-----That we and our children were born to die,------but neither of us born to be slaves.----No----there I mistake; that was part of Eleazer's oration, as recorded by Josephus (de Bell. Judaic.)-----Eleazer owns he had it from the philosophers of India; in all likelihood Alexander the Great, in his irruption into India,
* This book my father would never consent to publish; 'tis in manuscript, with some other tracts of his, in the family, all or most of which will be printed in due time.
By land carriage I can conceive no other way.-----
By water the sentiment might easily have come down the
Ganges into the Sinus Gangeticus, or Bay of Bengal, and so
into the Indian Sea; and following the course of trade (the
way from India by the Cape of Good Hope being then
unknown), might be carried with other drugs and spices up the
Red Sea to Joddah, the port of Mecca, or else to Tor or Suez,
towns at the bottom of the gulf; and from thence by caravans
to Coptos, but three days' journey distant, so down the
Nile directly to Alexandria, where the SENTIMENT would
be landed at the very foot of the great staircase of the
Alexandrian library,-----and from that storehouse it would be
fetched.-------Bless me! what a trade was driven by the
learned in those days!
Though, by the bye, because your learned men find some
difficulty in fixing the precise era in which so great a man
lived;-----whether, for instance, before or after the
patriarchs, &c.-----to vote, therefore, that he never lived at all is
a little cruel,----'tis not doing as they would be done by----
happen that as it may)----My father, I say, had a way,
when things went extremely wrong with him, especially upon
the first sally of his impatience,-----of wondering why he was
begot,----wishing himself dead;-----sometimes worse:----
And when the provocation ran high, and grief touched his
lips with more than ordinary powers,-----Sir, you scarce
could have distinguished him from Socrates himself.----
Every word would breathe the sentiments of a soul disdaining
----Then, cried my mother, opening the door,------you have one more, Mr. Shandy, than I know of.
By heaven! I have one less,-----said my father, getting up
and walking out of the room.
------They are Socrates's children, said my uncle Toby. He
has been dead a hundred years ago, replied my mother.
My uncle Toby was no chronologer----so not caring to
advance a step but upon safe ground, he laid down his pipe
deliberately upon the table, and rising up, and taking my
mother most kindly by the hand, without saying another
word, either good or bad, to her, he led her out after my
father, that he might finish the eclaircissement himself.
Diddle diddle, diddle diddle, diddle diddle.-----hum--, dum-----drum.
----Your Worships and your Reverences love music------ and God has made you all with good ears----and some of you play delightfully yourselves-----trut-prut,-----prut-trut.
O! there is----whom I could sit and hear whole days,-----
whose talents lie in making what he fiddles to be felt,----
who inspires me with his joys and hopes, and puts the most
hidden springs of my heart into motion.-----If you would
borrow five guineas of me, Sir,----which is generally ten
guineas more than I have to spare----or you, Messrs. Apothecary
and Tailor, want your bills paying,-----that's your tune.
In about three years, or something more, my father had got advanced almost into the middle of his work.-----Like all other writers, he met with disappointments.-----He imagined he should be able to bring whatever he had to say into so small a compass that when it was finished and bound, it might be rolled up in my mother's hussif.----Matter grows under our hands.----Let no man say,------``Come-- I'll write a duodecimo.''
My father gave himself up to it, however, with the most painful diligence, proceeding step by step in every line with the same kind of caution and circumspection (though I cannot say upon quite so religious a principle) as was used by John de la Casse, the Lord Archbishop of Benevento, in compassing his Galateo; in which his Grace of Benevento spent near forty years of his life; and when the thing came out, it was not of above half the size or the thickness of a Rider's Almanac.-----How the holy man managed the affair, unless he spent the greatest part of his time in combing his whiskers, or playing at primero with his chaplain,-----would pose any mortal not let into the true secret;-----and therefore 'tis worth explaining to the world, was it only for the encouragement of those few in it who write not so much to be fed----- as to be famous.
I own had John de la Casse, the Archbishop of Benevento, for whose memory (notwithstanding his Galateo) I retain the highest veneration,-----had he been, Sir, a slender clerk ----of dull wit-----slow parts--costive head, and so forth,
But the reverse of this was the truth: John de la Casse was a genius of fine parts and fertile fancy; and yet with all these great advantages of nature, which should have pricked him forwards with his Galateo, he lay under an impuissance at the same time of advancing above a line and an half in the compass of a whole summer's day: this disability in his Grace arose from an opinion he was afflicted with,----which opinion was this,-----viz., that whenever a Christian was writing a book (not for his private amusement, but) where his intent and purpose was bona fide, to print and publish it to the world, his first thoughts were always the temptations of the evil one.------This was the state of ordinary writers: but when a personage of venerable character and high station, either in church or state, once turned author,----he maintained that from the very moment he took pen in hand-----all the devils in hell broke out of their holes to cajole him.---- 'Twas Termtime with them;-----every thought, first and last, was captious;------how specious and good soever,-----'twas all one;----in whatever form or colour it presented itself to the imagination,-----'twas still a stroke of one or other of 'em levelled at him, and was to be fenced off.----So that the life of a writer, whatever he might fancy to the contrary, was not so much a state of composition, as a state of war- fare,- and his probation in it, precisely that of any other man militant upon earth,-----both depending alike not half so much upon the degrees of his wit-----as his RESISTANCE.
My father was hugely pleased with this theory of John de la Casse, Archbishop of Benevento; and (had it not cramped him a little in his creed) I believe would have given ten of the best acres in the Shandy estate to have been the broacher of it.-----How far my father actually believed in the devil will be seen when I come to speak of my father's religious notions, in the progress of this work: 'tis enough to say here, as he could not have the honour of it, in the literal sense of the doctrine----he took up with the allegory of it;-----and would often say, especially when his pen was a little retrograde, there was as much good meaning, truth, and knowledge couched under the veil of John de la Casse's parabolical representation,----as was to be found in any one poetic fiction or mystic record of antiquity.----Prejudice of education, he would say, is the devil,-----and the multitudes of them which we suck in with our mother's milk----are the
This is the best account I am determined to give of the slow progress my father made in his Tristrapaedia; at which (as I said) he was three years and something more indefatigably at work, and at last, had scarce completed, by his own reckoning, one half of his undertaking: the misfortune was that I was all that time totally neglected and abandoned to my mother; and what was almost as bad, by the very delay, the first part of the work, upon which my father had spent the most of his pains, was rendered entirely useless;---- every day a page or two became of no consequence.----
----Certainly it was ordained as a scourge upon the pride of human wisdom, That the wisest of us all should thus outwit ourselves, and eternally forgo our purposes in the intemperate act of pursuing them.
In short, my father was so long in all his acts of
resistance,-----or in other words,-----he advanced so very slow with
his work, and I began to live and get forwards at such a rate,
that if an event had not happened,-----which, when we get to
it, if it can be told with decency, shall not be concealed a
moment from the reader----I verily believe I had put by
my father, and left him drawing a sundial, for no better
purpose than to be buried underground.
I was five years old.----Susannah did not consider that nothing was well hung in our family,----so slap came the sash down like lightning upon us;----Nothing is left,----- cried Susannah,----nothing is left ----for me, but to run my country.----
My uncle Toby's house was a much kinder sanctuary; and
so Susannah fled to it.
Your Honour shall have them, replied Trim, before tomorrow morning.
It was the joy of Trim's heart,----nor was his fertile head ever at a loss for expedients in doing it, to supply my uncle Toby in his campaigns with whatever his fancy called for; had it been his last crown, he would have sate down and hammered it into a paterero to have prevented a single wish in his master. The corporal had already,-----what with cutting off the ends of my uncle Toby's spouts,----hacking and chiseling up the sides of his leaden gutters,-----melting down his pewter shaving basin,-----and going at last like Lewis the Fourteenth, on to the top of the church for spare ends, &c.------he had that very campaign brought no less than eight new battering cannons, besides three demiculverins, into the field; my uncle Toby's demand for two more pieces for the redoubt had set the corporal at work again; and no better resource offering, he had taken the two leaden weights from the nursery window: and as the sash pulleys, when the lead was gone, were of no kind of use, he had taken them away also, to make a couple of wheels for one of their carriages.
He had dismantled every sash window in my uncle Toby's house long before, in the very same way,----though mot always in the same order; for sometimes the pulleys had been wanted, and not the lead,-----so then he began with the pulleys,-----and the pulleys being picked out, then the lead became useless,----and so the lead went to pot too.
----A great MORAL might be picked handsomely out of
this, but I have not time----'tis enough to say, wherever the
demolition began, 'twas equally fatal to the sash window.
My uncle Toby had just then been giving Yorick an account of the battle of Steenkerke, and of the strange conduct of Count Solmes in ordering the foot to halt, and the horse to march where it could not act; which was directly contrary to the king's commands, and proved the loss of the day.
There are incidents in some families so pat to the purpose of what is going to follow,----they are scarce exceeded by the invention of a dramatic writer;-----I mean of ancient days.-------
Trim, by the help of his forefinger, laid flat upon the table,
and the edge of his hand striking across it at right angles,
made a shift to tell his story so, that priests and virgins might
have listened to it;-----and the story being told,-----the
dialogue went on as follows.
Corporal Trim, replied my uncle Toby, putting on his hat
which lay upon the table,-----if anything can be said to be a
fault, when the service absolutely requires it should be done,
-----'tis I certainly who deserve the blame;-----you obeyed
your orders.
Had Count Solmes, Trim, done the same at the battle of
Steenkerke, said Yorick, drolling a little upon the corporal,
who had been run over by a dragoon in the retreat,----he
had saved thee;-----Saved! cried Trim, interrupting Yorick,
and finishing the sentence for him after his own fashion;-----
----I wish, said Trim, as they entered the door,----instead of the sash weights, I had cut off the church spout, as I once thought to have done.------You have cut off spouts enow, replied Yorick.------
This is the true reason that my dear Jenny and I, as well
as all the world besides us, have such eternal squabbles about
nothing.-----She looks at her outside,-----I, at her in----.
How is it possible we should agree about her value?
This being premised, I take the benefit of the act of going
backwards myself.
Now, though I was old enough to have told the story my
* Mr. Shandy is supposed to mean *** * * * **, Esq; member
for ******,-----and not the Chinese legislator.
One would imagine from this-----(though for my own part I somewhat question it)-----that my father, before that time, had actually wrote that remarkable chapter in the Tristrapaedia which to me is the most original and entertaining one in the whole book;-----and that is the chapter upon sash windows, with a bitter philippic at the end of it upon the forgetfulness of chambermaids.-----I have but two rea-sons for thinking otherwise.
First, Had the matter been taken into consideration before the event happened, my father certainly would have nailed up the sash window for good an' all;-----which, considering with what difficulty he composed books,----he might have done with ten times less trouble than he could have wrote the chapter: this argument I foresee holds good against his writing the chapter even after the event; but 'tis obviated under the second reason, which I have the honour to offer to the world in support of my opinion that my father did not write the chapter upon sash windows and chamber pots at the time supposed,-----and it is this.
-----That, in order to render the Tristrapaedia complete,
-----I wrote the chapter myself.
-----If it be but right done,-----said my father, turning to the Section-----de sede vel subjecto circumcisionis,-----for he had brought up Spencer de Legibus Hebraeorum Ritual- ibus-----and Maimonides, in order to confront and examine us altogether.----
------If it be but right done, quoth he:-----Only tell us, cried my mother, interrupting him, what herbs.-----For that, replied my father, you must send for Dr. Slop.
My mother went down, and my father went on, reading the section as follows.
* * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * ----Very well,----said my father,
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * nay, if it has that convenience--and so without
stopping a moment to settle it first in his mind whether
the Jews had it from the Egyptians, or the Egyptians from
the Jews,-----he rose up, and rubbing his forehead two or
three times across with the palm of his hand, in the manner
we rub out the footsteps of care, when evil has trod lighter
upon us than we foreboded,-----he shut the book, and walked
downstairs.-----Nay, said he, mentioning the name of a
different great nation upon every step as he set his foot upon it
----if the EGYPTIANS,-----the SYRIANS,-----the PHOENICIANS,
----the ARABIANS,-----the CAPADOCIANS,----if the COLCHI
and TROGLODYTES did it,-----if SOLON and PYTHAGORAS
submitted,-----what is TRISTRAM?-----who am I, that I should
fret or fume one moment about the matter?
'Tis possible answered Yorick.------But is the child, cried my uncle Toby, the worse?-----The Troglodytes say not, replied my father.----And your theologists, Yorick, tell us----- Theologically? said Yorick,-----or speaking after the manner of apothecaries? *-----statesmen? @++-----or washerwomen? @+=
----I'm not sure replied my father,-----but they tell us, brother Toby, he's the better for it.----Provided, said Yorick, you travel him into Egypt.-----Of that, answered my father, he will have the advantage, when he sees the Pyramids.----
Now every word of this, quoth my uncle Toby, is Arabic to me.-----I wish, said Yorick, 'twas so to half the world.
----ILUS,* * continued my father, circumcised his whole army one morning.----Not without a court-martial? cried my uncle Toby.----Though the learned, continued he, taking no notice of my uncle Toby's remark, but turning to Yorick,---- are greatly divided still who Ilus was;----some say Saturn; ----some, the supreme Being;-----others, no more than a brigadier general under Pharaoh-Nechoh.-----Let him be who he will, said my uncle Toby, I know not by what article of war he could justify it.
The controvertists, answered my father, assign two-andtwenty different reasons for it:-----others indeed, who have drawn their pens on the opposite side of the question have shown the world the futility of the greatest part of them.----- But then again, our best polemic divines-----I wish there was not a polemic divine, said Yorick, in the kingdom;-----one ounce of practical divinity------is worth a painted shipload of all their Reverences have imported these fifty years.----- Pray, Mr. Yorick, quoth my uncle Toby,-----do tell me what a polemic divine is.-----The best description, Captain
*<9Xalep@^y@ts n@'osou, ka@`i dusi@'atou @.apallag@`y, @;yn @;anhraka kalo@^usin.>9--PHILO.
@++<9T@`a temn@'omena t@^wn @.ehn@^wn polugon@'wtata, ka@`i poluanhrwp@'otata e@^inai.>9
@+=<9Kahari@'otyto@ts e@;ineken.>9 ----BOCHART.
**`<9O Ilo@ts, t@`a @.aido@^ia perit@'emnetai, t@.aut@`o poi@^ysai ka@`i to@`u@ts @;am' a@.ut@^w summ@'a->9 <9xou@ts katanagk@'asa@ts.--->9SANCHUNIATHO.
(This can't be fighting, said my uncle Toby.-----The corporal shook his head at it.-----Have patience, said Yorick.)
"`Then (Tripet) passed his right leg over his saddle, and placed himself en croupe.----But, said he, 'twere better for me to get into the saddle; then putting the thumbs of both hands upon the crupper before him, and thereupon leaning himself, as upon the only supporters of his body, he incontinently turned heels over head in the air, and straight found himself betwixt the bow of the saddle in a tolerable seat; then springing into the air with a somerset, he turned him about like a windmill, and made above a hundred frisks, turns, and demipomadas.''-----Good God! cried Trim losing all patience,------one home thrust of a bayonet is worth it all. ----I think so too, replied Yorick.-----
------I am of a contrary opinion, quoth my father.
My uncle Toby never felt the consciousness ot his existence
with more complacency than what the corporal's and his own
reflections made him do at that moment;------he lighted his
pipe,------Yorick drew his chair closer to the table,----Trim
snuffed the candle,------my father stirred up the fire,-----took
up the book,----coughed twice, and begun.
The original of society, continued my father, I'm satisfied, is
what Politian tells us, i.e., merely conjugal; and nothing
more than the getting together of one man and one woman;
----to which (according to Hesiod) the philosopher adds a
servant:----but supposing in the first beginning there were
no men servants born----he lays the foundation of it in a
man,-----a woman,-----and a bull.----I believe 'tis an ox,
quoth Yorick, quoting the passage (<9@^ikon m@`en pr@'wtista,>9
<9guna@^ik@'a te, bo@^uv t' @.arot@^yra.>9)------A bull must have given more
trouble than his head was worth.----But there is a better
reason still, said my father (dipping his pen into his ink), for,
the ox being the most patient of animals, and the most useful
withal in tilling the ground for their nourishment,----was
the properest instrument, and emblem too, for the new-joined
couple that the creation could have associated with them.-----
And there is a stronger reason, added my uncle Toby, than
them all for the ox.-----My father had not power to take
his pen out of his inkhorn till he had heard my uncle
Toby's reason.-----For when the ground was tilled, said my
My father gave Trim a nod to snuff the candle, and resumed his discourse.
-----I enter upon this speculation, said my father carelessly, and half shutting the book, as he went on,----merely to show the foundation of the natural relation between a father and his child; the right and jurisdiction over whom he acquires these several ways----
1 st, by marriage.
2d, by adoption.
3d, by legitimation.
And 4th, by procreation; all which I consider in their order.
I lay a slight stress upon one of them, replied Yorick----the
act, especially where it ends there, in my opinion lays as little
obligation upon the child as it conveys power to the father.
-----You are wrong,-----said my father argutely, and for this
plain reason * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * *.----I own,
added my father, that the offspring, upon this account, is not
so under the power and jurisdiction of the mother.-----
But the reason, replied Yorick, equally holds good for her.
-----She is under authority herself, said my father:----and
besides, continued my father, nodding his head and laying
his finger upon the side of his nose, as he assigned his
reason,----she is not the principal agent, Yorick.----In
what? quoth my uncle Toby, stopping his pipe.-----Though
by all means, added my father (not attending to my uncle
Toby), ``The son ought to pay her respect,'' as you may read,
Yorick, at large in the first book of the Institutes of Justinian,
at the eleventh title and the tenth section.------I can read lt
as well, replied Yorick, in the catechism.
------The fifth Commandment, Trim-----said Yorick, speaking mildly, and with a gentle nod, as to a modest catechumen. The corporal stood silent.----You don't ask him right, said my uncle Toby, raising his voice, and giving it rapidly like the word of command;----The fifth----- -----cried my uncle Toby.-----I must begin with the first, an' please your Honour, said the corporal.-----
----Yorick could not forbear smiling.-----Your Reverence does not consider, said the corporal, shouldering his stick like a musket, and marching into the middle of the room, to illustrate his position,-----that 'tis exactly the same thing as doing one's exercise in the field.-----
``Join your right hand to your firelock,'' cried the corporal, giving the word of command, and performing the motion.----
``Poise your firelock,'' cried the corporal, doing the duty still of both adjutant and private man.
``Rest your firelock;''----one motion, an' please your Reverence, you see leads into another.------If his Honour will begin but with the first----
THE FIRST---cried my uncle Toby, setting his hand upon his side--- * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
THE SECOND--cried my uncle Toby, waving his tobacco pipe, as he would have done his sword at the head of a regiment.-----The corporal went through his manual with exactness; and having honoured his father and mother, made a low bow, and fell back to the sl de of the room.
Everything in this world, said my father, is big with jest, ------and has wit in it, and instruction too,-----if we can but find it out.
-----Here is the scaffoldwork of INSTRUCTION, its true point of folly, without the EUILDINO behind it.-----
----Here is the glass for pedagogues, preceptors, tutors, governors, gerund-grinders and bear-leaders to view themselves in, in their true dimensions.------
Oh! there is a husk and shell, Yorick, which grows up with learning, which their unskilfulness knows not how to fling away!
------SCIENCES MAY EE LEARNED BY ROTE, BUT WISDOM NOT.
Yorick thought my father inspired.-----I will enter into obligations this moment, said my father, to lay out all my aunt Dinah's legacy in charitable uses (of which, by the bye,
Allowing them, an' please your Honour, three halfpence a
day out of my pay, when they grew old.----And didst thou
do that, Trim? said Yorick.----He did indeed, replied my
uncle Toby.-----Then, Trim, said Yorick, springing out of
his chair, and taking the corporal by the hand, thou art the
best commentator upon that part of the Decalogue; and I
honour thee more for it, corporal Trim, than if thou hadst
had a hand in the Talmud itself.
I have concentrated all that can be said upon this important
head, said my father, into a very little room, therefore
we'll read the chapter quite through.
My father read as follows.
``The whole secret of health depending upon the due
contention for mastery betwixt the radical heat and the radical
moisture''-----You have proved that matter of fact, I
suppose, above, said Yorick. Sufficiently, replied my father.
In saying this, my father shut the book,-----not as if he
resolved to read no more of it, for he kept his forefinger in
the chapter:-----nor pettishly,-----for he shut the book slowly,
his thumb resting, when he had done it, upon the upper
side of the cover, as his three fingers supported the lower
side of it, without the least compressive violence.-----
I have demonstrated the truth of that point, quoth my
father, nodding to Yorick, most sufficiently in the preceding
chapter.
Now could the man in the moon be told that a man in
``O thou eternal maker of all beings!''-----he would cry,
striking his breast with his right hand (in case he had one),
----``Thou whose power and goodness can enlarge the faculties
of thy creatures to this infinite degree of excellence and
perfection,-----what have we MOONITES done?''
The stroke at the prince of physicians, with which he
began, was no more than a short insult upon his sorrowful
complaint of the Ars longa----and Vita brevis.-----Life
short, cried my father,-----and the art of healing tedious!
And who are we to thank for both, the one and the other,
but the ignorance of quacks themselves,-----and the stageloads
of chemical nostrums, and peripatetic lumber, with
which, in all ages, they have first flattered the world, and at
last deceived it.
----O my Lord Verulam! cried my father, turning from
Hippocrates, and making his second stroke at him as the
principal of nostrum-mongers. and the fittest to be made an
example of to the rest,-----what shall I say to thee, my great
Lord Verulam? what shall I say to thy internal spirit,------
thy opium,-----thy saltpetre,-----thy greasy unctions,------thy
daily purges,-----thy nightly clysters and succedaneums?
----My father was never at a loss what to say to any
man, upon any subject; and had the least occasion for the
exordium of any man breathing: how he dealt with his
Lordship's opinion,-----you shall see;------but when,----I know
not;-----we must first see what his Lordship's opinion was.
``The internal spirit, which, like a gentle flame, wastes the body down to death:-----And secondly, the external air, that parches the body up to ashes:-----which two enemies attacking us on both sides of our bodies together, at length destroy our organs, and render them unfit to carry on the functions of life.''
This being the state of the case, the road to Longevity was plain; nothing more being required, says his Lordship, but to repair the waste committed by the internal spirit, by making the substance of it more thick and dense, by a regular course of opiates on one side, and by refrigerating the heat of it on the other, by three grains and a half of saltpetre every morning before you got up.----
Still this frame of ours was left exposed to the inimical assaults of the air without;------but this was fenced off again by a course of greasy unctions, which so fully saturated the pores of the shin that no spicula could enter;-----nor could any one get out.-----This put a stop to all perspiration, sensible and insensible, which being the cause of so many scurvy distempers-----a course of clysters was requisite to carry off redundant humours,----and render the system complete.
What my father had to say to my Lord of Verulam's opiates, his saltpetre, and greasy uncrions and clysters, you shall read,-----but not today---or tomorrow: time presses upon me ----my reader is impatient----I must get forwards.-----You shall read the chapter at your leisure (if you choose it), as soon as ever the Tristrapaedia is published.-----
Sufficeth it at present to say, my father levelled the hypothesis with the ground, and in doing that, the learned know, he built up and established his own.----
Now the radical moisture is not the tallow or fat of animals, but an oily and balsamous substance; for the fat and tallow, as also the phlegm or watery parts, are cold; whereas the oily and balsamous parts are of a lively heat and spirit, which accounts for the observation of Aristotle, ``Puod omne animal post coitum est triste.''
Now it is certain that the radical heat lives in the radical moisture, but whether vice versa is a doubt: however, when the one decays, the other decays also; and then is produced either an unnatural heat, which causes an unnatural dryness -----or an unnatural moisture, which causes dropsies.-----So that if a child, as he grows up, can but be taught to avoid running into fire or water, as either of 'em threaten his destruction,-----'twill be all that is needful to be done upon that head.--
The poor fellow and I, quoth my uncle Toby, addressing himself to my father, were scarce able to crawl out of our tents, at the time the siege of Limerick was raised, upon the very account you mention.-----Now what can have got into that precious noodle of thine, my dear brother Toby? cried my father, mentally.-----By heaven! continued he, communing still with himself, it would puzzle an Oedipus to bring it in point.-----
I believe, an' please your Honour, quoth the corporal, that if it had not been for the quantity of brandy we set fire to every night, and the claret and cinnamon with which I plied your Honour off;----And the geneva, Trim, added my uncle Toby, which did us more good than all-----I verily believe, continued the corporal, we had both, an' please your Honour, left our lives in the trenches, and been buried in them too. ------The noblest grave, corporal! cried my uncle Toby, his eyes sparkling as he spoke, that a soldier could wish to lie down in.----But a pitiful death for him! an' please your Honour, replied the corporal.
All this was as much Arabic to my father as the rites of the Colchi and Troglodytes had been before to my uncle Toby, my father could not determine whether he was to frown or smile.------
My uncle Toby, turning to Yorick resumed the case at
Limerick, more intelligibly than he had begun it,----and so
settled the point for my father at once.
---------It was heaven's mercy to us, continued my uncle Toby, which put it into the corporal's head to maintain that due contention betwixt the radical heat and the radical moisture, by reinforcing the fever, as he did all along, with hot wine and spices; whereby the corporal kept up (as it were) a continual firing, so that the radical heat stood its ground from the beginning to the end, and was a fair match for the moisture, terrible as it was.----Upon my honour, added my uncle Toby, you might have heard the contention within our bodies, brother Shandy, twenty toises.-----If there was no firing said Yorick.
Well----said my father, with a full aspiration, and pausing awhile after the word----was I a judge, and the laws of the country which made me one permitted it, I would condemn some of the worst malefactors, provided they had had their clergy ------ ------- -------- ------- ------- -------- ------- -----Yorick, foreseeing the sentence was likely to end with no sort of mercy, laid his hand upon my father's breast, and begged he would respite it for a few minutes, till he asked the corporal a question.----Prithee, Trim, said Yorick, without staying for my father's leave,-----tell us honestly----- what is thy opinion concerning this selfsame radical heat and radical moisture?
With humble submission to his Honour's better judgment, quoth the corporal, making a bow to my uncle Toby------ Speak thy opinion freely, corporal, said my uncle Toby.---- The poor fellow is my servant,-----not my slave,----added my uncle Toby, turning to my father.------
The corporal put his hat under his left arm, and with his
stick hanging upon the wrist of it, by a black thong split into
a tassel about the knot, he marched up to the ground where
he had performed his catechism; then touching his under jaw
with the thumb and fingers of his right hand before he
opened his mouth,-----he delivered his notion thus.
Well, my good doctor, cried my father sportively, for the transitions of his passions were unaccountably sudden,----- and what has this whelp of mine to say to the matter?-----
Had my father been asking after the amputation of the tail of a puppy dog----he could not have done it in a more careless air: the system which Dr. Slop had laid down to treat the accident by no way allowed of such a mode of enquiry. -----He sat down.
Pray, Sir, quoth my uncle Toby, in a manner which could not go unanswered,-----in what condition is the boy?----- 'Twill end in a phimosis, replied Dr. Slop.
I am no wiser than I was, quoth my uncle Toby,-----returning
his pipe into his mouth.----Then let the corporal go
on, said my father, with his medical lecture.-----The corporal
made a bow to his old friend, Dr. Slop, and then delivered
his opinion concerning radical heat and radical moisture, in
the fallowing words.
I think this is a new fashion, quoth Dr. Slop, of beginning
a medical lecture.-----'Tis all true, answered Trim.----Then
I wish the faculty would follow the cut of it, said Yorick.
-----'Tis all cut through, an' please your Reverence, said the
corporal, with drains and bogs; and besides, there was such a
quantity of rain fell during the siege, the whole country was
like a puddle;----'twas that, and nothing else, which brought
on the flux, and which had like to have killed both his Honour
and myself; now there was no such thing, after the first
ten days, continued the corporal, for a soldier to lie dry in
his tent, without cutting a ditch round it, to draw off the
water;----nor was that enough, for those who could afford
it, as his Honour could, without setting fire every night to a
pewter dish full of brandy, which took off the damp of the
And what conclusion dost thou draw, Corporal Trim, cried my father, from all these premises?
I infer, an' please your Worship, replied Trim, that the radical moisture is nothing in the world but ditch water---- and that the radical heat, of those who can go to the expense of it, is burnt brandy----the radical heat and moisture of a private man, an' please your Honours, is nothing but ditch water------and a dram of geneva------and give us but enough of it, with a pipe of tobacco, to give us spirits, and drive away the vapours----we know not what it is to fear death.
I am at a loss, Captain Shandy, quoth Dr. Slop, to determine in which branch of learning your servant shines most, whether in physiology, or divinity.------Slop had not forgot Trim's comment upon the sermon.----
It is but an hour ago, replied Yorick, since the corporal was examined in the latter, and passed muster with great honour.-----
The radical heat and moisture, quoth Dr. Slop, turning to
my father, you must know, is the basis and foundation of
our being,----as the root of a tree is the source and principle
of its vegetation.------It is inherent in the seeds of all
animals, and may be preserved sundry ways, but principally in
my opinion by consubstantials, impriments, and occiudents.
----Now this poor fellow, continued Dr. Slop, pointing to
the corporal, has had the misfortune to have heard some
superficial empiric discourse upon this nice point.----That he
has,-----said my father.-----Very likely, said my uncle.-----
I'm sure of it-----quoth Yorick.----
Four years in travelling from christcross-row to Malachi;
A year and a half in learning to write his own name;
Seven long years and more <9t@'upw->9ing it, at Greek and Latin;
Four years at his probations and his negations-----the fine statue still lying in the middle of the marble block,-----and nothing done, but his tools sharpened to hew it out!-----'Tis a piteous delay!-----Was not the great Julius Scaliger within an ace of never getting his tools sharpened at all?------- Forty-four years old was he before he could manage his Greek;----and Peter Damianus, Lord Bishop of Ostia, as all the world knows, could not so much as read, when he was of man's estate.------And Baldus himself, as eminent as he turned out after, entered upon the law so late in life that everybody imagined he intended to be an advocate in the other world: no wonder, when Eudamidas, the son of Archidamas, heard Xenocrates at seventy-five disputing about wis- dom, that he asked gravely,-----If the old man be yet dis- puting and enquiring concerning wisdom,-----what time will he have to make use of it?
Yorick listened to my father with great attention; there was a seasoning of wisdom unaccountably mixed up with his strangest whims, and he had sometimes such illuminations in the darkest of his eclipses, as almost attoned for them:-----be wary, Sir, when you imitate him.
I am convinced, Yorick, continued my father, half reading and half discoursing, that there is a northwest passage to the intellectual world; and that the soul of man has shorter ways of going to work, in furnishing itself with knowledge and instruction, than we generally ta ke with it.------But alack! all fields have not a river or a spring running besides them;---- every child, Yorick! has not a parent to point it out.
------The whole entirely depends, added my father, in a low voice, upon the auxiliary verbs, Mr. Yorick.
Had Yorick trod upon Virgil's snake, he could not have looked more surprised.-----I am surprised too, cried my father, observing it,-----and I reckon it as one of the greatest
The highest stretch of improvement a single word is capable of is a high metaphor,----for which, in my opinion the idea is generally the worse, and not the better;-----but be that as it may,----when the mind has done that with it-- there is an end,-----the mind and the idea are at rest,---- until a second idea enters;------and so on.
Now the use of the Auxiliaries is at once to set the soul a-going by herself upon the materials as they are brought her; and by the versability of this great engine, round which they are twisted, to open new tracks of enquiry, and make every idea engender millions.
You excite my curiosity greatly, said Yorick.
For my own part, quoth my uncle Toby, I have given it up. -----The Danes, an' please your Honour, quoth the corporal, who were on the left at the siege of Limerick, were all auxiliaries.-----And very good ones, said my uncle Toby.----But the auxiliaries, Trim, my brother is talking about,-----I conceive to be different things.--
----You do? said my father, rising up.
The verbs auxiliary we are concerned in here continued
Now, by the right use and application of these, continued my father, in which a child's memory should be exercised, there is no one idea can enter his brain, how barren soever, but a magazine of conceptions and conclusions may be drawn forth from it.------Didst thou ever see a white bear? cried my father, turning his head round to Trim, who stood at the back of his chair:------No, an' please your Honour, replied the corporal.-----But thou couldst discourse about one Trim, said my father, in case of need?----How is it possible, brother, quoth my uncle Toby, if the corporal never saw one?-----'Tis the fact I want replied my father,----and the possibility of it is as follows.
A WHITE BEAR! Very well. Have I ever seen one? Might I ever have seen one? Am I ever to see one? Ought I ever to have seen one? Or can I ever see one?
Would I had seen a white bear! (for how can I imagine it?)
If I should see a white bear, what should I say? If I should never see a white bear, what then?
If I never have, can, must, or shall see a white bear alive, have I ever seen the skin of one? Did I ever see one painted? --described? Have I never dreamed of one?
Did my father, mother, uncle, aunt, brothers, or sisters ever see a white bear? What would they give? How would they behave? How would the white bear have behaved? Is he wild? Tame? Terrible? Rough? Smooth?
-----Is the white bear worth seeing?-----
-----Is there no sin in it?-----
Is it better than a BLACK ONE?
& ----We'll not stop two moments my dear Sir,-----only, as we have got through these five volumes (do Sir sit down upon a set-----they are better than nothing), let us just look back upon the country we have passed through.-----
----What a wilderness has it been! and what a mercy that we have not both of us been lost, or devoured by wild beasts, init. - Did you think the world itself, Sir, had contained such a number of Jack Asses?-----How they viewed and reviewed us as we passed over the rivulet at the bottom of that little valley!-----and when we climbed over that hill, and were just getting out of sight-----good God! what a braying did they all set up together!
----Prithee, shepherd! who keeps all those Jack Asses? * * *
-----Heaven be their comforter-----What! are they never curried?----Are they never taken in in winter?-----Bray bray -----bray. Bray on,------the world is deeply your debtor;----- louder still-----that's nothing;-----in good sooth, you are illused:----Was I a Jack Ass, I solemnly declare I would bray in g sol re ut from morning even unto night.
I presume, said Yorick, smiling,---it must be owing to this-----(for let logicians say what they will, it is not to be accounted for sufficiently from the bare use of the ten predicaments)-----that the famous Vincent Quirino, amongst the many other astonishing feats of his childhood, of which the Cardinal Bembo has given the world so exact a story,---- should be able to paste up in the public schools at Rome, so early as in the eighth year of his age, no less than four thousand five hundred and sixty different theses, upon the most abstruse points of the most abstruse theology;-----and to defend and maintain them in such sort as to cramp and dumfound his opponents.-----What is that cried my father, to what is told us of Alphonsus Tostatus, who, almost in his nurse's arms, learned all the sciences and liberal arts without being taught any one of them?------What shall we say of the great Peireskius?-----That's the very man, cried my uncle Toby, I once told you of, brother Shandy, who walked a matter of five hundred miles, reckoning from Paris to Schevling, and from Schevling back again, merely to see Stevinus's flying chariot.----He was a very great man! added my uncle Toby (meaning Stevinus);----He was so, brother Toby, said my father (meaning Peireskius),----and had multiplied his
* Nons aurions quelque int@'er@^et, says Baillet, de montrer qu'il n' a rien de ridicule s'il @'etoit v@'eritable, au moins dans le sense @'enigmatique que Nicius Erythraeus a t@^ach@'e de lui donner. Cet auteur dit que pour comprendre comme Lipse, a p@^u composer un ouvrage le premier jour de sa vie, il faut s'imaginer, que ce premier jour n'est pas celui de sa naissance chamelle, mais celui au quel il a commenc@'e d'user de la raison; il veut que @,c'ait @'et@'e @`a l'age de neuf ans; et il nous veut persuader que ce fut en cet @^age, que Lipse fit un po@`eme.------Le tour est ingenieux, etc. etc.
-----Oh! oh!-----said Slop, casting a glance of undue freedom in Susannah's face, as she declined the office;-----then I think I know you, Madam-----You know me, Sir! cried Susannah fastidiously, and with a toss of her head, levelled, evidently, not at his profession, but at the doctor himself, ----you know me! cried Susannah again.-----Dr. Slop clapped his finger and his thumb instantly upon his nostrils; ----Susannah's spleen was ready to burst at it;-----'Tis false, said Susannah.-----Come, come, Mrs. Modesty, said Slop, not a little elated with the success of his last thrust,----- if you won't hold the candle and look-----you may hold it and shut your eyes:-----That's one of your popish shifts, cried Susannah:-----'Tis better, said Slop, with a nod, than no shift at all, young woman;----I defy you, sir, cried Susannah, pulling her shift sleeve below her elbow.
It was almost impossible for two persons to assist each other in a surgical case with a more splenetic cordiality.
Slop snatched up the cataplasm,-----Susannah snatched up
the candle;-----a little this way, said Slop; Susannah, looking
one way, and rowing another, instantly set fire to Slop's wig,
which being somewhat bushy and unctuous withal, was burnt
out before it was well kindled.---------You impudent whore!
cried Slop----(for what is passion, but a wild beast),----you
impudent whore, cried Slop, getting upright, with the
cataplasm in his hand;------I never was the destruction of
anybody's nose, said Susannah,------which is more than you can
say:-----Is it? cried Slop, throwing the cataplasm in her face;
-----Yes, it is, cried Susannah, returning the compliment with
what was left in the pan.-----
Now as I consider the person who is to be about my son as the mirror in which he is to view himself from morning to night, and by which he is to adjust his looks, his carriage, and perhaps the inmost sentiments of his heart;-----I would have one, Yorick, if possible polished at all points, fit for my child to look into.------This is very good sense, quoth my uncle Toby to himself.
-----There is, continued my father, a certain mien and motion of the body and all its parts, both in acting and speaking, which argues a man well within; and I am not at all surprised that Gregory of Nazianzum, upon observing the hasty and untoward gestures of Julian, should foretell he would one day become an apostate;----or that St. Ambrose should turn his Amanuensis out of doors, because of an indecent motion of his head, which went backwards and forwards like a flail;-----or that Democritus should conceive Protagoras to be a scholar, from seeing him bind up a faggot, and thrusting, as he did it, the small twigs inwards.----There are a thousand unnoticed openings, continued my father, which let a penetrating eye at once into a man's soul; and I maintain it, added he, that a man of sense does not lay down his hat in coming into a room,-----or take it up in going out of it, but something escapes, which discovers him.
It is for these reasons, continued my father, that the governor I make choice of shall neither * lisp, or squint, or wink,
* Vid. Pellegrina.
He shall neither walk fast,------or slow, or fold his arms, -----for that is laziness;------or hang them down,--for that is folly; or hide them in his pocket, for that is nonsense.--
He shall neither strike, or pinch, or tickle,-----or bite, or cut his nails, or hawk, or spit, or snift, or drum with his feet or fingers in company;----nor (according to Erasmus) shall he speak to anyone in making water,-----nor shall he point to carrion or excrement.-----Now this is all nonsense again, quoth my uncle Toby to himself.--
I will have him, continued my father, cheerful, facete,
jovial; at the same time, prudent, attentive to business,
vigilant, acute, argute, inventive, quick in resolving doubts and
speculative questions;-----he shall be wise and judicious, and
learned:-----And why not humble, and moderate, and
gentletempered, and good? said Yorick:----And why not, cried my
uncle Toby, free, and generous, and bountiful, and brave?
-----He shall, my dear Toby, replied my father, getting up
and shaking him by his hand.----Then, brother Shandy,
answered my uncle Toby raising himself off the chair, and laying
down his pipe to take hold of my father's other hand,-----
I humbly beg I may recommend poor Le Fever's son to you;
----a tear of joy of the first water sparkled in my uncle
Toby's eye,-----and another, the fellow to it, in the corporal's,
as the proposition was made;-----you will see why when you
read Le Fever's story:-----fool that I was! nor can I recollect
(nor perhaps you), without turning back to the place, what it
was that hindered me from letting the corporal tell it in his
own words;-----but the occasion is lost;-----I must tell it
now in my own.
The Story of LE FEVER
lt was some time in the summer of that year in which
Dendermond was taken by the allies,--which was about seven
years before my father came into the country,-----and about
as many after the time that my uncle Toby and Trim had
He was one evening sitting thus at his supper, when the landlord of a little inn in the village came into the parlour with an empty phial in his hand, to beg a glass or two of sack; 'Tis for a poor gentleman,-----I think, of the army, said the landlord, who has been taken ill at my house four days ago, and has never held up his head since or had a desire to taste anything, till just now, that he has a fancy for a glass of sack and a thin toast,-----I think, says he, taking his hand from his forehead, it would comfort me.-------
----If I could neither beg, borrow, or buy such a thing, ----added the landlord,-----I would almost steal it for the poor gentleman, he is so ill.-----I hope in God he will still mend, continued he-----we are all of us concerned for him.
Thou art a good-natured soul, I will answer for thee, cried my uncle Toby; and thou shalt drink the poor gentleman's health in a glass of sack thyself,-----and take a couple of bottles with my service, and tell him he is heartily welcome to them, and to a dozen more if they will do him good.
Though I am persuaded, said my uncle Toby, as the landlord shut the door, he is a very compassionate fellow----- Trim,-----yet I cannot help entertaining a high opinion of his guest too; there must be something more than common in him that in so short a time should win so much upon the affections of his host;-----And of his whole family, added the corporal, for they are all concerned for him.-----Step after him, said my uncle Toby,------do Trim,----and ask if he knows his name.
-----I have quite forgot it, truly, said the landlord, coming
My uncle Toby laid down his knife and fork, and thrust his plate from before him, as the landlord gave him the account; and Trim, without being ordered, took away without saying one word, and in a few minutes after brought him his pipe and tobacco.
----Stay in the room a little, said my uncle Toby.-----
Trim!-----said my uncle Toby, after he lighted his pipe, and smoked about a dozen whiffs.-----Trim came in front of his master and made his bow;-----my uncle Toby smoked on, and said no more.----Corporal! said my uncle Toby -----the corporal made his bow.-----My uncle Toby proceeded no farther, but finished his pipe.
Trim! said my uncle Toby, I have a project in my head, as it is a bad night, of wrapping myself up warm in my roquelaure, and paying a visit to this poor gentleman.------ Your Honour's roquelaure, replied the corporal, has not once been had on since the night before your Honour received your wound, when we mounted guard in the trenches before the gate of St. Nicolas;-----and besides it is so cold and rainy a night, that what with the roquelaure, and what with the weather, 'twill be enough to give your Honour your death, and bring on your Honour's torment in your groin. I fear so, replied my uncle Toby, but I am not at rest in my mind Trim, since the account the landlord has given me.----- I wish I had not known so much of this affair,------added my uncle Toby,-----or that I had known more of it:----- How shall we manage it? Leave it, an't please your Honour, to me, quoth the corporal;-----I'll take my hat and stick and go to the house and reconnoitre, and act accordingly; and I will bring your honour a full account in an hour.-----Thou shalt go, Trim, said my uncle Toby, and here's a shilling for thee to drink with his servant.-----I shall get it all out of him, said the corporal, shutting the door.
My uncle Toby filled his second pipe; and had it not been that he now and then wandered from the point, with considering whether it was not full as well to have the curtain of the tenaille a straight line, as a crooked one,---- he might be said to have thought of nothing else but poor Le Fever and his boy the whole time he smoked it.
The Story of LE FEVER, continued It was not till my uncle Toby had knocked the ashes out of his third pipe that Corporal Trim returned from the inn, and gave him the following account.
I despaired at first, said the corporal, of being able to bring back your Honour any kind of intelligence concerning the poor sick lieutenant------Is he in the army then? said my uncle Toby-----He is, said the corporal----And in what regiment? said my uncle Toby----I'll tell your Honour, replied the corporal, everything straight forwards, as I learnt it. -----Then, Trim, I'll fill another pipe, said my uncle Toby, and not interrupt thee till thou hast done; so sit down at thy ease, Trim, in the window seat, and begin thy story again. The corporal made his old bow, which generally spoke as plain as a bow could speak it-----Your Honour is good.: ----And having done that, he sat down, as he was ordered, -----and begun the story to my uncle Toby over again in pretty near the same words.
I despaired at first, said the corporal, of being able to bring back any intelligence to your Honour about the lieutenant and his son; for when I asked where his servant was, from whom I made myself sure of knowing everything which was proper to be asked,----That's a right distinction, Trim, said my uncle Toby----I was answered, an' please your Honour, that he had no servant with him;-----that he had come to the inn with hired horses, which upon finding himself unable to proceed (to join, I suppose, the regiment), he had dismissed the morning after he came.-----If I get better, my dear, said he, as he gave his purse to his son to pay the man,------we can hire horses from hence.------But alas! the poor gentleman will never get from hence, said the landlady to me,----for I heard the deathwatch all night long; ----and when he dies, the youth, his son, will certainly die with him; for he is brokenhearted already.
I was hearing this account, continued the corporal, when the youth came into the kitchen, to order the thin toast the landlord spoke of;-----but I will do it for my father myself, said the youth.-----Pray let me save you the trouble, young
----I never in the longest march, said the corporal, had so great a mind to my dinner as I had to cry with him for company:-----What could be the matter with me, an' please your Honour? Nothing in the world, Trim, said my uncle Toby, blowing his nose,-----but that thou art a good-natured fellow.
When I gave him the toast, continued the corporal, I thought it was proper to tell him I was Captain Shandy's servant, and that your Honour (though a stranger) was extremely concerned for his father;-----and that if there was anything in your house or cellar-----(And thou mightst have added my purse too, said my uncle Toby)-----he was heartily welcome to it:-----He made a very low bow (which was meant to your Honour) but no answer,----for his heart was full-----so he went upstairs with the toast;----I warrant you, my dear, said I, as I opened the kitchen door, your father will be well again.-----Mr. Yorick's curate was smoking a pipe by the kitchen fire,-----but said not a word good or bad to comfort the youth.----I thought it wrong, added the corporal -----I think so too, said my uncle Toby.
When the lieutenant had taken his glass of sack and toast, he felt himself a little revived, and sent down into the kitchen, to let me know that in about ten minutes he should be glad if I would step upstairs.-----I believe, said the landlord, he is going to say his prayers,-----for there was a book laid upon the chair by his bedside, and as I shut the door, I saw his son take up a cushion.-----
I thought, said the curate, that you gentlemen of the army, Mr. Trim, never said your prayers at all.----I heard the poor gentleman say his prayers last night, said the landlady, very devoutly, and with my own ears, or I could not have believed it.----Are you sure of it? replied the curate.-----A soldier, an' please your Reverence, said I, prays as often (of his own accord) as a parson;-----and when he is fighting for his king and for his own life, and for his honour too, he has the most reason to pray to God of anyone in the whole
When I went up, continued the corporal, into the lieutenant's room, which I did not do till the expiration of the ten minutes,-----he was lying in his bed with his head raised upon his hand, with his elbow upon the pillow, and a clean white cambric handkerchief beside it:-----The youth was just stooping down to take up the cushion, upon which I supposed he had been kneeling,------the book was laid upon the bed, ------and as he rose, in taking up the cushion with one hand, he reached out his other to take it away at the same time.---- Let it remain there, my dear, said the lieutenant.
He did not offer to speak to me, till I had walked up close to his bedside:-----If you are Captain Shandy's servant, said he, you must present my thanks to your master, with my little boy's thanks along with them, for his courtesy to me;----- if he was of Levens's-----said the lieutenant.----I told him your Honour was-----Then, said he, I served three
I wish, said my uncle Toby, with a deep sigh,----I wish, Trim, I was asleep.
Your Honour, replied the corporal, is too much concerned; -----shall I pour your Honour out a glass of sack to your pipe?-----Do, Trim, said my uncle Toby.
I remember, said my uncle Toby, sighing again, the story of the ensign and his wife, with a circumstance his modesty omitted;----and particularly well that he, as well as she, upon some account or other (I forget what), was universally pitied by the whole regiment;-----but finish the story thou art upon:----'Tis finished already, said the corporal,----for I could stay no longer,----so wished his Honour a good night; young Le Fever rose from off the bed, and saw me to the bottom of the stairs; and as we went down together, told me they had come from Ireland, and were on their route to join the regiment in Flanders.-----But alas! said the corporal, ----the lieutenant's last day's march is over.----Then what is to become of his poor boy? cried my uncle Toby.
The Story of LE FEVER, continued It was to my uncle Toby's eternal honour,----though I tell it only for the sake of those who, when cooped in betwixt a natural and a positive law, know not for their souls which way in the world to turn themselves-----That notwithstanding my uncle Toby was warmly engaged at that time in carrying on the siege of Dendermond, parallel with the allies, who pressed theirs on so vigorously that they scarce allowed him time to get his dinner----that nevertheless he gave up Dendermond, though he had already made a lodgment upon the counterscarp,-----and bent his whole thoughts towards the private distresses at the inn; and, except that he ordered the garden gate to be bolted up, by which he might be said to have turned the siege of Dendermond into a blockade, -----he left Dendermond to itself,----to be relieved or not by the French king, as the French king thought good; and only considered how he himself should relieve the poor lieutenant and his son.
----That kind BEING who is a friend to the friendless shall recompense thee for this.
Thou hast left this matter short, said my uncle Toby to the corporal, as he was putting him to bed,-----and I will tell thee in what, Trim.-----In the first place, when thou madest an offer of my services to Le Fever,----as sickness and traveling are both expensive, and thou knowest he was but a poor lieutenant, with a son to subsist as well as himself, out of his pay,-----that thou didst not make an offer to him of my purse; because, had he stood in need, thou knowest, Trim, he had been as welcome to it as myself.----Your Honour knows, said the corporal, I had no orders;----True, quoth my uncle Toby,-----thou didst very right, Trim, as a soldier,----but certainly very wrong as a man.
In the second place, for which, indeed, thou hast the same excuse, continued my uncle Toby,-----when thou offeredst him whatever was in my house,----thou shouldst have offered him my house too:-----A sick brother officer should have the best quarters, Trim, and if we had him with us,----- we could tend and look to him:---Thou art an excellent
-----In a fortnight or three weeks, added my uncle Toby, smiling,----he might march.----He will never march, an' please your Honour, in this world, said the corporal:----He will march, said my uncle Toby, rising up from the side of the bed, with one shoe off:-----An' please your Honour, said the corporal, he will never march, but to his grave:-----He shall march, cried my uncle Toby, marching the foot which had a shoe on, though without advancing an inch,------he shall march to his regiment.-----He cannot stand it, said the corporal;----He shall be supported, said my uncle Toby; ----He'll drop at last, said the corporal, and what will become of his boy?-----He shall not drop, said my uncle Toby, firmly.----A-well-o'-day,----do what we can for him, said Trim, maintaining his point,-----the poor soul will die:------ He shall not die, by G---, cried my uncle Toby.
-----The ACCUSING SPIRIT which flew up to heaven's chancery
with the oath blushed as he gave it in;-----and the
RECORDING ANGEL, as he wrote it down, dropped a tear upon
the word, and blotted it out forever.
The Story of LE FEVER, concluded
The sun looked bright the morning after, to every eye in the
village but Le Fever's and his afflicted son's; the hand of
death pressed heavy upon his eyelids,----and hardly could
----You shall go home directly, Le Fever, said my uncle Toby, to my house,-----and we'll send for a doctor to see what's the matter,-----and we'll have an apothecary,-----and the corporal shall be your nurse;-----and I'll be your servant, Le Fever.
There was a frankness in my uncle Toby,-----not the effect of familiarity,-----but the cause of it,--which let you at once into his soul, and showed you the goodness of his nature; to this, there was something in his looks, and voice, and manner, superadded, which eternally beckoned to the unfortunate to come and take shelter under him; so that before my uncle Toby had half finished the kind offers he was making to the father, had the son insensibly pressed up close to his knees, and had taken hold of the breast of his coat, and was pulling it towards him.-----The blood and spirits of Le Fever, which were waxing cold and slow within him, and were retreating to their last citadel, the heart,-----rallied back,------the film forsook his eyes for a moment,------he looked up wishfully in my uncle Toby's face,-----then cast a look upon his boy,----and that ligament, fine as it was, ----was never broken.----
Nature instantly ebbed again,-----the film returned to its place,------the pulse fluttered-----stopped----went on----- throbbed-----stopped again----moved----stopped-----shall I go on?------No.
That my uncle Toby, with young Le Fever in his hand, attended the poor lieutenant, as chief mourners, to his grave.
That the governor of Dendermond paid his obsequies all military honours,-----and that Yorick, not to be behindhand ----paid him all ecclesiastic------for he buried him in his chancel:-----And it appears, likewise, he preached a funeral sermon over him-----I say it appears,-----for it was Yorick's custom, which I suppose a general one with those of his profession, on the first leaf of every sermon which he composed, to chronicle down the time, the place, and the occasion of its being preached: to this he was ever wont to add some short comment or stricture upon the sermon itself, seldom, indeed, much to its credit:----For instance, This sermon upon the Jewish dispensation------I don't like it at all;----- Though I own there is a world of WATER-LANDISH knowledge in it,------but 'tis all tritical, and most tritically put together. ------This is but a flimsy kind of a composition; what was in my head when I made it?
----N.B. The excellency of this text is that it will suit any sermon,-----and of this sermon,-----that it will suit any text.-----
----For this sermon I shall be hanged,-----for I have sto- len the greatest part of it. Dr. Paidagunes found me out. @hd Set a thief to catch a thief.
On the back of half a dozen I find written, So-so, and no more----and upon a couple Moderato; by which, as far as one may gather from Altieri's Italian dictionary,----but mostly from the authority of a piece of green whipcord, which seemed to have been the unravelling of Yorick's whiplash, with which he has left us the two sermons marked Moderato, and the half dozen of So-so, tied fast together in one bundle by themselves,----one may safely suppose he
meant pretty near the same thing.
There is but one difficulty in the way of this conjecture, which is this, that the moderato's are five times better than the so-so's;-----show ten times more knowledge of the human heart;------have seventy times more wit and spirit in them; ----(and, to rise properly in my climax)------discover a thousand times more genius;----and to crown all, are infinitely more entertaining than those tied up with them;----for which reason, whene'er Yorick's dramatic sermons are offered to the world, though I shall admit but one out of the whole number of the so-so's, I shall, nevertheless, adventure to print the two moderato's without any sort of scruple.
What Yorick could mean by the words lentamente,----- tenuto,-----grave,----and sometimes adagio,----as applied to theological compositions, and with which he has characterized some of these sermons, I dare not venture to guess. ----I am more puzzled still upon finding a l'octava alta! upon one;-----Con strepito upon the back of another;----- Siciliana upon a third;-----Alla capella upon a fourth;---- Con l'arco upon this;-----Senza l'arco upon that.-----All I know is that they are musical terms, and have a meaning; -----and as he was a musical man, I will make no doubt but that by some quaint application of such metaphors to the compositions in hand, they impressed very distinct ideas of their several characters upon his fancy,-----whatever they may do upon that of others.
Amongst these, there is that particular sermon which has unaccountably led me into this digression--The funeral sermon upon poor Le Fever, wrote out very fairly, as if from a hasty copy.-----I take notice of it the more because it seems to have been his favourite composition-----lt is upon mortality; and is tied lengthways and crossways with a yarn thrum, and then rolled up and twisted round with a half sheet of dirty blue paper, which seems to have been once the cast cover of a general review, which to this day smalls horribly of horse drugs.------Whether these marks of humiliation were designed,-----I something doubt;-----because at the end of the sermon (and not at the beginning of it),---- very different from his way of treating the rest, he had wrote-----
Bravo!
----Though not very offensively,-----for it is at two inches, at least, and a half's distance from and below, the concluding line of the sermon, at the very extremity of the page, and in that right-hand corner of it which, you know, is generally covered with your thumb; and, to do it justice, it is wrote besides with a crow's quill so faintly in a small
With all these extenuations, I am aware that in publishing this, I do no service to Yorick's character as a modest man; -----but all men have their failings! and what lessens this still farther, and almost wipes it away, is this, that the word was struck through sometime afterwards (as appears from a different tint of the ink) with a line quite across it in this manner, BRAVO------ as if he had retracted, or was ashamed of, the opinion he had once entertained of it.
These short characters of his sermons were always written,
excepting in this one instance, upon the first leaf of his
sermon, which served as a cover to it; and usually upon the
inside of it, which was turned towards the text;-----but at the
end of his discourse, where, perhaps, he had five or six pages,
and sometimes, perhaps, a whole score to turn himself in,
-----he took a larger circuit, and, indeed, a much more
mettlesome one;-----as if he had snatched the occasion of
un-lacing himself with a few more frolicsome strokes at vice
than the straitness of the pulpit allowed.-----These, though
hussar-like they skirmish lightly and out of all order, are
still auxiliaries on the side of virtue;-----tell me then,
Mynheer Vander Blonederdondergewdenstronke, why they should
not be printed together?
As soon as my uncle Toby had laid a foundation, and taught him to inscribe a regular polygon in a circle, he sent him to a public school, where, excepting Whitsuntide and Christmas, at which times the corporal was punctually dispatched for him,-----he remained to the spring of the year Seventeen; when, the stories of the emperor's sending his army into Hungary against the Turks kindling a spark of fire in his bosom, he left his Greek and Latin without leave, and throwing himself upon his knees before my uncle Toby, begged his father's sword, and my uncle Toby's leave along with it, to go and try his fortune under Eugene.----Twice did my uncle Toby forget his wound, and cry out, Le Fever! I will go with thee, and thou shalt fight beside me--And twice he laid his hand upon his groin, and hung down his head in sorrow and disconsolation.----
My uncle Toby took down the sword from the crook, where it had hung untouched ever since the lieutenant's death, and delivered it to the corporal to brighten up;-------- and having detained Le Fever a single fortnight to equip him, and contract for his passage to Leghorn,-----he put the sword into his hand;-----If thou art brave, Le Fever, said my uncle Toby, this will not fail thee,----but Fortune, said he (musing a little),----Fortune may-----And if she does,------added my uncle Toby, embracing him, come back again to me, Le Fever, and we will shape thee another course.
The greatest injury could not have oppressed the heart of Le Fever more than my uncle Toby's paternal kindness;---- he parted from my uncle Toby as the best of sons from the best of fathers------both dropped tears-----and as my uncle Toby gave him his last kiss, he slipped sixty guineas, tied up in an old purse of his father's, in which was his mother's ring, into his hand,----and bid God bless him.
As this letter came to hand about six weeks before Susannah's accident, Le Fever was hourly expected; and was uppermost in my uncle Toby's mind all the time my father was giving him and Yorick a description of what kind of a person he would choose for a preceptor to me: but as my uncle Toby thought my father at first somewhat fanciful in the accomplishments he required, he forebore mentioning Le Fever's name,-----till the character, by Yorick's interposition, ending unexpectedly in one who should be gentle-tempered, and generous, and good, lt impressed the image of Le Fever and his interest upon my uncle Toby so forceably, he rose instantly off his chair; and laying down his pipe, in order to take hold of both my father's hands-----I beg, brother Shandy, said my uncle Toby, I may recommend poor Le Fever's son to you----I beseech you, do, added Yorick----He has a good heart, said my uncle Toby----And a brave one too, an' please your Honour, said the corporal.
----The best hearts, Trim, are ever the bravest, replied my uncle Toby.-----And the greatest cowards, an' please your Honour, in our regiment, were the greatest rascals in it. ----There was Serjeant Kumbur, and Ensign--
-----We'll talk of them, said my father, another time.
Dr. Slop, like a son of a w----, as my father called him for it,-----to exalt himself,----debased me to death,----- and made ten thousand times more of Susannah's accident than there was any grounds for; so that in a week's time, or less, it was in everybody's mouth, That poor Master Shandy * * * * * * * * * * * * * * entirely.----And FAME, who loves to double everything,-----in three days more, had sworn positively she saw it,-----and all the world, as usual, gave credit to her evidence--``That the nursery window had not only * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *;-----but that * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *'s also.''
Could the world have been sued like a BODY CORPORATE, -----my father had brought an action upon the case, and trounced it sufficiently; but to fall foul of individuals about it-----as every soul who had mentioned the affair did it with the greatest pity imaginable;----'twas like flying in the very face of his best friends:-----And yet to acquiesce under the report in silence-----was to acknowledge it openly,----at least in the opinion of one half of the world; and to make a bustle again, in contradicting it,-----was to confirm it as strongly in the opinion of the other half.--------
-----Was ever poor devil of a country gentleman so hampered? said my father.
I would show him publicly, said my uncle Toby, at the market cross.
-----'Twill have no effect, said my father.
-----I'll put him, however, into breeches, said my father, -----let the world say what it will.
Of the number of these was my father's resolution of put-ting me into breeches; which, though determined at once, ----in a kind of huff, and a defiance of all mankind, had, nevertheless, been pro'd and conned, and judicially talked over betwixt him and my mother about a month before, in two several beds of justice, which my father had held for that purpose. I shall explain the nature of these beds of justice in my next chapter; and in the chapter following that, you shall step with me, Madam, behind the curtain, only to hear in what kind of manner my father and my mother debated between themselves this affair of the breeches,-----from which you may form an idea, how they debated all lesser matters.
Now my father, being entirely a water drinker,-----was a long time gravelled almost to death, in turning this as much to his advantage as he did every other thing which the ancients did or said; and it was not till the seventh year of his marriage, after a thousand fruitless experiments and devices, that he hit upon an expedient which answered the purpose;-----and that was when any difficult and momentous point was to be settled in the family, which required great sobriety, and great spirit too, in its determination,-----he fixed and set apart the first Sunday night in the month, and the Saturday night which immediately preceded it, to argue it over, in bed, with my mother: By which contrivance, if you consider, Sir, with yourself, * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
These my father, humourously enough, called his beds of justice;------for from the two different counsels taken in these two different humours, a middle one was generally found out, which touched the point of wisdom as well as if he had got drunk and sober a hundred times.
It must not be made a secret of to the world, that this answers full as well in literary discussions, as either in military or conjugal; but it is not every author that can try the experiment as the Goths and Vandals did it-----or if he can, may it be always for his body's health; and to do lt as my father did lt,-----am I sure it would be always for his soul's.-----
My way is this:------
In all nice and ticklish discussions-----(of which, heaven knows, there are but too many in my book),-----where I find I cannot take a step without the danger of having either their Worships or their Reverences upon my back-----I write one half full,----and t'other fasting;----or write it all full,----- and correct it fasting;-----or write it fasting,-----and correct it full, for they all come to the same thing:-----So that with a less variation from my father's plan than my father's from the Gothic-----I feel myself upon a par with him in his first bed of justice,-----and no way inferior to him in his second. ------These different and almost irreconcilable effects flow uniformly from the wise and wonderful mechanism of Nature,-----of which-----be hers the honour.----All that we can do is to turn and work the machine to the improvement and better manufactury of the arts and sciences.-----
Now, when I write full,-----I write as if I was never to write fasting again as long as I live;-----that is, I write free from the cares, as well as the terrors, of the world.----I count not the number of my scars,-----nor does my fancy go forth into dark entries and bye corners to antedate my stabs.-----In a word, my pen takes its course; and I write on as much from the fullness of my heart, as my stomach.----
But when, an' please your Honours, I indite fasting, 'tis a different history.-----I pay the world all possible attention and respect,-----and have as great a share (whilst it lasts) of that understrapping virtue of discretion as the best of you. ------So that betwixt both, I write a careless kind of a civil, nonsensical, good-humoured Shandean book, which will do all your hearts good-----
-----And all your heads too,----provided you understand
it.
We should so,-----said my mother.----We defer it, my
dear, quoth my father, shamefully.-----
I think we do, Mr. Shandy,-----said my mother.
-----Not but the child looks extremely well, said my father, in his vests and tunics.--------
---------He does look very well in them,------replied my mother.---------
------And for that reason it would be almost a sin, added my father, to take him out of 'em.-----
------It would so,------said my mother:-----But indeed he is growing a very tall lad,----rejoined my father.
------He is very tall for his age, indeed,------said my mother.------
-----I can not (making two syllables of it) imagine, quoth my father, who the deuce he takes after.----
I cannot conceive, for my life,-----said my mother.------
Humph!-----said my father.
(The dialogue ceased for a moment.)
------I am very short myself,-----continued my father, gravely
You are very short, Mr. Shandy,------said my mother.
Humph! quoth my father to himself, a second time: in muttering which, he plucked his pillow a little further from my mother's,-----and turning about again, there was an end of the debate for three minutes and a half.
------When he gets these breeches made, cried my father in a higher tone, he'll look like a beast in 'em.
He will be very awkward in them at first, replied my mother.-----
-----And 'twill be lucky if that's the worst on't, added my father.
It will be very lucky, answered my mother.
I suppose, replied my father,-----making some pause first, -----he'll be exactly like other people's children.-----
Exactly, said my mother.---------
------Though I should be sorry for that, added my father: and so the debate stopped again.
------They should be of leather, said my father, turning him about again.-----
They will last him, said my mother, the longest.
But he can have no linings to 'em, replied my father.-----
He cannot, said my mother.
'Twere better to have them of fustian, quoth my father.
Nothing can be better, quoth my mother.-------
------Except dimity,------replied my father:----'Tis best of all,------replied my mother.
-----One must not give him his death, however,-----interrupted my father.
By no means, said my mother:-----and so the dialogue stood still again.
I am resolved, however, quoth my father, breaking silence the fourth time, he shall have no pockets in them.------
-----There is no occasion for any, said my mother.--------
I mean in his coat and waistcoat,-----cried my father.
-----I mean so too,-----replied my mother.
-----Though if he gets a gig or a top------Poor souls! it is a crown and a scepter to them;-----They should have where to secure it.-------
Order it as you please, Mr. Shandy, replied my mother.-----
-----But don't you think it right? added my father, pressing the point home to her.
Perfectly, said my mother, if it pleases you, Mr. Shandy.-----
-----There's for you! cried my father, losing temper-----
Pleases me!-----You never will distinguish, Mrs. Shandy, nor
shall I ever teach you to do it, betwixt a point of pleasure and
a point of convenience.-----This was on the Sunday night;
------and further this chapter sayeth not.
Upon every other article of ancient dress, Rubenius was
very communicative to my father;-----gave him a full and
satisfactory account of
The Toga, or loose gown.
The Chlamys.
The Ephod.
The Tunica, or Jacket.
The Synthesis.
The Paenula.
The Lacema, with its Cucullus.
The Paludamentum.
The Praetexta.
The Sagum, or soldier's jerkin.
The Trabea: of which, according to Suetonius, there were three kinds.-----
-----But what are all these to the breeches? said my father.
Rubenius threw him down upon the counter all kinds of shoes which had been in fashion with the Romans.----- There was,
The open shoe.
The close shoe.
The slip shoe.
The wooden shoe.
The sock.
The buskin.
And The military shoe with hobnails in it, which
Juvenal takes notice of. There were, The clogs.
The pattens.
The pantofles.
The brogues.
The sandals, with latchets to them. There was, The felt shoe.
The linen shoe.
The laced shoe.
The braided shoe.
The calceus incisus.
And The calceus rostratus.
Rubenius showed my father how well they all fitted,--in what manner they laced on,-----with what points, straps, thongs, latchets, ribbands, jags, and ends.-----
----But I want to be informed about the breeches, said my father.
Albertus Rubenius informed my father that the Romans manufactured stuffs of various fabrics,------some plain,---- some striped,-----others diapered throughout the whole contexture of the wool with silk and gold------That linen did not begin to be in common use till towards the declension of the empire, when the Egyptians coming to settle amongst them brought it into vogue.
----That persons of quality and fortune distinguished themselves by the fineness and whiteness of their clothes;
And what was the latus clavus? said my father.
Rubenius told him that the point was still litigating amongst the learned:----That Egnatius, Sigonius, Bossius Ticinensis, Bayfius, Budaeus, Salmasius, Lipsius, Lazius, Isaac Casaubon, and Joseph Scaliger all differed from each other,----and he from them: That some took it to be the button,-----some the coat itself,-----others only the colour of it:-----That the great Bayfius, in his Wardrobe of the Ancients, chap. 12-----honestly said, he knew not what it was,----whether a tibula,-----a stud,-----a button,-----a loop,-----a buckle,-----or clasps and keepers.-----
-----My father lost the horse, but not the saddle----They
are hooks and eyes, said my father----and with hooks and
eyes he ordered my breeches to be made.
-----Leave we then the breeches in the tailor's hands, with
my father standing over him with his cane, reading him as he
sat at work a lecture upon the latus clavus, and pointing to
the precise part of the waistband where he was determined to
have it sewed on.-----
Leave we my mother-----(truest of all the pococurantes of
her sex!)-----careless about it, as about everything else in
the world which concerned her;-----that is,-----indifferent
whether it was done this way or that,----provided it was
but done at all.-----
Leave we Slop likewise to the full profits of all my
dishonours.--------
Leave we poor Le Fever to recover, and get home from Marseilles as he can.----And last of all,----because the hardest of all----
Let us leave, if possible, myself.:----But 'tis impossible,
-----I must go along with you to the end of the work.
When FATE was looking forwards one afternoon, into the
great transactions of future times,-----and recollected for
what purposes this little plot, by a decree fast bound down in
iron, had been destined,-----she gave a nod to NATURE----
'twas enough-----Nature threw half a spadeful of her kindliest
compost upon it, with just so much clay in it as to retain the
forms of angles and indentings,-----and so little of it too as
not to cling to the spade, and render works of so much
glory nasty in foul weather.
My uncle Toby came down, as the reader has been
informed, with plans along with him, of almost every fortified
town in Italy and Flanders; so let the Duke of
Marlborough, or the allies, have set down before what town they
pleased, my uncle Toby was prepared for them.
His way, which was the simplest one in the world, was this:
as soon as ever a town was invested-----(but sooner when
the design was known) to take the plan of it (let it be what
town it would) and enlarge it upon a scale to the exact size
of his bowling green; upon the surface of which, by means
of a large role of packthread, and a number of small pickets
driven into the ground, at the several angles and redans, he
transferred the lines from his paper; then taking the profile
of the place, with its works, to determine the depths and
slopes of the ditches,-----the talus of the glacis, and the
precise height of the several banquettes, parapets &c.----
he set the corporal to work-----and sweetly went it on:----
When the place was finished in this manner, and put into a
proper posture of defence,--it was invested,-----and my
uncle Toby and the corporal began to run their first parallel.
-----I beg I may not be interrupted in my story, by being
told, That the first parallel should be at least three hundred
toises distant from the main body of the place,------and that I
have not left a single inch for it,-------for my uncle Toby
took the liberty of incroaching upon his kitchen garden, for
the sake of enlarging his works on the bowling green, and for
that reason generally ran his first and second parallels betwixt
two rows of his cabbages and his cauliflowers; the conveniences
and inconveniences of which will be considered at
large in the history of my uncle Toby's and the corporal's
campaigns, of which this I'm now writing is but a sketch, and
will be finished, if I conjecture right, in three pages (but there
is no guessing)-----The campaigns themselves will take up as
many books; and therefore I apprehend it would be hanging
too great a weight of one kind of matter in so flimsy a
performance as this, to rhapsodize them, as I once intended,
into the body of the work--surely they had better be
printed apart--we'll consider the affair--so take the
following sketch of them in the meantime.
When the Duke of Marlborough made a lodgment,----my
uncle Toby made a lodgment too.-----And when the face of a
bastion was battered down, or a defence ruined,-----the
To one who took pleasure in the happy state of others,---- there could not have been a greater sight in the world than, on a post morning in which a practicable breach had been made by the Duke of Marlborough in the main body of the place,-----to have stood behind the hornbeam hedge, and observed the spirit with which my uncle Toby, with Trim behind him, sallied forth;-----the one with the Gazette in his hand,-----the other with a spade on his shoulder to execute the contents.-----What an honest triumph in my uncle Toby's looks as he marched up to the ramparts! What intense pleasure swimming in his eye as he stood over the corporal, reading the paragraph ten times over to him, as he was at work, lest, peradventure, he should make the breach an inch too wide,----or leave it an inch too narrow-----But when the chamade was beat, and the corporal helped my uncle up it, and followed with the colours in his hand, to fix them upon the ramparts-----Heaven! Earth! Sea!------but what avails apostrophes?-----with all your elements, wet or dry, ye never compounded so intoxicating a draught.
In this track of happiness for many years, without one interruption to it, except now and then when the wind continued to blow due west for a week or ten days together, which detained the Flanders mail, and kept them so long in torture, -----but still 'twas the torture of the happy----In this track, I say, did my uncle Toby and Trim move for many years, every year of which, and sometimes every month, from the invention of either the one or the other of them, adding some new conceit or quirk of improvement to their operations, which always opened fresh springs of delight in carrying them on.
The first year's campaign was carried on, from beginning to end, in the plain and simple method I've related.
In the second year, in which my uncle Toby took Li@'ege and Ruremond, he thought he might afford the expense of four handsome drawbridges, of two of which I have given an exact description, in the former part of my work.
At the latter end of the same year he added a couple of gates with portcullises:-----These last were converted afterwards into orgues, as the better thing; and during the winter of the same year, my uncle Toby, instead of a new suit of clothes, which he always had at Christmas, treated himself with a handsome sentry box, to stand at the corner of the
----The sentry box was in case of rain.
All these were painted white three times over the ensuing spring, which enabled my uncle Toby to take the field with great splendour.
My father would often say to Yorick, that if any mortal in the whole universe had done such a thing, except his brother Toby, it would have been looked upon by the world as one of the most refined satires upon the parade and prancing manner in which Lewis XIV, from the beginning of the war, but particularly that very year, had taken the field--But 'tis not my brother Toby's nature, kind soul! my father would add, to insult anyone.
------But let us go on.
My uncle Toby felt the good of the project instantly, and
instantly agreed to it, but with the addition of two singular
improvements, of which he was almost as proud as if he had
been the original inventor of the project itself.
The one was to have the town built exactly in the style of
those of which it was most likely to be the representative:
----with grated windows, and the gable ends of the houses,
The other was not to have the houses run up together, as the corporal proposed, but to have every house independent, to hook on, or off, so as to form into the plan of whatever town they pleased. This was put directly into hand, and many and many a look of mutual congratulation was exchanged between my uncle Toby and the corporal, as the carpenter did the work.
-----It answered prodigiously the next summer-----the town was a perfect Proteus--It was Landen, and Trerebach, and Santvliet, and Drusen, and Hagenau,-----and then it was Ostend and Menin, and Aeth and Dendermond.
-----Surely never did any TOWN act so many parts, since Sodom and Gomorrah, as my uncle Toby's town did.
In the fourth year, my uncle Toby, thinking a town looked foolishly without a church, added a very fine one with a steeple.------Trim was for having bells in it;-----my uncle Toby said the metal had better be cast into cannon.
This led the way, the next campaign, for half a dozen brass fieldpieces,-----to be planted three and three on each side of my uncle Toby's sentry box; and in a short time, these led the way for a train of somewhat larger,-----and so on ----(as must always be the case in hobby-horsical affairs) from pieces of half-an-inch bore, till it came at last to my father's jack boots.
The next year, which was that in which Lille was besieged, and at the close of which both Ghent and Bruges fell into our hands,-----my uncle Toby was sadly put to it for proper ammunition;--I say proper ammunition----- because his great artillery would not bear powder; and 'twas well for the Shandy family they would not-----For so full were the papers, from the beginning to the end of the siege, of the incessant firings kept up by the besiegers,-----and so heated was my uncle Toby's imagination with the accounts of them, that he had infallibly shot away all his estate.
SOMETHING therefore was wanting, as a succedaneum, especially in one or two of the more violent paroxysms of the siege, to keep up something like a continual firing in the imagination,----and this something, the corporal whose principal strength lay in invention, supplied by an entire new system of battering of his own,-----without which this had been objected to by military critics, to the end of the world, as one of the great desiderata of my uncle Toby's apparatus.
This will not be explained the worse for setting off, as I
generally do, at a little distance from the subject.
A Montero cap and two Turkish tobacco pipes.
The Montero cap I shall describe by and bye.-----The
Turkish tobacco pipes had nothing particular in them;
they were fitted up and ornamented as usual, with flexible
tubes of Morocco leather and gold wire, and mounted at their
ends, the one of them with ivory,--the other with black
ebony, tipped with silver.
My father, who saw all things in lights different from the
rest of the world, would say to the corporal that he ought to
look upon these two presents more as tokens of his brother's
nicety than his affection.-----Tom did not care, Trim, he
would say, to put on the cap, or to smoke in the tobacco pipe
of a Jew.--God bless your Honour, the corporal would say
(giving a strong reason to the contrary),------how can
that be?-----
The Montero cap was scarlet, of a superfine Spanish
cloth, dyed in grain, and mounted all round with fur, except
about four inches in the front, which was faced with a light
blue, slightly embroidered,-----and seemed to have been the
property of a Portuguese quartermaster, not of foot, but of
horse, as the word denotes.
The corporal was not a little proud of it, as well for its
own sake, as the sake of the giver, so seldom or never put it
on but upon GALA days; and yet never was a Montero cap put
to so many uses; for in all controverted points, whether
military or culinary, provided the corporal was sure he was
right,-----it was either his oath,-----his wager,-----or his
gift.
-----'Twas his gift in the present case.
I'll be bound, said the corporal, speaking to himself, to
give away my Montero cap to the first beggar who comes
The completion was no further off than the very next morning; which was that of the storm of the counterscarp betwixt the Lower Deule, to the right, and the gate St. Andrew,-----on the left, between St. Magdalen's and the river.
As this was the most memorable attack in the whole war, ----the most gallant and obstinate on both sides,-----and I must add the most bloody too, for it cost the allies themselves that morning above eleven hundred men,----my uncle Toby prepared himself for it with a more than ordinary solemnity.
The eve which preceded, as my uncle Toby went to bed,
he ordered his Ramillie wig, which had laid inside out for
many years in the corner of an old campaigning trunk,
which stood by his bedside, to be taken out and laid upon
the lid of it, ready for the morning;-----and the very first
thing he did in his shirt, when he had stepped out of bed,
my uncle Toby, after he had turned the rough side
outwards,----put it on:-----This done, he proceeded next to his
breeches, and having buttoned the waistband, he forthwith
buckled on his sword belt, and had got his sword halfway
in,----when he considered he should want shaving, and that
it would be very inconvenient doing it with his sword on,
-----so took it off:-----In assaying to put on his regimental
coat and waistcoat, my uncle Toby found the same objection
in his wig,----so that went off too:----So that what with
one thing, and what with another, as always falls out when a
man is in the most haste,------'twas ten o'clock, which was
half an hour later than his usual time, before my uncle
Toby sallied out.
Let me stop and give you a picture of the corporal's
The corporal---------
-----Tread lightly on his ashes, ye men of genius,-----for he was your kinsman:
Weed his grave clean, ye men of goodness,-----for he was your brother.-----0 corporal! had I thee, but now,--now that I am able to give thee a dinner and protection,-----how would I cherish thee! thou shouldst wear thy Montero cap every hour of the day, and every day of the week,----and when it was worn out, I would purchase thee a couple like it:-----But alas! alas! alas! now that I can do this, in spite of their Reverences------the occasion is lost-----for thou art gone;------thy genius fled up to the stars from whence it came;-----and that warm heart of thine, with all its generous and open vessels, compressed into a clod of the valley!
----But what-----what is this, to that future and dreaded page, where I look towards the velvet pall, decorated with the military ensigns of thy master-----the first----the foremost of created beings;;---where I shall see thee, faithful servant! laying his sword and scabbard with a trembling hand across his coffin, and then returning pale as ashes to the door, to take his mourning horse by the bridle, to follow his hearse, as he directed thee;-----where------all my father's systems shall be baffled by his sorrows; and, in spite of his philosophy, I shall behold him, as he inspects the lacquered plate, twice taking his spectacles from off his nose, to wipe away the dew which Nature has shed upon them-----When I see him cast in the rosemary with an air of disconsolation, which cries through my ears,----O Toby! in what corner of the world shall I seek thy fallow?
------Gracious powers! which erst have opened the lips of the dumb in his distress, and made the tongue of the stammerer speak plain-----when I shall arrive at this dreaded page, deal not with me, then, with a stinted hand.
Upon turning it this way, and that, a little in his mind, he soon began to find out that by means of his two Turkish tobacco pipes, with the supplement of three smaller tubes of wash leather at each of their lower ends, to be tagged by the same number of tin pipes fitted to the touch holes, and sealed with clay next the cannon, and then tied hermetically with waxed silk at their several insertions into the Morocco tube,-----he should be able to fire the six fieldpieces all together, and with the same ease as to fire one.------
------Let no man say from what tags and jags hints may not be cut out for the advancement of human knowledge. Let no man who has read my father's first and second beds of justice ever rise up and say again from collision of what kinds of bodies, light may, or may not, be struck out, to carry the arts and sciences up to perfection.-----Heaven! thou knowest how I love them;-----thou knowest the secrets of my heart, and that I would this moment give my shirt-----Thou art a foal, Shandy, says Eugenius,----for thou hast but a dozen in the world,-----and 'twill break thy set.----
No matter for that, Eugenius; I would give the shirt off my back to be burnt into tinder, were it only to satisfy one feverish enquirer how many sparks at one good stroke a good flint and steel could strike into the tail of it.----Think ye not that in striking these in,-----he might, peradventure, strike something out? as sure as a gun.-----
----But this project by the bye.
The corporal sat up the best part of the night in bringing
his to perfection; and having made a sufficient proof of his
cannon, with charging them to the top with tobacco,-----he
went with contentment to bed.
In the rear, and facing this opening, with his back to the
door of the sentry box, for fear of being flanked, had the
corporal wisely taken his post:-----He held the ivory pipe,
appertaining to the battery on the right, betwixt the finger
and thumb of his right hand,-----and the ebony pipe tipped
with silver, which appertained to the battery on the left,
betwixt the finger and thumb of the other----and with his
right knee fixed firm upon the ground, as if in the front
rank of his platoon, was the corporal, with his Montero cap
upon his head, furiously playing off his two cross
batteries at the same time against the counterguard, which
faced the counterscarp, where the attack was to be made
that morning. His first intention, as I said, was no more
than giving the enemy a single puff or two;------but the
pleasure of the puffs, as well as the puffing, had insensibly
got hold of the corporal, and drawn him on from puff to
puff, into the very height of the attack, by the time my uncle
Toby joined him.
'Twas well for my father that my uncle Toby had not his
will to make that day.
In less than two minutes my uncle Toby took the pipe from the corporal again, and raised it halfway to his mouth ----then hastily gave it back a second time.
The corporal redoubled the attack;-----my uncle Toby smiled,-----then looked grave,------then smiled for a moment, -----then looked serious for a long time;-----Give me hold of the ivory pipe, Trim, said my uncle Toby-----my uncle Toby put it to his lips,----drew it back directly,-----gave a peep over the hornbeam hedge;------never did my uncle Toby's mouth water so much for a pipe in his life.-----My uncle Toby retired into the sentry box with the pipe in his hand.--------
----Dear uncle Toby! don't go into the sentry box with the pipe;--there's no trusting a man's self with such a thing in such a corner.
Vain science! thou assists us in no case of this kind----
and thou puzzlest us in every one.
There was, Madam, in my uncle Toby a singleness of heart which misled him so far out of the little serpentine tracks in which things of this nature usually go on; you can--you can have no conception of it: with this there was a plainness and simplicity of thinking, with such an unmistrusting ignorance of the plies and foldings of the heart of woman; ----and so naked and defenceless did he stand before you (when a siege was out of his head) that you might have stood behind any one of your serpentine walks, and shot my uncle Toby ten times in a day, through his liver, if nine times in a day, Madam, had not served your purpose.
With all this, Madam,-----and what confounded everything
as much on the other hand, my uncle Toby had that,
unparalleled modesty of nature I once told you of, and
which, by the bye, stood eternal sentry upon his feelings,
that you might as soon-----But where am I going? these
reflections crowd in upon me ten pages at least too soon, and
take up that time which I ought to bestow upon facts.
There was the great king Aldrovandus, and Bosphorus, and
Capadocius, and Dardanus, and Pontus, and Asius,-----to
say nothing of the ironhearted Charles the XIIth, whom the
Countess of K* * * * * herself could make nothing of.-----
There was Babylonicus, and Mediterraneus, and Polixenes,
and Persicus, and Prusicus, not one of whom (except
Capadocius and Pontus, who were both a little suspected)
ever once bowed down his breast to the goddess-----The
truth is, they had all of them something else to do----and
so had my uncle Toby-----till Fate--til Fate, I say, envying
------Believe me, Sirs, 'twas the worst deed she did
that year.
My father, who was a great MOTIVE-MONGER, and
consequently a very dangerous person for a man to sit by, either
laughing or crying,-----for he generally knew your motive
for doing both much better than you knew it yourself-----
would always console my uncle Toby upon these occasions,
in a way which showed plainly he imagined my uncle Toby
grieved for nothing in the whole affair, so much as the
loss of his hobby-horse.-----Never mind, brother Toby, he
would say,-----by God's blessing we shall have another war
break out again some of these days; and when it does,-----
the belligerent powers, if they would hang themselves, cannot
keep us out of play.-----I defy 'em, my dear Toby, he
would add, to take countries without taking towns,--or
towns without sieges.
My uncle Toby never took this back stroke of my father's
at his hobby-horse kindly.----He thought the stroke
ungenerous; and the more so, because in striking the horse, he
hit the rider too, and in the most dishonourable part a blow
could fall; so that upon these occasions, he always laid
down his pipe upon the table with more fire to defend
himself than common.
I told the reader, this time two years, that my uncle
Toby was not eloquent; and in the very same page gave an
My father was so highly pleased with one of these apologetical orations of my uncle Toby's, which he had delivered one evening before him and Yorick, that he wrote it down before he went to bed.
I have had the good fortune to meet with it amongst my father's papers, with here and there an insertion of his own, betwixt two crooks, thus [ ], and is endorsed, My brother TOBY's justification of his own principles and
conduct in wishing to continue the war.
I may safely say, I have read over this apologetical oration
of my uncle Toby's a hundred times, and think it so fine a
model of defence,---and shows so sweet a temperament
of gallantry and good principles in him, that I give it the
world, word for word (interlineations and all), as I find it.
My uncle TOBY's apologetical oration
I am not insensible, brother Shandy, that when a man whose
profession is arms wishes, as I have done, for war,-----it
has an ill aspect to the world;-----and that, how just and
right soever his motives and intentions may be,-----he stands
in an uneasy posture in vindicating himself from private
views in doing it.
For this cause, if a soldier is a prudent man, which he
may be without being a jot the less brave, he will be sure
not to utter his wish in the hearing of an enemy; for say
what he will, an enemy will not believe him.----He will
Tell me then, my dear brother Shandy, upon which of them it is, that when I condemned the peace of Utrecht, and grieved the war was not carried on with vigour a little longer, you should think your brother did it upon unworthy views; or that in wishing for war, he should be bad enough to wish more of his fellow creatures slain,----more slaves made, and more families driven from their peaceful habitations, merely for his own pleasure:-----Tell me, brother Shandy, upon what one deed of mine do you ground it? [The devil a deed do I know of, dear Toby, but one for a hundred pounds, which I lent thee to carry on these cursed sieges.]
If, when I was a schoolboy, I could not hear a drum beat, but my heart beat with it--was it my fault?-----Did I plant the propensity there?------did I sound the alarm within, or Nature?
When Guy, Earl of Warwick, and Parismus and Parismenus, and Valentine and Orson, and the Seven Champions of England were handed around the school,-----were they not all purchased with my own pocket money? Was that selfish, brother Shandy? When we read over the siege of Troy, which lasted ten years and eight months,-----though with such a train of artillery as we had at Namur, the town might have been carried in a week-----was I not as much concerned for the destruction of the Greeks and Trojans as any boy of the whole school? Had I not three strokes of a ferula given me, two on my right hand and one on my left, for
-----Did that bespeak me cruel? Or because, brother Shandy, my blood flew out into the camp, and my heart panted for war,-----was it a proof it could not ache for the distresses of war too?
O brother! 'tis one thing for a soldier to gather laurels, -----and 'tis another to scatter cypress.-----[Who told thee, my dear Toby, that cypress was used by the ancients on mournful occasions?]
----'Tis one thing, brother Shandy, for a soldier to hazard his own life----to leap first down into the trench, where he is sure to be cut in pieces:-----'Tis one thing, from public spirit and a thirst of glory, to enter the breach the first man,-----to stand in the foremost rank, and march bravely on with drums and trumpets, and colours flying about his ears:----'Tis one thing, I say, brother Shandy, to do this -----and 'tis another thing to reflect on the miseries of war;-----to view the desolations of whole countries, and consider the intolerable fatigues and hardships which the soldier himself, the instrument who works them, is forced (for sixpence a day, if he can get it) to undergo.
Need I be told, dear Yorick, as I was by you, in Le Fever's funeral sermon, That so soft and gentle a creature, born to love, to mercy, and kindness, as man is, was not shaped for this?----But why did you not add, Yorick,----if not war? what is it, Yorick, when fought as ours has been, upon principles of liberty, and upon principles of honour---- what is it, but the getting together of quiet and harmless people, with their swords in their hands, to keep the ambitious and the turbulent within bounds? And heaven is my witness, brother Shandy, that the pleasure I have taken in these things,----and that infinite delight, in particular, which within me, and I hope in the corporal too, from the consciousness we both had that in carrying them on, we were answering the great ends of our creation.
I told him, Sir-----for in good truth, when a man is telling a story in the strange way I do mine, he is obliged continually to be going backwards and forwards to keep all tight together in the reader's fancy----which, for my own part, if I did not take heed to do more than at first, there is so much unfixed and equivocal matter starting up, with so many breaks and gaps in it,-----and so little service do the stars afford which, nevertheless, I hang up in some of the darkest passages, knowing that the world is apt to lose its way, with all the lights the sun itself at noonday can give it-----and now, you see, I am lost myself!--------
----But 'tis my father's fault; and whenever my brains come to be dissected, you will perceive, without spectacles, that he has left a large uneven thread, as you sometimes see in an unsalable piece of cambric, running along the whole length of the web, and so untowardly you cannot so much as cut out a * * (here I hang up a couple of lights again), ------or a fillet, or a thumbstall, but it is seen or felt.-------
Quanto id diligentius in liberis procreandis cavendum, sayeth Cardan. All which being considered, and that you see 'tis morally impracticable for me to wind this round to where I set out--------
I begin the chapter over again.
There is an indignant way in which a man sometimes dismounts his horse, which as good as says to him, ``I'll go afoot, Sir, all the days of my life, before I would ride a single mile upon your back again.'' Now my uncle Toby could not be said to dismount his horse in this manner; for in strictness of language, he could not be said to dismount his horse at all-----his horse rather flung him-----and somewhat viciously, which made my uncle Toby take it ten times more unkindly. Let this matter be settled by state jockeys as they like.-----It created, I say, a sort of shyness betwixt my uncle Toby and his hobby-horse.-----He had no occasion for him from the month of March to November, which was the summer after the articles were signed, except it was now and then to take a short ride out, just to see that the fortifications and harbour of Dunkirk were demolished, according to stipulation. about that affair, and Monsieur Tugghe, the deputy from the magistrates of Dunkirk, presented so many affecting petitions to the queen,-----beseeching her Majesty to cause only her thunderbolts to fall upon the martial works, which might have incurred her displeasure,-----but to spare----to spare the mole, for the mole's sake; which, in its naked situation, could be no more than an object of pity-----and the queen (who was but a woman) being of a pitiful disposition,-----and her ministers also, they not wishing in their hearts to have the town dismantled, for these private reasons,* * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *-----
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *; so that the whole went heavily on with my uncle Toby; insomuch, that it was not within three full months after he and the corporal had constructed the town, and put it in a condition to be destroyed, that the several commandants, commissaries, deputies, negotiators, and intendants would permit him to set about it.-----Fatal interval of inactivity!
The corporal was for beginning the demolition, by making a breach in the ramparts, or main fortifications of the town -----No,------that will never do, corporal, said my uncle
-----Softer visions,----gentler vibrations stole sweetly in
upon his slumbers;----the trumpet of war fell out of his
hands,-----he took up the lute, sweet instrument! of all others
the most delicate! the most difficult!-----how wilt thou
touch it, my dear uncle Toby?
----Or by a more critical equation, and supposing the
whole of love to be as ten-----to determine, with Ficinus,
``How many parts of it----the one,-----and how many the
other,-''--or whether it is all of it one great devil, from head
to tail, as Plato has taken upon him to pronounce;
concerning which conceit of his, I shall not offer my opinion:
----but my opinion of Plato is this: that he appears, from
this instance, to have been a man of much the same temper
and way of reasoning with Dr. Baynyard, who, being a great
enemy to blisters, as imagining that half a dozen of 'em on at
once would draw a man as surely to his grave as a hearse and
six-----rashly concluded that the devil himself was nothing
I have nothing to say to people who allow themselves this monstrous liberty in arguing, but what Nazianzen cried out (that is, polemically) to Philagrius-----
``<9@^'Eug@.e!>9'' O rare! 'tis fine reasoning, Sir, indeed!---- <9@;oti>9 <9filosofe@^i@ts @'en P@'ahes@'i''----->9and most nobly do you aim at truth, when you philosophize about it in your moods and passions.
Nor is it to be imagined, for the same reason, I should stop to enquire whether love is a disease,-----or embroil myself with Rhasis and Dioscorides, whether the seat of it is in the brain or liver;------because this would lead me on to an examination of the two very opposite manners in which patients have been treated-----the one, of Aetius, who always begun with a cooling clyster of hempseed and bruised cucumbers;-----and followed on with thin potations of water lilies and purslane--to which he added a pinch of snuff of the herb Hanea,------and where Aetius durst venture it,----- his topaz ring.
-----The other, that of Gordonius, who (in his cap. 15 de Amore) directs they should be thrashed,``ad putorem usque,'' ----till they stink again.
These are disquisitions which my father, who had laid in a great stock of knowledge of this kind, will be very busy with, in the progress of my uncle Toby's affairs: I must anticipate thus much, That from his theories of love (with which, by the way, he contrived to crucify my uncle Toby's mind, almost as much as his amours themselves),-----he took a single step into practice;-----and by means of a camphorated cerecloth, which he found means to impose upon the tailor for buckram, whilst he was making my uncle Toby a new pair of breeches, he produced Gordonius's effect upon my uncle Toby without the disgrace.
What changes this produced will be read in its proper place: all that is needful to be added to the anecdote is this, -----That whatever effect it had upon my uncle Toby,----it had a vile effect upon the house;--and if my uncle Toby had not smoked it down as he did, it might have had a vile effect upon my father too.
At present, I hope I shall be sufficiently understood, in telling the reader, my uncle Toby fell in love.:
----Not that the phrase is at all to my liking: for to say a man is fallen in love,-----or that he is deeply in love,----- or up to the ears in love,----and sometimes even over head and ears in it,-----carries an idiomatical kind of implication that love is a thing below a man:----this is recurring again to Plato's opinion, which, with all his divinityship,----I hold to be damnable and heretical;----and so much for that.
Let love therefore be what it will,----my uncle Toby fell into it.
----And possibly, gentle reader, with such a temptation ----so wouldst thou: For never did thy eyes behold, or thy concupiscence covet, anything in this world more concupiscible than widow Wadman.
-----Then, dear Sir, how could my uncle Toby resist it?
Thrice happy book! thou wilt have one page, at least, within
thy covers, which MALICE will not blacken, and which
IGNORANCE cannot misrepresent.
I have an article of news to tell you, Mr. Shandy, quoth my
Now my father was then holding one of his second beds of justice, and was musing within himself about the hardships of matrimony, as my mother broke silence.-----
`'-----My brother Toby, quoth she, is going to be married to Mrs. Wadman.''
-----Then he will never, quoth my father, be able to lie diagonally in his bed again as long as he lives.
It was a consuming vexation to my father that my mother never asked the meaning of a thing she did not understand.
-----That she is not a woman of science, my father would say-----is her misfortune--but she might ask a question.------
My mother never did.-----In short, she went out of the world at last without knowing whether it turned round, or stood still.------My father had officiously told her above a thousand times which way it was,----but she always forgot.
For these reasons a discourse seldom went on much further betwixt them than a proposition,------a reply, and a rejoinder; at the end of which, it generally took breath for a few minutes (as in the affair of the breeches), and then went on again.
If he marries, 'twill be the worse for us,--quoth my mother.
Not a cherry stone, said my father;-----he may as well batter away his means upon that, as anything else.
----To be sure, said my mother: so here ended the proposition,-----the reply,-----and the rejoinder I told you of.
lt will be some amusement to him too,-----said my father.
A very great one, answered my mother, if he should have children.----
-----Lord have mercy upon me,-----said my father to
himself * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * *
I am now beginning to get fairly into my work; and by the
help of a vegetable diet, with a few of the cold seeds, I
make no doubt but I shall be able to go on with my uncle
t ''
P
These were the four lines I moved in through my 6rst, second, third, and fourth volumes.----In the fifth volume I have been very good;-----the Precise line I have described in it being this.:
~ B f F CCF By which it appears, that except at the curve marked A, where I took a trip to Navarre,-----and the indented curve B, which is the short airing when I was there with the Lady Baussiere and her page,-----I have not taken the least frisk of a digression, till John de la Casse's devils led me the round you see marked D-----for as for c c c c c, they are nothing but parentheses, and the common ins and outs incident to the lives of the greatest ministers of state; and when compared with what men have done,-----or with my own transgressions at the letters A B D----they vanish into nothing.
In this last volume I have done better still----for from
If I mend at this rate, it is not impossible-----by the good leave of his Grace of Benevento's devils----but I may arrive hereafter at the excellency of going on even thus: ------------------------ which is a line drawn as straight as I could draw it, by a writing master's ruler (borrowed for that purpose), turning neither to the right hand or to the left.
This right line,-----the pathway for Christians to walk in! Say divines-----
-----The emblem of moral rectitude! says Cicero-----
----The best line! say cabbage planters-----is the shortest line, says Archimedes, which can be drawn from one given point to another.-----
I wish your Ladyships would lay this matter to heart in your next birthday suits!
----What a journey!
Pray can you tell me,------that is, without anger, before I write my chapter upon straight lines-----by what mistake -----who told them so------or how it has come to pass, that your men of wit and genius have all along confounded this line with the line of GRAVITATION?
Non enim excursus hic ejus, sed opus ipsum est.
PLIN. Lib. quintus Epistola sexta
& I --I think I said I would write two volumes every year, provided the vile cough which then tormented me, and which to this hour I dread worse than the devil, would but give me leave-----and in another place-----(but where, I can't recollect now) speaking of my book as a machine, and laying my pen and ruler down crosswise upon the table, in order to gain the greater credit to it-----I swore it should be kept a-going at that rate these forty years if it pleased but the fountain of life to bless me so long with health and good spirits.
Now as for my spirits, little have I to lay to their charge ------nay, so very little (unless the mounting me upon a long stick, and playing the fool with me nineteen hours out of the twenty-four, be accusations) that on the contrary, I have much------much to thank 'em for: cheerily have ye made me tread the path of life with all the burdens of it (except its cares) upon my back; in no one moment of my existence, that I remember, have ye once deserted me or tinged the objects which came in my way either with sable, or with a sickly green; in dangers ye gilded my horizon with hope, and when DEATH himself knocked at my door-----ye bade him come again; and in so gay a tone of careless indifference did ye do it, that he doubted of his commission-----
``-----There must certainly be some mistake in this matter,'' quoth he.
Now there is nothing in this world I abominate worse than to be interrupted in a story-----and I was that moment telling Eugenius a most tawdry one, in my way, of a nun who fancied herself a shellfish, and of a monk damned for eating a mussel, and was showing him the grounds and justice of the procedure-----
'`-----Did ever so grave a personage get into so vile a scrape?'' quoth Death. Thou hast had a narrow escape, Tristram, said Eugenius, taking hold of my hand as I finished my story-----
But there is no living, Eugenius, replied I, at this rate; for as this son of a whore has found out my lodgings-----
-----You call him rightly, said Eugenius,-----for by sin, we are told, he entered the world----I care not which way he entered, quoth I, provided he be not in such a hurry to take me out with him-----for I have forty volumes to write, and forty thousand things to say and do which nobody in the world will sey and do for me, except thyself; and as thou seest he has got me by the throat (for Eugenius could scarce hear me speak across the table) and that I am no match for him in the open field, had I not better, whilst these few scattered spirits remain, and these two spider legs of mine (holding one of them up to him) are able to support me----had I not better, Eugenius, fly for my life? 'tis my advice, my dear Tristram, said Eugenius----then by heaven! I will lead him a dance he little thinks of----for I will gallop, quoth I, without looking once behind me, to the banks of the Garonne; and if I hear him clattering at my heels-----I'll scamper away to Mount Vesuvius-----from thence to Joppa, and from Joppa to the world's end, where, if he follows me, I pray God he may break his neck-----
-----He runs more risk there, said Eugenius, than thou.
Eugenius's wit and affection brought blood into the cheek
from whence it had been some months banished-----'twas a
vile moment to bid adieu in; he led me to my chaise-----Al-
lons! said I; the postboy gave a crack with his whip-----off I
went like a cannon, and in half a dozen bounds got into Dover.
------But mine, indeed, is a particular case---
So without arguing the matter further with Thomas o' Becket, or anyone else-----I skipped into the boat, and in five minutes we got under sail and scudded away like the wind.
Pray, captain, quoth I, as I was going down into the cabin, is a man never overtaken by Death in this passage?
Why, there is not time for a man to be sick in it, replied he----What a cursed liar! for I am sick as a horse, quoth I, already-----what a brain!-----upside down!-----heyday! the cells are broke loose one into another, and the blood, and the lymph, and the nervous juices, with the fixed and volatile salts, are all jumbled into one mass----good G--! everything turns round in it like a thousand whirlpools--I'd give a shilling to know if I shan't write the clearer for lt------
Sick! sick! sick! sick!-----
-----When shall we get to land, captain?-----they have hearts like stones-----O I am deadly sick!-----reach me that thing, boy-----'tis the most discomfiting sickness---I wish I was at the bottom--Madam! how is it with you? Undone! undone! un---- O! undone! sir-----What, the first time?----No, 'tis the second, third sixth, tenth time, sir,------ heyday-----what a trampling overhead!-----hollo! cabin boyl what's the matter-----
The wind chopped about! s'Death!-----then I shall meet him full in the face.
What luck!----'tis chopped about again, Master----0 the devil chop it-----
Captain, quoth she, for heaven's sake, let us get ashore.
First, the road by Lille and Arras, which is the most
about-----but most interesting, and instructing.
The second that by Amiens which you may go if you would see Chantilly----
And that by Beauvais which you may go if you will.
For this reason a great many choose to go by Beauvais.
For my own part, as heaven is my judge, and to which I
shall ever make my last appeal-----I know no more of Calais
(except the little my barber told me of it, as he was whetting
his razor) than I do this moment of Grand Cairo; for it was
dusky in the evening when I landed, and dark as pitch in the
morning when I set out, and yet by merely knowing what is
what, and by drawing this from that in one part of the
town, and by spelling and putting this and that together in
another-----I would lay any travelling odds that I this
moment write a chapter upon Calais as long as my arm; and
with so distinct and satisfactory a detail of every item which
is worth a stranger's curiosity in the town---that you
would take me for the town clerk of Calais itself----and
where, sir, would be the wonder? was not Democritus, who
laughed ten times more than I,-----town clerk of Abdera?
and was not (I forget his name), who had more discretion
than us both, town clerk of Ephesus?----it should be penned
------Nay-----if you don't believe me, you may read the
chapter for your pains.
This town, if we may trust its archives, the authority of
which I see no reason to call in question in this place--
was once no more than a small village belonging to one of
the first Counts de Guines; and as it boasts at present of
no less than fourteen thousand inhabitants, exclusive of four
hundred and twenty distinct families in the basse ville, or
suburbs----it must have grown up by little and little, I
suppose, to its present size.
Though there are four convents, there is but one parochial
church in the whole town; I had not an opportunity of
taking its exact dimensions, but it is pretty easy to make a
tolerable conjecture of 'em-----for as there are fourteen
thousand inhabitants in the town, if the church holds
them all, it must be considerably large------and if it will not
----'tis a very great pity they have not another------it is
built in form of a cross, and dedicated to the Virgin Mary;
the steeple, which has a spire to it, is placed in the middle
of the church, and stands upon four pillars elegant and
light enough, but sufficiently strong at the same time----
it is decorated with eleven altars, most of which are rather
fine than beautiful. The great altar is a masterpiece in its
kind; 'tis of white marble, and as I was told near sixty feet
high------had it been much higher, it had been as high as
Mount Calvary itself------therefore, I suppose it must be
high enough in all conscience.
There was nothing struck me more than the great Square;
though I cannot say 'tis either well paved or well built;
but 'tis in the heart of the town, and most of the streets,
especially those in that quarter, all terminate in it; could
there have been a fountain in all Calais, which it seems there
cannot, as such an object would have been a great
ornament, it is not to be doubted but that the inhabitants would
have had it in the very centre of this square,--not that it
is properly a square,----because 'tis forty feet longer from
The townhouse seems to be but a sorry building, and not to be kept in the best repair; otherwise it had been a second great ornament to this place; it answers however its destination, and serves very well for the reception of the magistrates, who assemble in it from time to time; so that 'tis presumable, justice is regularly distributed.
I have heard much of it, but there is nothing at all curious in the Courgain: 'tis a distinct quarter of the town inhabited solely by sailors and fishermen; it consists of a number of small streets, neatly built and mostly of brick; 'tis extremely populous, but as that may be accounted for from the principles of their diet,-----there is nothing curious in that neither.-----A traveller may see it to satisfy himself-----he must not omit however taking notice of La Tour de Guet, upon any account; 'tis so called from its particular destination, because in war it serves to discover and give notice of the enemies which approach the place, either by sea or land; ------but 'tis monstrous high, and catches the eye so continually, you cannot avoid taking notice of it, if you would.
It was a singular disappointment to me that I could not have permission to take an exact survey of the fortifications, which are the strongest in the world, and which, from first to last, that is, from the time they were set about by Philip of France, Count of Bologne, to the present war, wherein many reparations were made, have cost (as I learned afterwards from an engineer in Gascony)----above a hundred millions of livres. It is very remarkable that at the T@^ete de Graveienes, and where the town is naturally the weakest, they have expended the most money; so that the outworks stretch a great way into the champaign, and consequently occupy a large tract of ground.----However, after all that is said and done, it must be acknowledged that Calais was never upon any account so considerable from itself, as from its situation, and that easy entrance which it gave our ancestors upon all occasions into France: it was not without its inconveniences also; being no less troublesome to the English, in those times, than Dunkirk has been to us, in ours; so that it was deservedly looked upon as the key to both kingdoms, which no doubt is the reason that there have arisen so many contentions who should keep it: of
these, the siege of Calais, or rather the blockade (for it was
shut up both by land and sea), was the most memorable,
-----So put on, my brave boy! and make the best of thy way to Boulogne.
Ah! ma chere fille! said I, as she tripped by, from her
----Now, in troth, 'tis a great pity, quoth mine Irish host, that all this good courtship should be lost; for the young gentlewoman has been after going out of hearing of it all along----.
-----Simpleton! quoth I.
-----So you have nothing else in Boulogne worth seeing?
----By Jasus! there is the finest SEMINARY for the HUMANITIES-----.
----There cannot be a finer, quoth I.
As I never give general characters either of men or things
in choler, ``the most haste, the worst speed'' was all the
reflection I made upon the affair, the first time it happened;
-----the second, third, fourth, and fifth time, I confined it
respectively to those times, and accordingly blamed only the
second, third, fourth, and fifth postboy for it, without carrying
my reflections further; but the event continuing to befall
me from the fifth, to the sixth, seventh, eighth, ninth, and
That something is always wrong in a French post chaise upon first setting out.
Or the proposition may stand thus:
A French postillion has always to alight before he has got three hundred yards out of town.
What's wrong now?-----Diable!--a rope's broke!----a knot has slipt!-----a staple's drawn!--a bolt's to whittle! -----a tag, a rag, a jag, a strap, a buckle, or a buckle's tongue want altering.-----
Now true as all this is, I never think myself impowered to excommunicate thereupon either the post chaise or its driver-----nor do I take it into my head to swear by the living G--, I would rather go a foot ten thousand times---- or that I will be damned if ever I get into another-----but I take the matter coolly before me, and consider that some tag, or rag, or jag, or bolt, or buckle, or buckle's tongue will ever be a-wanting, or want altering, travel where I will-----so I never chaff, but take the good and the bad as they fall in my road, and get on:-----Do so, my lad! said I; he had lost five minutes already, in alighting in order to get at a luncheon of black bread which he had crammed into the chaise pocket, and was remounted and going leisurely on, to relish it the better-----Get on, my lad, said I, briskly -----but in the most persuasive tone imaginable, for I jingled a four-and-twenty sous piece against the glass, taking care to hold the flat side towards him, as he looked back: the dog grinned intelligence from his right ear to his left, and behind his sooty muzzle discovered such a pearly row of teeth that Sovereignty would have pawned her jewels for them.-----
What masticators!----- Just heaven! ~
at bread!
and so, as he finished the last mouthful of it, we entered
the town of Montreuil.
There is one thing however in it at present very handsome; and that is the innkeeper's daughter: She has been eighteen months at Amiens, and six at Paris, in going through her classes; so knits, and sews, and dances, and does the little coquetries very well.-----
----A slut! in running them over within these five minutes that I have stood looking at her, she has let fall at least a dozen loops in a white thread stocking-----Yes, yes-----I see, you cunning gipsy!-----'tis long, and taper----you need not pin it to your knee-----and that 'tis your own-----and fits you exactly.-----
-----That Nature should have told this creature a word about a statue's thumb!-----
----But as this sample is worth all their thumbs----besides I have her thumbs and fingers in at the bargain if they can be any guide to me,-----and as Janatone withal (for that is her name) stands so well for a drawing-----may I never draw more, or rather may I draw like a draught horse, by main strength all the days of my life,------if I do not draw her in all her proportions, and with as determined a pencil as if I had her in the wettest drapery.----
----But your Worships choose rather that I give you the length, breadth, and perpendicular height of the great parish church, or a drawing of the fa@,cade of the abbey of St. Austreberte, which has been transported from Artois hither-----everything is just I suppose as the masons and carpenters left them,----and if the belief in Christ continues so long, will be so these fifty years to come-----so your Worships and Reverences may all measure them at your leisures-----but he who measures thee, Janatone, must do it now------thou carriest the principles of change within thy frame; and considering the chances of a transitory life, I would not answer for thee a moment; e'er twice twelve months are passed and gone, thou mayest grow out like a pumpkin, and lose thy shapes----or, thou mayest go off like a flower, and lose thy beauty----nay, thou mayest go off like a hussy-----and lose thyself.----I would not answer for my aunt Dinah, was she alive-----faith, scarce for her picture----were it but painted by Reynolds-----
-----But if I go on with my drawing, after naming that son of Apollo, I'll be shot-----
So you must e'en be content with the original; which, if the evening is fine in passing through Montreuil, you will see at your chaise door, as you change horses: but unless you have as bad a reason for haste as I have-----you had
-----L-----help me! I could not count a single point: so
had been piqued, and repiqued and capotted to the devil.
* Vid. Book of French post roads, page 36, edition of 1762.
Let the horses be in the chaise exactly by four in the
morning--Yes, by four, Sir,----or by Genevieve! I'll raise
a clatter in the house shall wake the dead.
Now, I (being very thin) think differently; and that so
much of motion is so much of life, and so much of joy----
and that to stand still, or get on but slowly, is death and
the devil-----
Hollo! Ho!------the whole world's asleep!--bring out the
horses-----grease the wheels-----tie on the mail-----and
drive a nail into that moulding----I'll not lose a moment-----
Now the wheel we are talking of, and whereinto (but not
whereunto, for that would make an Ixion's wheel of it) he
curseth his enemies according to the bishop's habit of body,
should certainly be a postchaise wheel, whether they were
set up in Palestine at that time or not-----and my wheel,
I love the Pythagoreans (much more than ever I dare tell my dear Jenny) for their ``<9xwrism@`onc @'ap@`o to@^u S@'wmato@ts, e@.i@ts t@`o>9 <9kal@^w@ts filosofe@^in'' -------->9their ``getting out of the body, in order to think well.'' No man thinks right whilst he is in it; blinded as he must be with his congenial humours, and drawn differently aside, as the bishop and myself have been, with too lax or too tense a fibre------REASON is, half of it, SENSE; and the measure of heaven itself is but the measure of our present appetites and concoctions-----
-----But which of the two, in the present case, do you think to be mostly in the wrong?
You, certainly, quoth she, to disturb a whole family so
early.
-----But she did not know I was under a vow not to
shave my beard till I got to Paris;------yet I hate to make
mysteries of nothing;----'tis the cold cautiousness of one
of those little souls from which Lessius (lib. 13, de moribus
divinis, cap. 24) hath made his estimate, wherein he setteth
forth, That one Dutch mile, cubically multiplied, will al low
room enouugh, and to spare, for eight hundred thousand
millions, which he supposes to be as great a number of
souls (counting from the fall of Adam) as can possibly
be damned to the end of the world.
From what he has made this second estimate--unless
from the parental goodness of God-----I don't know--I
am much more at a loss what could be in Franciscus
Libbera's head, who pretends that no less a space than one of
two hundred Italian miles, multiplied into itself, will be
sufficient to hold the like number----he certainly must
have gone upon some of the old Roman souls of which he
had read, without reflecting how much, by a gradual and
most tabid decline, in a course of eighteen hundred years,
they must unavoidably have shrunk, so as to have come,
when he wrote, almost to nothing.
In Lessius's time, who seems the cooler man, they were as little as can be imagined-----
-----We find them less now----
And next winter we shall find them less again; so that if we go on from little to less, and from less to nothing, I hesitate not one moment to affirm that in half a century, at this rate, we shall have no souls at all; which being the period beyond which I doubt likewise of the existence of the Chrlstian faith, 'twill be one advantage that both of 'em will be exactly worn out together.
Blessed Jupiter! and blessed every other heathen god and
goddess! for now ye will all come into play again, and with
Priapus at your tails-----what jovial times!-----but where am
I? and into what a delicious riot of things am I rushing? I
-----I who must be cut short in the midst of my days, and
taste no more of 'em than what I borrow from my
imagination------peace to thee, generous fool! and let me go on.
And so making all possible speed, from
Ailly au Clochers, I got to Hixcourt,
from Hixcourt, I got to Pequignay, and
from Pequignay, I got to AMIENS,
concerning which town I have nothing to inform you but
what I have informed you once before-----and that was-----
that Janatone went there to school.
That be you in never so kindly a propensity to sleep------ though you are passing perhaps through the finest country -----upon the best roads-----and in the easiest carriage for doing it in the world----nay, was you sure you could sleep fifty miles straight forwards, without once opening your eyes-----nay, what is more, was you as demonstratively satisfied as you can be of any truth in Euclid that you should upon all accounts be full as well asleep as awake----- nay, perhaps better-----Yet the incessant returns of paying for the horses at every stage,-----with the necessity thereupon of putting your hand into your pocket, and counting out from thence three livres fifteen sous (sous by sous), puts an end to so much of the project, that you cannot execute above six miles of it (or supposing it is a post and a half, that is but nine)-----were it to save your soul from destruction.
-----I'll be even with 'em, quoth I, for I'll put the precise sum into a piece of paper, and hold it ready in my hand all the way: ``Now I shall have nothing to do,'' said I (composing myself to rest), ``but to drop this gently into the postboy's hat, and not say a word.''-----Then there wants two sous more to drink-----or there is a twelve-sous piece of Louis XIV which will not pass-----or livre and some odd liards to be brought over from the last stage, which Monsieur had forgot; which altercations ( as a man cannot dispute very well asleep) rouse him: still is sweet sleep retrievable; and still might the flesh weigh down the spirit, and recover itself of these blows-----but then, by heaven! you have paid but for a single post-----whereas 'tis a post and a half; and this obliges you to pull out your book of post roads, the print of which is so very small, lt forces you to open your eyes, whether you will or no: then Monsieur le Cur@'e offers you a pinch of snuff------or a poor soldier shows you his
It was entirely owing to one of these misfortunes, or I had passed clean by the stables of Chantilly-----
-----But the postillion first affirming, and then persisting in it to my face, that there was no mark upon the two-sous piece, I opened my eyes to be convinced-----and seeing the mark upon it, as plain as my nose----I leaped out of the chaise in a passion, and so saw everything at Chantilly in spite.-----I tried it but for three posts and a half, but believe 'tis the best principle in the world to travel speedily upon; for as few objects look very inviting in that mood----you have little or nothing to stop you; by which means it was that I passed through St. Dennis, without turning my head so much as on side towards the abbey-----
-----Richness of their treasury! stuff and nonsense!----
bating their jewels, which are all false, I would not give three
sous for any one thing in it, but Jaidas's lantern-----nor for
that either, only as it grows dark, it might be of use.
The first, the finest, the most brilliant------
-----The streets however are nasty;
But it looks, I suppose, better than it smells------crack,
crack-----crack, crack-----What a fuss thou makest!--
as if it concerned the good people to be informed, That a
man with pale face, and clad in black, had the honour to
be driven into Paris at nine o'clock at night, by a postillion
in a tawny yellow jerkin turned up with red calamanco------
crack, crack-----crack, crack-----crack, crack-----I wish thy
whip-----
-----But 'tis the spirit of thy nation; so crack-----crack on.
Ha!----and no one gives the wall!----but in the SCHOOL of URBANITY herself, if the walls are besh-t----how can you do otherwise?
And prithee when do they light the lamps? What?----- never in the summer months!----Ho! 'tis the time of salads. ----O rare! salad and soup-----soup and salad--salad and soup, encore-----
-----'Tis too much for slimers.
Now I cannot bear the barbarity of it; how can that unconscionable coachman talk so much bawdy to that lean horse? don't you see, friend, the streets are so villainously narrow that there is not room in all Paris to turn a wheelbarrow? In the grandest city of the whole world, it would not have been amiss if they had been left a thought wider; nay, were it only so much in every single street as that a man might know (was it only for satisfaction) on which side of it he was walking.
One-----two-----three-----four-----five ----- six----- seven -----eight-----nine----ten.-----Ten cooks' shops! and twice the number of barbers'! and all within three minutes' driving! one would think that all the cooks in the world, on some great merrymeeting with the barbers, by joint consent had said-----Come, let us all go live at Paris: the French love good eating-----they are all gourmands--------we shall rank high; if their god is their belly-----their cooks must be gentlemen: and forasmuch as the periwig maketh the man, and the periwig-maker maketh the periwig-----ergo, would the barbers say, we shall rank higher still-----we shall be above you all-----we shall be Capitouls * at least-----pardi! we shall all wear swords------
-----And so, one would swear (that is by candlelight,-----
but there is no depending upon it), they continue to do, to
this day.
* Chief magistrate in Toulouse, etc. etc. etc.
As for candlelight-----I give it up--I have said before, there was no depending upon it----and I repeat it again; but not because the lights and shades are too sharp-----or the tints confounded-----or that there is neither beauty or keeping, &c. ... for that's not truth-----but it is an uncertain light in this respect, That in all the five hundred grand h@^otels which they number up to you in Paris------and the five hundred good things, at a modest computation (for 'tis only allowing one good thing to a h@^otel), which by candlelight are best to be seen, felt, heard, and understood (which, by the bye, is a quotation from Lilly)--the devil a one of us out of fifty can get our heads fairly thrust in amongst them.
This is no part of the French computation: 'tis simply this.
That by the last survey, taken in the year one thousand seven hundred and sixteen, since which time there have been considerable augmentations, Paris doth contain nine hundred streets (viz.):. In the quarter called the City----there are fifty-three streets. In St. James of the Shambles, fifty-five streets. In St. Oportune, thirty-four streets. In the quarter of the Louvre, twenty-five streets. In the Palace Royal, or St. Honorius, forty-nine streets. In Mont Martyr, forty-one streets. In St. Eustace, twenty-nine streets. In the Halles, twenty-seven streets. In St. Dennis, fifty-five streets. In St. Martin, fifty-four streets. In St. Paul, or the Mortellerie, twenty-seven streets. The Greve, thirty-eight streets. In St. Avoy, or the Verrerie, nineteen streets. In the Marais, or the Temple, fifty-two streets. In St. Antony's, sixty-eight streets. In the Place Maubert, eighty-one streets. In St. Bennet, sixty streets. In St. Andrews de Arcs, fifty-one streets. In the quarter of the Luxembourg, sixty-two streets. And in that of St. Germain, fifty-five streets, into any of which you may walk; and that when you have seen them
-----Then you will have seen----
-----but, 'tis what no one needeth to tell you, for you will read it yourself upon the portico of the Louvre, in these words, * EARTH NO SUCH FOLKS!----NO FOLKS E'ER SUCH A TOWN
AS PARIS IS!----SING, DERRY, DERRY, DOWN.
The French have a gay way of treating everything that
is Great; and that is all can be said upon lt.
SPLEEN
This, upon leaving Chantilly, I declared to be the best
principle in the world to travel speedily upon; but I gave it only
as matter of opinion, I still continue in the same sentiments
----only I had not then experience enough of its working to
add this, that though you do get on at @`a tearing rate, yet you
* Non Orbis gentem, non urbem gens habet uilam
-------------ulla parem.
-----No;------I cannot stop a moment to give you the character of the people--their genius--their manners------ their customs-----their laws-----their religion-----their government-----their manufactures-----their commerce---- their finances, with all the resources and hidden springs which sustain them: qualified as I may be, by spending three days and two nights amongst them, and during all that time, making these things the entire subject of my enquiries and reflections-----
Still-----still I must away--the roads are paved--the posts are short--the days are long------'tis no more than noon----I shall be at Fontainebleau before the king-----
------Was he going there? not that I know------
----My ink burns my finger to try-----and when I have ----'twill have a worse consequence-----it will burn (I fear) my paper.
-----No;-----I dare not-----
But if you wish to know how the Abbess of Ando@:uillets
and a novice of her convent got over the difficulty (only
first wishing myself all imaginable success)----I'll tell you
without the least scruple.
An old calash, belonging to the abbess, lined with green frieze, was ordered to be drawn out into the sun------the gardener of the convent, being chosen muleteer, led out the two old mules to clip the hair from the rump ends of their tails, whilst a couple of lay sisters were busied the one in darning the lining, and the other in sewing on the shreds of yellow binding, which the teeth of time had unravelled------ the undergardener dressed the muleteer's hat in hot wine lees -------and a tailor sat musically at it, in a shed over against the convent, in assorting four dozen of bells for the harness, whistling to each bell as he tied it on with a throng-------
------The carpenter and the smith of Ando@:uillets held a council of wheels; and by seven, the morning after, all looked spruce, and was ready at the gate of the convent for the hot baths of Bourbon-------two rows of the unfortunate stood ready there an hour before.
The Abbess of Ando@:uillets, supported by Margarita, the novice, advanced slowly to the calash, both clad in white, with their black rosaries hanging at their breasts-------
------There was a simple solemnity in the contrast: they entered the calash; and nuns in the same uniform, sweet emblem of innocence, each occupied a window, and as the abbess and Margarita looked up------each (the sciatical poor nun excepted)-------each streamed out the end of her veil in the air-------then kissed the lily hand which let it go: the good abbess and Margarita laid their hands saint-wise upon their breasts------looked up to heaven-------then to them-------and looked ``God bless you dear sisters.''
I declare I am interested in this story, and wish I had been there.
The gardener, who I shall now call the muleteer, was a little, hearty, broad-set, good-natured, chattering, toping kind of a fellow, who troubled his head very little with the hows and whens of life; so had mortgaged a month of his conventical wages in a borrachio, or leathern cask of wine, which he had disposed behind the calash, with a large russet-coloured riding coat over it, to guard it from the sun; and as the weather was hot, and he, not a niggard of his labours, walking ten times more than he rode-------he found more occasions than those of nature to fall back to the rear of his carriage; till by frequent coming and going it had so happened that all his wine had leaked out at the legal vent of the borrachio, before one half of the journey was finished.
Man is a creature born to habitudes. The day had been sultry-------the evening was delicious-------the wine was generous ------the Burgundian hill on which it grew was steep-------a little tempting bush over the door of a cool cottage at the foot of it hung vibrating in full harmony with the passions -------a gentle air rustled distinctly through the leaves------ ``Come-------come, thirsty muleteer-------come in.''
-------The muleteer was a son of Adam. I need not say one word more. He gave the mules, each of 'em, a sound lash, and looking in the abbess's and Margarita's faces (as he did it) -------as much as to say, ``here I am''-------he gave a second good crack-------as much as to say to his mules,``get on''-------so slinking behind, he entered the little inn at the foot of the hill.
The muleteer, as I told you, was a little joyous chirping fellow, who thought not of tomorrow, nor of what had gone before, or what was to follow it, provided he got but his scantling of Burgundy, and a little chitchat along with it; so entering into a long conversation, as how he was chief gardener to the convent of Ando@:uillets, &c., &c., and out of friendship for the abbess and Mademoiselie Margarita, who was only in her novitiate, he had come along with them from the confines of Savoy, &c. - - &c. - - and as how she had got a white swelling by her devotions-------and what a nation of herbs he had procured to mollify her humours, &c., &c., and that if the waters of Bourbon did not mend that leg-------she might as well be lame of both-------&c., &c., &c.,-------He so contrived his story as absolutely to forget the heroine of it -------and with her, the little novice, and what was a more ticklish point to be forgot than both-------the two mules; who being creatures that take advantage of the world, inasmuch as their parents took it of them-------and they not being in a condition to return the obligation downwards (as men and women and beasts are)-------they do it sideways, and longways, and backways-------and uphill, and downhill, and which way they can.----------Philosophers, with all their ethics, have never considered this rightly-------how should the poor muleteer then, in his cups, consider it at all? he did not in the least------'tis time we do; let us leave him then in the vortex of his element, the happiest and most thoughtless of mortal men-------and for a moment let us look after the mules, the abbess, and Margarita.
By virtue of the muleteer's two last strokes, the mules had gone quietly on, following their own consciences up the hill, till they had conquered about one half of it; when the elder of them, a shrewd crafty old devil, at the turn of an angle, giving a side glance, and no muleteer behind them-------
By my fig! said she, swearing, I'll go no further-------And if I do, replied the other-------they shall make a drum of my hide.-------
And so with one consent they stopped thus------
-------Wh - - - - ysh-------ysh-------cried Margarita.
Sh - - - a-------shu - u------shu - - u-------sh - - aw ------ shawed
the abbess.
-------Whu---v----w-------whew---w---w-------whuved Margarita,
pursing up her sweet lips betwixt a hoot and a whistle.
Thump-------thump-------thump-------obstreperated the
Abbess of Ando@:uillets with the end of her gold-headed cane
against the bottom of the calash-------
-------The old mule let a f-------
-------We shall be ravished, said Margarita as sure as a gun.
Sancta Maria! cried the abbess (forgetting the O!)------why
was I governed by this wicked stiff joint? why did I leave the
convent of Ando@:uillets? and why didst thou not suffer thy
servant to go unpolluted to her tomb?
O my finger! my finger! cried the novice, catching fire at
the word servant-------why was I not content to put it here or
there, anywhere rather than be in this strait?
-------Strait! said the abbess.
Strait-------said the novice; for terror had struck their
understandings-------the one knew not what she said-------the
other what she answered.
O my virginity! virginity! cried the abbess.
------inity!------inity! said the novice, sobbing.
Heaven! hadst thou no guardian angel to delegate to the inn at the bottom of the hill? was there no generous and friendly spirit unemployed-------no agent in nature, by some monitory shivering, creeping along the artery which led to his heart, to rouse the muleteer from his banquet?-------no sweet minstrelsy to bring back the fair idea of the abbess and Margarita, with their black rosaries!
Rouse! rouse!-------but 'tis too late-------the horrid words are pronounced this moment-------
-------and how to tell them-------Ye who can speak of everything existing, with unpolluted lips-------instruct me------guide me------
All sins whatever, quoth the abbess, turning casuist in the
distress they were under, are held by the confessor of our
convent to be either mortal or venial: there is no further
Now I see no sin in saying, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, a hundred times together; nor is there any turpitude in pronouncing the syllable ger, ger, ger, ger, ger, were it from our matins to our vespers: Therefore, my dear daughter, continued the Abbess of Ando@:uillets-------I will say bou, and thou shalt say ger; and then alternately, as there is no more sin in fou then in bou-------Thou shalt say fou------- and I will come in (like fa, sol, la, re, mi, ut, at our complines) with ter. And accordingly the abbess, giving the pitch note, set off thus: Abbess, ~Bou -- bou -- bou -- Margarita, i -------ger, - - ger, - - ger Sargarita, ~ Pou - - fou - - fou - - Abbess, ~ -------ter, - - ter, - - ter.
The two mules acknowledged the notes by a mutual lash of their tails; but it went no further.-------'Twill answer by an' by, said the invoice. Abbess, ~ Bou- bou- bou- bou- bou- bouMargarita, ~ -------ger, ger, ger, ger, ger, ger.
Quicker still, cried Margarita. Fou, fou, fou, fou, fou, fou, fou, fou, fou
Quicker still, cried Margarita. Bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou, bou.
Quicker still-------God preserve me! said the abbess-------
They do not understand us, cried Margarita------But the
devil does, said the Abbess of Ando@:uillets.
------Why, 'tis a strange story! Tristram.
---------Was! Madam, had it been upon some melancholy lecture of the cross-------the peace of meekness, or the contentment of resignation------- I had not been incommoded: or had I thought of writing it upon the purer abstractions of the soul, and that food of wisdom, and holiness, and contemplation upon which the spirit of man (when separated from the body) is to subsist forever------You would have come with a better appetite from it------
-------I wish I never had wrote it: but as I never blot anything out-------let us use some honest means to get it out of our heads directly.
-------Pray reach me my fool's cap------I fear you sit upon it, Madam-------'tis under the cushion-------I'll put it on-------
Bless me! you have had it upon your head this half hour. ------There then let it stay, with a
Fa-ra diddle di
and a fa-ri diddle d
and a high-dum------dye-dum
fiddle - - - dumb - c.
And now, Madam, we may venture, I hope, a little to go on.
Though there are two reasons why you need not talk loud of this to everyone.
First, Because 'twill make the said nags the harder to be got; and
Secondly, 'Tis not a word of it true.---Allons!
As for SENS-------you may dispatch it in a word--------- ``'Tis an archiepiscopal see.''
For JOIGNY-------the less, I think, one says of it, the better.
But for AUXERRE-------I could go on forever: for in my grand tour through Europe, in which, after all, my father (not caring to trust me with anyone) attended me himself, with my uncle Toby, and Trim and Obadiah, and indeed most of the family, except my mother, who being taken up with a project of knitting my father a pair of large worsted breeches-------(the thing is common sense)-------and she not caring to be put out of her way, she stayed at home at SHANDY HALL, to keep things right during the expedition; in which, I say, my father stopping us two days at Auxerre, and his researches being ever of such a nature that they would have found fruit even in a desert-------he has left me enough to say upon AUXERRE: in short, wherever my father went-------but 'twas more remarkably so, in this journey through France and Italy, than in any other stages of his life-------his road seemed to lie so much on one side of that wherein all other travellers had gone before him------he saw kings and courts and silks of all colours in such strange lights-------and his remarks and reasonings upon the characters, the manners and customs of the countries we passed over were so opposite to those of all other mortal men, particularly those of my uncle Toby and Trim------(to say nothing of myself)-------and to crown all-------the occurrences and scrapes which we were perpetually meeting and getting into, in consequence of his systems and opiniatry -------they were of so odd, so mixed and tragicomical a contexture-------That the whole put together, it appears of so different a shade and tint from any tour of Europe which was ever executed-------That I will venture to pronounce-------the fault must be mine and mine only-------if it be not read by all travellers and travel readers till travelling is no more, ------or which comes to the same point-------till the world, finally, takes it into its head to stand still.------
-------But this rich bale is not to be opened now; except a small thread or two of it, merely to unravel the mystery of my father's stay at AUXERRE.
-------As I have mentioned it------'tis too slight to be kept suspended; and when 'tis wove in, there's an end of it.
We'll go, brother Toby, said my father, whilst dinner is coddling-------to the abbey of St. Germain, if it be only to see these bodies of which Monsieur Seguier has given such a recommendation.-------I'll go see any body, quoth my uncle Toby; for he was all compliance through every step of the journey-------Defend me! said my father-------they are all mummies-------Then one need not shave, quoth my uncle Toby-------Shave! no-------cried my father-------'twill be more like relations to go with our beards on-------So out we sallied, the corporal lending his master his arm, and bringing up the rear, to the abbey of St. Germain.
Everything is very fine, and very rich, and very superb, and very magnificent, said my father, addressing himself to the sacristan, who was a young brother of the order of Benedictines-------but our curiosity has led us to see the bodies of which Monsieur Seguier has given the world so exact a description.-------The sacristan made a bow, and lighting a torch first, which he had always in the vestry ready for the purpose, he led us into the tomb of St. Heribald-------This, said the sacristan, laying his hand upon the tomb, was a renowned prince of the house of Bavaria, who under the successive reigns of Charlemagne, Louis le Debonair, and Charles the Bald bore a great sway in the government and had a principal hand in bringing everything into order and discipline-------
Then he has been as great, said my uncle, in the field as in the cabinet-------I dare say he has been a gallant soldier ------He was a monk-------said the sacristan.
My uncle Toby and Trim sought comfort in each other's faces------but found it not: my father clapped both his hands upon his codpiece, which was a way he had when anything hugely tickled him; for though he hated a monk and the very smell of a monk worse than all the devils in hell-------Yet the shot hitting my uncle Toby and Trim so much harder than him, 'twas a relative triumph; and put him into the gayest humour in the world.
-------And pray what do you call this gentleman? quoth my father, rather sportingly: This tomb, said the young Benedictine, looking downwards, contains the bones of St.
-------Of St. MAXIMUS, said my father, popping in with his saint before him-------they were two of the greatest saints in the whole martyrology, added my father------Excuse me, said the sacristan------------'twas to touch the bones of St. Germain, the builder of the abbey-------And what did she get by it? said my uncle Toby-------What does any woman get by it? said my father-------MARTYRDOM, replied the young Benedictine, making a bow down to the ground, and uttering the word with so humble, but decisive, a cadence, it disarmed my father for a moment. 'Tis supposed, continued the Benedictine, that St. Maxima has lain in this tomb four hundred years, and two hundred before her canonization -------'Tis but a slow rise, brother Toby, quoth my father, in this selfsame army of martyrs.-------A desperate slow one, an' please your Honour, said Trim, unless one could purchase-------I should rather sell out entirely, quoth my uncle Toby------I am pretty much of your opinion, brother Toby, said my father.
-------Poor St. Maxima! said my uncle Toby low to himself, as we turned from her tomb: She was one of the fairest and most beautiful ladies either of Italy or France, continued the sacristan------But who the deuce has got lain down here, besides her, quoth my father, pointing with his cane to a large tomb as we walked on-------It is St. Optat, Sir, answered the sacristan-------And properly in St. Optat placed! said my father: And what is St. Optat's story? continued he. St. Optat, replied the sacristan, was a bishop-------
------I thought so, by heaven! cried my father interrupting him-------St. Optat!------how should St. Optat fail? so snatching out his pocketbook, and the young Benedictine holding him the torch as he wrote, he set it down as a new prop to his system of Christian names, and I will be bold to say, so disinterested was he in the search of truth, that had he found a treasure in St. Optat's tomb, it would not have made him half so rich: 'Twas as successful a short visit as ever was paid to the dead; and so highly was his fancy pleased with all that had passed in it,-------that he determined at once to stay another day in Auxerre.
-------I'll see the rest of these good gentry tomorrow, said my father, as we crossed over the square-------And while you are paying that visit, brother Shandy, quoth my uncle Toby ------the corporal and I will mount the ramparts.
------Let me collect myself, and pursue my journey.
* The same Don Pringello, the celebrated Spanish architect of whom my cousin Antony has made such honourable mention in a scholium to the Tale inscribed to his name. Vid. p. 129, small edit.
As I went on thus, methought my chaise, the wreck of which looked stately enough at the first, insensibly grew less and less in its size; the freshness of the painting was no more------the gilding lost its lustre------and the whole affair appeared so poor in my eyes-------so sorry!------so contemptible! and, in a word, so much worse than the Abbess of Ando@:uillets' itself------that I was just opening my mouth to give it to the devil-------when a pert vamping chaise-undertaker, stepping nimbly across the street, demanded if Monsieur would have his chaise refitted-------No, no, said I, shaking my head sideways-------Would Monsieur choose to sell it? rejoined the undertaker------With all my soul, said I -------the ironwork is worth forty livres-------and the glasses worth forty more------and the leather you may take to live on.
-------What a mine of wealth, quoth I, as he counted me the money, has this post chaise brought me in? And this is my usual method of bookkeeping, at least with the disasters of life-------making a penny of every one of 'em as they happen to me------
-------Do, my dear Jenny, tell the world for me how I behaved under one, the most oppressive of its kind which could befall me as a man proud as he ought to be, of his manhood------
'Tis enough, saidst thou, coming close up to me, as I stood with my garters in my hand, reflecting upon what had not
------Everything is good for something, quoth I.
-------I'll go into Wales for six weeks, and drink goat's whey------and I'll gain seven years longer life for the accident. For which reason I think myself inexcusable for blamng Fortune so often as I have done, for pelting me all my life long, like an ungracious duchess as I called her, with so many small evils: surely if I have any cause to be angry with her, 'tis that she has not sent me great ones-------a score of good cursed, bouncing losses would have been as good as a pension to me.
-------One of a hundred a year, or so, is all I wish-------I
would not be at the plague of paying land tax for a larger.
VEXATION
upon
VEXATION.
I had got my two dishes of milk coffee (which by the
bye is excellently good for a consumption, but you must boil
the milk and coffee together-------otherwise 'tis only coffee
and milk)-------and as it was no more than eight in the morning,
and the boat did not go off till noon, I had time to see
enough of Lyons to tire the patience of all the friends
I had in the world with it. I will take a walk to the cathedral,
said I, looking at my list, and see the wonderful
mechanism of this great clock of Lippius of Basil, in the first
place------
Now, of all things in the world, I understand the least of mechanism------I have neither genius, or taste, or fancy------- and have a brain so entirely unapt for everything of that kind, that I solemnly declare I was never yet able to comprehend the principles of motion of a squirrel cage, or a common knife grinder's wheel---though I have many an hour of my life looked up with great devotion at the one------- and stood by with as much patience as any Christian ever could do at the other-------
I'll go see the surprising movements of this great clock, said I, the very first thing I do: and then I will pay a visit to the great library of the Jesuits, and procure, if possible, a sight of the thirty volumes of the general history of China, wrote (not in the Tartarian) but in the Chinese language, and in the Chinese character too.
Now I almost knew as little of the Chinese language as I do of the mechanism of Lippius's clockwork; so, why these should have jostled themselves into the two first articles of my list------I leave to the curious as a problem of Nature. I own it looks like one of her Ladyship's obliquities; and they who court her are interested in finding out her humour as much as I.
When these curiosities are seen, quoth I, half addressing myself to my valet de place, who stood behind me-------'twill be no hurt if we go to the church of St. Ireneus, and see the pillar to which Christ was tied-------and after that, the house where Pontius Pilate lived-------'Twas at the next town, said the valet de place-------at Vienne; I am glad of it, said I, rising briskly from my chair, and walking across the room with strides twice as long as my usual pace-------``for so much the sooner shall I be at the tomb of the two lovers.''
What was the cause of this movement, and why I took such
long strides in uttering this-------I might leave to the curious
too; but as no principle of clockwork is concerned in it
------'twill be as well for the reader if I explain it myself.
Amandus-------He
Ananda------She------ each ignorant of the other's course,
He-------east
She-------west Amandus taken captive by the Turks, and carried to the Emperor of Morocco's court, where the Princess of Morocco, falling in love with him, keeps him twenty years in prison, for the love of his Amanda-------
She------(Amanda) all the time wandering barefoot, and with dishevelled hair, o'er rocks and mountains enquiring for Amandus-------Amandus ! Amandus!-------making every hill and valley to echo back his name------
Anandus! Amandus ! at every town and city sitting down forlorn at the gate------- Has Amandus!-------has my Amandus entered?-------till,------- going round, and round, and round the world-------chance unexpected bringing them at the same moment of the night, though by different ways, to the gate of Lyons, their native city, and each in well-known accents calling out aloud,
Is Amandus
Is my Amanda ~ still alive? they fly into each other's arms, and both drop down dead for joy.
There is a soft era in every gentle mortal's life, where such a story affords more pabulum to the brain than all the Frusts, and Crusts, and Rusts of antiquity which travellers can cook up for it.
-------'Twas all that struck on the right side of the colander in my own, of what Spon and others, in their accounts of Lyons, had strained into it; and finding, moreover, in some Itinerary, but in what God knows------That sacred to the fidelity of Amandus and Amanda, a tomb was built without the gates where to this hour lovers called upon them to attest their truths,------I never could get into a scrape of that kind in my life, but this tomb of the lovers would somehow or other come in at the close-------nay, such a kind of empire had it established over me that I could seldom think or speak of Lyons-------and sometimes not so much as see even a Lyons waistcoat, but this remnant of antiquity would present itself to my fancy; and I have often said in my wild way of running on-------though I fear with some irreverence------``I thought this shrine (neglected as it was)
In my list, therefore, of Videnda at Lyons, this, though
last---was not, you see, least; so taking a dozen or two of
longer strides than usual across my room, just whilst it
passed my brain, I walked down calmly into the basse
cour, in order to sally forth; and having called for my bill
------as it was uncertain whether I should return to my inn,
I had paid it-------had moreover given the maid ten sous,
and was just receiving the dernier compliments of Monsieur
Le Blanc, for a pleasant voyage down the Rh@^one------when
I was stopped at the gate-----
Now, 'tis an animal (be in what hurry I may) I cannot
bear to strike-------there is a patient endurance of sufferings
wrote so unaffectedly in his looks and carriage, which pleads
so mightily for him that it always disarms me; and to that
degree that I do not like to speak unkindly to him: on the
contrary, meet him where I will------whether in town or
country-------in cart or under panniers-------whether in liberty
or bondage-------I have ever something civil to say to him
on my part; and as one word begets another (if he has a little
to do as I)-------I generally fall into conversation with
him; and surely never is my imagination so busy as in framing
his responses from the etchings of his countenance-------
and where those carry me not deep enough-------in flying
from my own heart into his, and seeing what is natural
for an ass to think-------as well as a man, upon the occasion.
In truth, it is the only creature of all the classes of beings
below me with whom I can do this: for parrots,
-------But with an ass, I can commune forever.
Come, Honesty! said I,-------seeing it was impracticable to pass betwixt him and the gate------art thou for coming in, or going out?
The ass twisted his head round to look up the street-------
Well-------replied I-------we'll wait a minute for thy driver.
-------He turned his head thoughtful about, and looked wistfully the opposite way-------
I understand thee perfectly, answered I-------if thou takest a wrong step in this affair, he will cudgel thee to death------- Well! a minute is but a minute, and if it saves a fellow-creature a drubbing, it shall not be set down as ill spent.
He was eating the stem of an artichoke as this discourse went on, and in the little peevish contentions of nature betwixt hunger and unsavouriness, had dropt it out of his mouth half a dozen times, and picked it up again-------God help thee, Jack! said I, thou hast a bitter breakfast on't------- and many a bitter day's labour-------and many a bitter blow, I fear, for its wages-------'tis all-------all bitterness to thee, whatever life is to others.-------And now thy mouth, if one knew the truth of it, is as bitter, I dare say, as soot-------(for he had cast aside the stem) and thou has not a friend perhaps in all this world that will give thee a macaroon.-------In saying this, I pulled out a paper of 'em, which I had just purchased, and gave him one-------and at this moment that I am telling it, my heart smites me that there was more of pleasantry in the conceit of seeing how an ass would eat a macaroon-------than of benevolence in giving him one, which presided in the act.
When the ass had eaten his macaroon, I pressed him to come in-------the poor beast was heavy loaded-------his legs seemed to tremble under him-------he hung rather backwards, and as I pulled at his halter, it broke short in my hand------- he looked up pensive in my face-------``Don't thrash me with
The word was but one half of it pronounced, like the Abbess of Ando@:uillets'-------(so there was no sin in it)------- when a person, coming in, let fall a thundering bastinado upon the poor devil's crupper, which put an end to the ceremony.
Out upon it.1 cried I-------but the interjection was equivocal-------and, I think, wrong-placed too--for the end of an osier which had started out from the contexture of the ass's pannier had caught hold of my breeches pocket as he rushed by me, and rent it in the most disastrous direction you can imagine-------so that the
Out upon it! in my opinion, should have come in here-------but this I leave to be settled by
The
REVIEWERS
of
MY BREECHES
which I have brought over along with me for that purpose.
It was a commissary sent to me from the post office, with
a rescript in his hand for the payment of some six livres odd
sous.
Upon what account? said I.-------'Tis upon the part of the
king, replied the commissary, heaving up both his
shoulders------
-------My good friend, quoth I-------as sure as I am I------- and you are you-------
-------And who are you? said he.------ ------Don't Puzzle
me, said I.
Pardonnez moi-------replied the commissary, you are
indebted to him six livres four sous, for the next post from
hence to St. Fons, in your rout to Avignon-------which being
a post royal, you pay double for the horses and postillion
-------otherwise 'twould have amounted to no more than three
livres two sous-------
------But I don't go by land, said I.
-------You may if you please, replied the commissary------
Your most obedient servant-------said I, making him a low
bow------
The commissary, with all the sincerity of grave good
breeding-------made me one, as low again.-------I never was more
disconcerted with a bow in my life.
-------The devil take the serious character of these people!
quoth I-------(aside) they understand no more of IRONY than
this-------
The comparison was standing close by with his panniers
-------but something sealed up my lips-------I could not
pronounce the name-------
Sir, said I, collecting myself------it is not my intention to
take post-------
------But you may-------said he, persisting in his first reply
------you may take post if you choose-------
-------And I may take salt to my pickled herring, said I, if
I choose-------
-------But I do not choose-------
-------But you must pay for it, whether you do or no------
Aye! for the salt, said I (I know)-------
-------And for the post too, added he. Defend me, cried I------
I travel by water------I am going down the Rh@^one this very afternoon------my baggage is in the boat-------and I have actually paid nine livres for my passage------
C'est tout egal-------'tis all one, said he.
Bon Dieu! what, pay for the way I go! and for the way I do not go!
-------C'est tout egal, replied the commissary------
-------The devil it is! said I------but I will go to ten thousand Bastilles first------
O England! England! thou land of liberty, and climate of good sense, thou tenderest of mothers-------and gentlest of nurses, cried I, kneeling upon one knee, as I was beginning my apostrophe------
When the director of Madam Le Blanc's conscience, coming in at that instant, and seeing a person in black, with a face as pale as ashes, at his devotions-------looking still paler by the contrast and distress of his drapery-------asked if I stood in want of the aids of the church-------
I go by WATER-------said I-------and here's another will be
for making me pay for going by OIL.
And so I set off thus-------
-------And pray, Mr. Commissary, by what law of courtesy
is a defenceless stranger to be used just the reverse from
what you use a Frenchman in this matter?
By no means, said he.
Excuse me, said I-------for you have begun, sir, with first
tearing off my breeches-------and now you want my
pocket-------
Whereas-------had you first taken my pocket, as you do with
your own people-------and then left me bare a---d after------
I had been a beast to have complained------
As it is------
But not to this-----said he--putting a printed paper into my hand.
PAR LE ROY
------ -----'Tis a pithy prolegomenon, quoth I------and so read on ---------------------------------------------------
-----By all which it appears, quoth I, having read it over, a little too rapidly, that if a man sets out in a post chaise from Paris-----he must go on travelling in one all the days of his life-----or pay for it.-----Excuse me, said the commissary, the spirit of the ordinance is this-----That if you set out with an intention of running post from Paris to Avignon, &c., you shall not change that intention or mode of travelling without first satisfying the fermiers for two posts further than the place you repent at-----and 'tis founded, continued he, upon this, that the REVENUES are not to fall short through your fickleness-----
-----O, by heavens! cried I-----if fickleness is taxable in France------we have nothing to do but to make the best peace with you we can-----
AND SO THE PEACE WAS MADE;
----And if it is a bad one-----as Tristram Shandy laid the
cornerstone of it-----nobody but Tristram Shandy ought to
be hanged.
Heaven! earth! seal fire! cried I, calling in everything to my aid but what I should------My remarks are stolen! ----what shall I do?-----Mr. Commissary! pray did I drop any remarks as I stood besides you?---------
You dropped a good many very singular ones, replied he ----Pugh! said I, those were but a few, not worth above six livres two sous----but these are a large parcel----He shook his head------Monsieur Le Blanc! Madam Le Blanc! did you see any papers of mine?-----you maid of the house! run upstairs-----Fran@,cois! run up after her------
-----I must have my remarks-----they were the best remarks, cried I, that ever were made----the wisest------the wittiest-----What shall I do?-----which way shall I turn myself?
Sancho Panza, when he lost his ass's FURNITURE, did not
exclaim more bitterly.
-----Tantarra - ra - tan - tivi-----the whole world was going out a-Maypoling-----frisking here-----capering there------nobody cared a button for me or my remarks; so I sat me down upon a bench by the door, philosophating upon my condition: by a better fate than usually attends me, I had not waited half an hour, when the mistress came in, to take the papillotes from off her hair, before she went to the May poles-----
The French women, by the bye, love Maypoles, @`a la folie -----that is, as much as their nations------give 'em but a Maypole, whether in May, June, July, or September----they never count the times------down it goes-----'tis meat, drink, washing, and lodging to 'em----and had we but the policy, an' please your Worships (as wood is a little scarce in France) to send them but plenty of Maypoles-----
The women would set them up; and when they had done, they would dance round them (and the men for company) till they were all blind.
The wife of the chaise-vamper stepped in, I told you, to take the papillotes from off her hair------the toilet stands still for no man------so she jerked off her cap, to begin, with them as she opened the door, in doing which, one of them fell upon the ground-----I instantly saw it was my own writing-----
-----O Seigneur.r cried I----you have got all my remarks upon your head, Madam!-----J'en suis bien mortifi@'ee, said she-----'tis well, thinks I, they have stuck there--for could
Tenez-----said she-----so without any idea of the nature of my suffering, she took them from her curls, and put them gravely one by one into my hat-----one was twisted this way -----another twisted that------ay! by my faith; and when they are published, quoth I,--
They will be worse twisted still.
I cannot say, in my heart, that it gave me any concern in
being told by one of the minor canons, as I was entering the
west door,-----That Lippius's great clock was all out of
joints, and had not gone for some years------It will give me
the more time, thought I, to peruse the Chinese history; and
besides, I shall be able to give the world a better account of
the clock in its decay than I could have done in its flourishing
condition------
-----And so away I posted to the college of the Jesuits.
Now it is with the project of getting a peep at the history
of China in Chinese characters-----as with many others I
could mention, which strike the fancy only at a distance; for
as I came nearer and nearer to the point-----my blood cooled
----the freak gradually went off, till at length I would not
have given a cherry stone to have it gratified-------The
truth was, my time was short, and my heart was at the tomb
of the lovers-----I wish to God, said I, as I got the rapper in
my hand, that the key of the library may be but lost; it fell
out as well---------
For all the JESUITS had got the cholic--and to that
degree, as never was known in the memory of the oldest
practitioner.
------Tender and faithful spirits! cried I, addressing myself to Amandus and Amanda--long--long have I tarried to drop this tear upon your tomb-----I come-------I come-------
When I came--there was no tomb to drop it upon.
What would I have given for my uncle Toby to have whistled Lillabullero!
But I have described this voyage down the Rh@^one before I made it-----
-----So now I am at Avignon---and as there is nothing to see but the old house in which the Duke of Ormond resided, and nothing to stop me but a short remark upon the place, in three minutes you will see me crossing the bridge upon a mule, with Fran@,cois upon a horse with my portmanteau
Before I go further, let me get rid of my remark upon Avignon, which is this, That I think it wrong, merely because a man's hat has been blown off his head by chance the first night he comes to Avignon,----that he should therefore say, ``Avignon is more subject to high winds than any town in all France;'' for which reason I laid no stress upon the accident till I had inquired of the master of the inn about it, who telling me seriously it was so-----and hearing, moreover, the windiness of Avignon spoke of in the country about as a proverb------I set it down merely to ask the learned what can be the cause-----the consequence I saw------for they are all dukes, marquises, and counts there-----the deuce a baron, in all Avignon----so that there is scarce any talking to them, on a windy day.
Prithee, friend, said I, take hold of my mule for a moment-----for I wanted to pull off one of my jack boots, which hurt my heel----the man was standing quite idle at the door of the inn, and as I had taken it into my head he was someway concerned about the house or stable, I put the bridle into his hand-----so begun with my boot:-----when I had finished the affair, I turned about to take the mule from the man, and thank him------
-----But Monsieur le Marquis had walked in------
So notwithstanding all the commissary of the post office had said, I changed the mode of my travelling once more; and after so precipitate and rattling a course as I had run, I flattered my fancy with thinking of my mule, and that I should traverse the rich plains of Languedoc upon his back, as slowly as foot could fall.
There is nothing more pleasing to a traveller-----or more terrible to travel writers, than a large rich plain; especially if it is without great rivers or bridges; and presents nothing to the eye but one unvaried picture of plenty: for after they have once told you that 'tis delicious ! or delightful! (as the case happens)------that the soil was grateful, and that nature pours out all her abundance, &c.... they have then a large plain upon their hands, which they know not what to do with-----and which is of little or no use to them but to carry them to some town; and that town perhaps of little more but a new place to start from to the next plain----and so on.
----This is most terrible work; judge if I don't manage my
Plains better.
I had three several times loitered terribly behind; half a
mile at least every time: once, in deep conference with a
drum-maker, who was making drums for the fairs of
Baucaira and Tarascono-----I did not understand the
principles------
The second time, I cannot so properly say, I stopped----
for meeting a couple of Franciscans straitened more for time
than myself, and not being able to get to the bottom of what
I was about-----I had turned back with them-----
The third was an affair of trade with a gossip, for a hand basket of Provence figs for four sous; this would have been transacted at once, but for a case of conscience at the close of it; for when the figs were paid for, it turned out that there were two dozen of eggs covered over with vine leaves at the bottom of the basket-----as I had no intention of buying eggs-----I made no sort of claim of them----as for the space they had occupied-----what signified it? I had figs enow for my money------
----But it was my intention to have the basket----it was the gossip's intention to keep it, without which she could do nothing with her eggs-----and unless I had the basket, I could do as little with my figs, which were too ripe already, and most of 'em burst at the side: this brought on a short contention, which terminated in sundry proposals what we should both do----
-----How we disposed of our eggs and figs, I defy you, or the devil himself, had he not been there (which I am persuaded he was), to form the least probable conjecture: You will read the whole of it-------not this year, for I am hastening to the story of my uncle Toby's amours----but you will read it in the collection of those which have arose out of the journey across this plain-----and which, therefore, I call my
PLAIN STORIES.
How far my pen has been fatigued like those of other travellers, in this journey of it over so barren a track-----the world must judge------but the traces of it, which are now all set o' vibrating together this moment, tell me 'tis the most fruitful and busy period of my life; for as I had made no convention with my man with the gun as to time-----by stopping and talking to every soul I met who was not in a full trot-----joining all parties before me----waiting for every soul behind-----hailing all those who were coming through crossroads-----arresting all hinds of beggars, pilgrims, fiddlers, friars----not passing by a woman in a mulberry tree without commending her legs, and tempting her into conversation with a pinch of snuff-------In short, by seizing every handle, of what size or shape soever, which chance held out to me in this journey----I turned my plain into a city----I was always in company, and with great variety too; and as my mule loved society as much as myself, and had some proposals always on his part to offer to every beast he met-----I am confident we could have passed through
O! there is that sprightly frankness which at once unpins every plait of a Languedocian's dress-----that whatever is beneath it, it looks so like the simplicity which poets sing of in better days-----I will delude my fancy, and believe it is so.
'Twas in the road betwixt Nimes and Lunel, where there is the best Muscatto wine in all France, and which by the bye belongs to the honest canons of MONTPELLIER----and foul befall the man who has drank lt at their table who grudges them a drop of it.
------The sun was set----they had done their work; the nymphs had tied up their hair afresh-----and the swains were preparing for a carousal------My mule made a dead point -----'Tis the fife and taborin, said I------I'm frightened to death, quoth he-----They are running at the ring of pleasure, said I, giving him a prick------By St. Boogar, and all the saints at the backside of the door of purgatory, said he------ (making the same resolution with the Abbess of Ando@:uillets), I'li not go a step further---------'Tis very well, sir, said I----I never will argue a point with one of your family, as long as I live; so leaping off his back, and hicking off one boot into this ditch, and t'other into that----I'li take a dance, said I-----so stay you here.
A sunburnt daughter of Labour rose up from the group to meet me as I advanced towards them; her hair, which was a dark chestnut, approaching rather to a black, was tied up in a knot, all but a single tress.
We want a cavalier, said she, holding out both her hands, as if to offer them-----And a cavalier ye shall have, said I, taking hold of both of them.
Hadst thou, Nannette, been arrayed like a duchess!
-----But that cursed slit in thy petticoat!
Nannette cared not for it.
We could not have done without you, said she, letting go one hand, with self-taught politeness, leading me up with the other.
A lame youth, whom Apollo had recompenced with a pipe, and to which he had added a taborin of his own accord, ran sweetly over the prelude, as he sat upon the bark----Tie me up this tress instantly, said Nannette, putting a piece of string into my hand-----it taught me to forget I was a stranger-----The whole knot fell down-----We had been seven years acquainted.
The youth struck the note upon the taborin-----his pipe followed, and off we bounded-----``the deuce take that slit!''
The sister of the youth, who had stolen her voice from heaven, sung alternately with her brother-----'twas a Gascoigne roundelay.
VIVE LA JOIA!
FIDON LA TRISTESSA! The nymphs joined in unison, and their swains an octave below them-----
I would have given a crown to have it sewed up-----Nannette would not have given a sou-----Viva la joia! was in her lips-----Viva la joia! was in her eyes. A transient spark of amity shot across the space betwixt us----She looked amiable!-----Why could I not live and end my days thus? Just disposer of our joys and sorrows, cried I, why could not a man sit down in the lap of content here-----and dance, and sing, and say his prayers, and go to heaven with this nut-brown maid? Capriciously did she bend her head on one side, and dance up insidious-----Then 'tis time to dance off, quoth I; so changing only partners and tunes, I danced it away from Lunel to Montpellier----from thence to Pes@,cnas, Beziers-----I danced it along through Narbonne, Carcasson, and Castle Naudairy, till at last I danced myself into Pringello's pavillion, where pulling a paper of black lines, that I might go on straight forwards, without digression or parenthesis, in my uncle Toby's amours-----
I begun thus-----
& ----But softly------for in these sportive plains, and under this genial sun, where at this instant all flesh is running out piping, fiddling, and dancing to the vintage, and every step that's taken, the judgment is surprised by the imagination, I defy, notwithstanding all that has been said upon straight lines * in sundry pages of my book-----I defy the best cabbage planter that ever existed, whether he plants backwards or forwards, it makes little difference in the account (except that he will have more to answer for in the one case than in the other)-----I defy him to go on coolly, critically, and canonically, planting his cabbages one by one, in straight lines, and stoical distances, especially if slits in petticoats are unsewed up-----without ever and anon straddling out, or sidling, into some bastardly digression---In Freeze-land, Fog-land, and some other lands I wot of---it may be done----
But in this clear climate of fantasy and perspiration, where every idea, sensible and insensible, gets vent-----in this land, my dear Eugenius-----in this fertile land of chivalry and romance, where I now sit, unscrewing my inkhorn to write my uncle Toby's amours, and with all the meanders of JULIA's track in quest of her DIEGO in full view of my study window----- if thou comest not and takest me by the hand----
What a work is it likely to turn out!
Let us begin it.
* Vid. Vol. VI, p. 385.
-----But now I am talking of beginning a book, and have long had a thing upon my mind to be imparted to the reader, which, if not imparted now, can never be imparted to him as long as I live (whereas the COMPARISON may be imparted to him any hour in the day)----I'll just mention it, and begin in good earnest.
The thing is this.
That of all the several ways of beginning a book which are now in practice throughout the known world I am confident my own way of doing it is the best-----I'm sure it is the most religious------for I begin with writing the first sentence -----and trusting to Almighty God for the second.
'Twould cure an author forever of the fuss and folly of opening his street door, and calling in his neighbours and friends, and kinsfolk, with the devil and all his imps, with their hammers and engines, &c., only to observe how one sentence of mine follows another, and how the plan fellows the whole.
I wish you saw me half starting out of my chair, with what confidence, as I grasp the elbow of it, I look up-----catching the idea, even sometimes before it halfway reaches me-----
I believe in my conscience I intercept many a thought which heaven intended for another man.
Pope and his Portrait * are fools to me-----no martyr is ever so full of faith or fire-----I wish I could say of good works too-----but I have no
Zeal or Anger--or
Anger or Zeal-- And till gods and men agree together to call it by the same name-----the errantest TARTUFFE, in science-----in politics -----or in religion, shall never kindle a spark within me or have a worse word, or a more unkind greeting, than what he will read in the next chapter.
* Vid. Pope's Portrait.
Now this being a little bald about the chin, by frequently putting off and on, before she was got with child by the coachman----not one of our family would wear it after. To cover the MASK afresh was more than the mask was worth------ and to wear a mask which was bald, or which could be half seen through, was as bad as having no mask at all----
This is the reason, may it please your Reverences, that in all our numerous family, for these four generations, we count no more than one archbishop, a Welsh judge, some three or four aldermen, and a single mountebank-----
In the sixteenth century, we boast of no less than a dozen alchemists.
Of all mortal, and immortal men too, if you please, who
ever soliloquized upon this mystic subject, my uncle Toby
was the worst fitted to have pushed his researches, through
such a contention of feelings; and he had infallibly let them
all run on, as we do worse matters, to see what they would
turn out-----had not Bridget's prenotification of them to
Susannah, and Susannah's repeated manifestoes thereupon to
all the world, made lt necessary for my uncle Toby to look
into the affair.
A water drinker, provided he is a professed one, and does
it without fraud or covin, is precisely in the same predicament:
not that, at first sight, there is any consequence or
show of logic in it ``That a rill of cold water dribbling
through my inward parts should light up a torch in my
Jenny's------''
-----The proposition does not strike one; on the contrary
it seems to run opposite to the natural workings of causes
and effects-----
But it shows the weakness and imbecility of human reason.
-----``And in perfect good health with it?''
-----The most perfect----Madam, that friendship herself
could wish me-----
-----``And drink nothing!-----nothing but water?''
-----Impetuous fluid! the moment thou pressest against the
floodgates of the brain-----see how they give way!----
In swims CURIOSITY, beckoning to her damsels to follow
------they dive into the centre of the current-----
O ye water drinkers! is it then by this delusive fountain that ye have so often governed and turned this world about like a mill wheel-----grinding the faces of the impotent----- bepowdering their ribs-----bepeppering their noses, and changing sometimes even the very frame and face of nature-----
-----If I was you, quoth Yorick, I would drink more water, Eugenius.--And, if I was you, Yorick, replied Eugenius, so would I.
Which shows they had both read Longinus-----
For my own part, I am resolved never to read any book
but my own, as long as I live.
-----Something perhaps more than friendship----less than
love-----something------no matter what-----no matter where
-----I would not give a single hair off my mule's tail, and be
obliged to pluck it off myself (indeed the villain has not
many to spare, and is not a little vicious into the bargain),
to be let by your Worships into the secret-----
But the truth is, my uncle Toby was not a water drinker;
he drank it neither pure or mixed, or anyhow, or anywhere,
except fortuitously upon some advanced posts, where better
liquor was not to be had-----or during the time he was under
cure; when the surgeon telling him it would extend the
fibres, and bring them sooner into contact-----my unele Toby
drank it for quietness' sake.
Now as all the world knows that no effect in nature can be
produced without a cause and as it is as well known that
my uncle Toby was neither a weaver------a gardener, or a
gladiator----unless as a captain, you will needs have him
I declare, I do not recollect any one opinion or passage of my life, where my understanding was more at a loss to make ends meet, and torture the chapter I had been writing, to the service of the chapter following it, than in the present case: one would think I took a pleasure in running into difficulties of this kind, merely to make fresh experiments of getting out of `em-----Inconsiderate soul that thou art! What! are not the unavoidable distresses with which, as an author and a man, thou art hemmed in on every side of thee-----are they, Tristram, not sufficient, but thou must entangle thyself still more?
Is it not enough that thou art in debt, and that thou hast ten cartloads of thy fifth and sixth volumes still--still unsold, and art almost at thy wit's ends, how to get them off thy hands.
To this hour art thou not tormented with the vile asthma
thou gattest in skating against the wind in Flanders? and is
it but two months ago that in a fit of laughter, on seeing a
cardinal make water like a chorister (with both hands), thou
breakest a vessel in thy lungs, whereby, in two hours, thou
lost as many quarts of blood; and hadst thou lost as much
more, did not the faculty tell thee----it would have
amounted to a gallon?----
--I beg we may take more care.
----It was a bed to lie on: so that as Shandy Hall was at
that time unfurnished; and the little inn where poor Le Fever
died not yet built; my uncle Toby was constrained to accept
of a bed at Mrs. Wadman's, for a night or two, till Corporal
Trim (who to the character of an excellent valet, groom, cook,
seamster, surgeon and engineer, superadded that of an excellent
upholsterer too) with the help of a carpenter and a
couple of tailors, constructed one in my uncle Toby's house.
A daughter of Eve, for such was widow Wadman, and 'tis
all the character I intend to give of her----
----``That she was a perfect woman,''
had better be fifty leagues off----or in her warm bed--or
playing with a case knife-----or anything you please--than
make a man the object of her attention, when the house and
all the furniture is her own.
There is nothing in it out of doors and in broad daylight,
where a woman has a power, physically speaking, of viewing
a man in more lights than one-----but here, for her soul, she
can see him in no light without mixing something of her own
goods and chattels along with him----till by reiterated acts
of such combinations, he gets foisted into her inventory----
-----And then good night.
But this is not matter of SYSTEM; for I have delivered that
above-----nor is it matter of BREVIARY----for I make no
man's creed but my own-----nor matter of FACT--at least
that I know of; but 'tis matter copulative and introductory to
what follows.
Widow Wadman's night shifts (as was the mode I suppose in King William's and Queen Anne's reigns) were cut however after this fashion; and if the fashion is changed (for in Italy they are come to nothing),----so much the worse for the public; they were two Flemish ells and a half in length; so that allowing a moderate woman two ells, she had half an ell to spare, to do what she would with.
Now from one little indulgence gained after another, in the many bleak and decemberly nights of a seven years' widowhood, things had insensibly come to this pass, and for the two last years had got established into one of the ordinances of the bedchamber-----That as soon as Mrs. Wadman was put to bed, and had got her legs stretched down to the bottom of it, of which she always gave Bridget notice------Bridget with all suitable decorum, having first opened the bedclothes at the feet, took hold of the half ell of cloth we are speaking of, and having gently, and with both her hands, drawn it downwards to its furthest extension, and then contracted it again sidelong by four or five even plaits, she took a large corking pin out of her sleeve, and with the point directed towards her, pinned the plaits all fast together a little above the hem; which done, she tucked all in tight at the feet, and wished her mistress a good night.
This was constant, and without any other variation than this: that on shivering and tempestuous nights, when Bridget untucked the feet of the bed, &c., to do this-----she consulted no thermometer but that of her own passions; and so performed it standing-----kneeling-----or squatting, according to the different degrees of faith, hope, and charity she was in, and bore towards her mistress that night. In every
The first night, as soon as the corporal had conducted my uncle Toby upstairs, which was about ten-----Mrs. Wadman threw herself into her armchair, and crossing her left knee with her right, which formed a resting place for her elbow, she reclined her cheek upon the palm of her hand, and leaning forwards, ruminated till midnight upon both sides of the question.
The second night she went to her bureau, and having ordered Bridget to bring her up a couple of fresh candles and leave them upon the table, she took out her marriage settlement, and read it over with great devotion; and the third night (which was the last of my uncle Toby's stay), when Bridget had pulled down the night shift, and was assaying to stick in the corking pin----
-----With a kick of both heels at once, but at the same time the most natural kick that could be kicked in her situation----- for supposing * * * * * * * * * to be the sun in its meridian, it was a northeast kick----she kicked the pin out of her fingers--the etiquette which hung upon it, down -----down it fell to the ground, and was shivered into a thousand atoms.
From all which it was plain that widow Wadman was in
love with my uncle Toby.
This made an armistice (that is, speaking with regard to
my uncle Toby-----but with respect to Mrs. Wadman, a
vacancy)----of almost eleven years. But in all cases of this
nature, as it is the second blow, happen at what distance of
time it will, which makes the fray-----I choose for that reason
to call these the amours of my uncle Toby with Mrs.
This is not a distinction without a difference.
It is not like the affair of an old hat cocked-----and a cocked old hat, about which your Reverences have so often been at odds with one another----but there is a difference here in the nature of things----
And let me tell you, gentry, a wide one too.
Widow Wadman would do neither the one or the other-----
-----Gracious heaven!-----but I forget I am a little of her
temper myself; for whenever it so falls out, which it
sometimes does about the equinoxes, that an earthly goddess is
so much this, and that, and t'other that I cannot eat my
breakfast for her----and that she careth not three halfpence
whether I eat my breakfast or no-----
-----Curse on her! and so I send her to Tartary, and from
Tartary to Terra del Fuego, and so on to the devil: in short
there is not an infernal niche where I do not take her divinityship
and stick it.
But as the heart is tender, and the passions in these tides
ebb and flow ten times in a minute, I instantly bring her
back again; and as I do all things in extremes, I place her in
the very centre of the milky way-----
Brightest of stars! thou wilt shed thy influence upon
someone-------
----The deuce take her and her influence too------for at
that word I lose all patience-----much good may it do him!
----By all that is hirsute and gashly! I cry, taking off my
furred cap, and twisting it round my finger-----I would not
give sixpence for a dozen such!
------But 'tis an excellent cap too (putting it upon my head,
and pressing it close to my ears)-----and warm-----and soft;
especially if you stroke it the right way-----but alas! that will
-----No; I shall never have a finger in the pie (so here I break my metaphor)-----
Crust and crumb
Inside and out
Top and bottom-----I detest it, I hate it, I repudiate it----- I'm sick at the sight of it-----
'Tis all pepper,
garlic,
staragen,
salt, and
devil's dung-----by the great archcook of cooks, who does nothing, I think, from morning to night, but sit down by the fireside and invent inflammatory dishes for us, I would not touch it for the world-----
O Tristram! Tristram! cried Jenny.
O Jenny! Jenny! replied I, and so went on with the twelfth
chapter.
Lord, how I have heated my imagination with this
metaphor!
A gitating
B ewitching
C onfounded
D evilish affairs of life------the most
E xtravagant
F utilitous
G alligaskinish
H andy-dandyish
I racundulous (there is no K to it) and
L yrical of all human passions: at the same time, the most
M isgiving
N innyhammering
O bstipating
P ragmatical
S tridulous
R idiculous-----though by the bye the R should have gone first----But in short 'tis of such a nature, as my father once told my uncle Toby upon the close of a long dissertation upon the subject-----``You can scarce,'' said he, ``combine two ideas together upon it, brother Toby, without an hypallage''------What's that? cried my uncle Toby.
The cart before the horse, replied my father-----
------And what has he to do there? cried my uncle Toby-----
Nothing, quoth my father, but to get in----or let it alone. - Now widow Wadman, as I told you before, would do neither the one or the other.
She stood however ready harnessed and caparisoned at
all points to watch accidents.
For my part, could I always have the ordering of it which way I would be burnt myself-----for I cannot bear the thoughts of being burnt like a beast--I would oblige a housewife constantly to light me at the top; for then I should burn down decently to the socket; that is, from my head to my heart, from my heart to my liver, from my liver to my bowels, and so on by the mesaraic veins and arteries, through ail the turns and lateral insertions of the intestines and their tunicles to the blind gut----
-----I beseech you, Dr. Slop, quoth my uncle Toby, interrupting him as he mentioned the blind gut, in a discourse with my father the night my mother was brought to bed of me-----I beseech you, quoth my uncle Toby, to tell me which is the blind gut; for, old as I am, I vow I do not know to this day where it lies.
The blind gut, answered Dr. Slop, lies betwixt the Ileum and Colon----
-----In a man? said my father.
-----'Tis precisely the same, cried Dr. Slop, in a woman-----
That's more than I know, quoth my father.
Now, through all the lumber rooms of military furniture,
including both of horse and foot, from the great arsenal of
Venice to the Tower of London (exclusive), if Mrs. Wadman
had been rummaging for seven years together, and with
Bridget to help her, she could not have found any one blind
or mantelet so fit for her purpose as that which the expediency
of my uncle Toby's affairs had fixed up ready to her
hands.
I believe I have not told you----but I don't know-----possibly
I have-----be it as it will, 'tis one of the number of
those many things which a man had better do over again
than dispute about lt-----That whatever town or fortress the
corporal was at work upon, during the course of their
campaign my uncle Toby always took care on the inside of his
sentry box, which was towards his left hand, to have a plan
of the place, fastened up with two or three pins at the top,
but loose at the bottom, for the conveniency of holding it up
to the eye, &c. . . . as occasions required; so that when an
attack was resolved upon, Mrs. Wadman had nothing more
to do, when she had got advanced to the door of the sentry
box, but to extend her right hand; and edging in her left foot
at the same movement, to take hold of the map or plan, or
upright, or whatever it was, and with outstretched neck meeting
it halfway,----to advance it towards her; on which my
uncle Toby's passions were sure to catch fire-----for he
would instantly take hold of the other corner of the map in
his left hand, and with the end of his pipe in the other, begin
an explanation.
When the attack was advanced to this point,--the world
will naturally enter into the reasons of Mrs. Wadman's next
-----It obliged my uncle Toby to make use of his forefinger.
The difference it made in the attack was this, That in going upon it, as in the first case, with the end of her forefinger against the end of my uncle Toby's tobacco pipe, she might have travelled with it along the lines from Dan to Beersheba, had my uncle Toby's lines reached so far, without any effect: For as there was no arterial or vital heat in the end of the tobacco pipe, it could excite no sentiment-----it could neither give fire by pulsation----or receive it by sympathy-----'twas nothing but smoke.
Whereas, in following my uncle Toby's forefinger with hers, close through all the little turns and indentings of his works--pressing sometimes against the side of it--then treading upon its nail-----then tripping it up-----then touching it here-----then there, and so on----it set something at least in motion.
This, though slight skirmishing, and at a distance from the main body, yet drew on the rest; for here, the map usually falling with the back of it close to the side of the sentry box, my uncle Toby, in the simplicity of his soul, would lay his hand flat upon it, in order to go on with his explanation; and Mrs. Wadman, by a manoeuvre as quick as thought, would as certainly place hers close besides it; this at once opened a communication large enough for any sentiment to pass or repass which a person shilled in the elementary and practical part of love-making has occasion for-----
By bringing up her forefinger parallel (as before) to my uncle Toby's-----it unavoidably brought the thumb into action-----and the forefinger and thumb being once engaged, as naturally brought in the whole hand. Thine, dear uncle Toby! was never now in its right place-----Mrs. Wadman had it ever to take up, or, with the gentlest pushings, protrusions, and equivocal compressions that a hand to be removed is capable of receiving---to get it pressed a hairbreadth of one side out of her way.
Whilst this was doing, how could she forget to make him sensible that it was her leg (and no one's else) at the bottom
of the sentry box, which slightly pressed against the calf of
-----The deuce take it! said my uncle Toby.
By all that ls priestly! I value this precious relic, with its
stigmata and pricks, more than all the relics of the Romish
church-----always excepting, when I am writing upon these
matters, the pricks which entered the flesh of St. Radagunda
in the desert, which in your road from FESSE to CLUNY, the
nuns of that name will show you for love.
lt has lain there these six weeks, replied the corporal, till this very morning that the old woman kindled the fire with it-----
-----Then, said my uncle Toby, there is no further occasion for our services. The more, an' please your Honour, the pity, said the corporal; in uttering which, he cast his spade into the wheelbarrow, which was beside him, with an air the most expressive of disconsolation that can be imagined, and was heavily turtling about to look for his pickaxe, his pioneer's shovel, his pickets and other little military stores, in order to carry them off the field-----when a heigh ho! from the sentry box, which, being made of thin slit deal, reverberated the sound more sorrowfully to his ear, forbad him.
------No, said the corporal to himself, I'll do it before his Honour rises tomorrow morning; so taking his spade out of the wheelbarrow again, with a little earth in it, as if to level something at the foot of the glacis------but with a real intent to approach nearer to his master, in order to divert him---- he loosened a sod or two,------pared their edges with his spade, and having given them a gentle blow or two with the back of it, he sat himself down close by my uncle Toby's feet, and began as follows.
A soldier, cried my uncle Toby, interrupting the corporal, is no more exempt from saying a foolish thing, Trim, than a man of letters----But not so often, an' please your Honour, replied the corporal----My uncle Toby gave a nod.
It was a thousand pities then, said the corporal, casting his eye upon Dunkirk, and the mole, as Servius Sulpicius, in re-turning out of Asia (when he sailed from Aegina towards Megara) did upon Corinth and Piraeus-----
------``It was a thousand pities, an' please your Honour, to destroy these works--and a thousand pities to have let them stood.''-----
-----Thou art right, Trim, in both cases, said my uncle Toby-----This, continued the corporal, is the reason that from the beginning of their demolition to the end----I have never once whistled, or sung, or laughed, or cried, or talked of past-done deeds, or told your Honour one story good or bad-----
-----Thou hast many excellencies, Trim, said my uncle Toby, and I hold it not the least of them, as thou happenest to be a storyteller, that of the number thou hast told me, either to amuse me in my painful hours, or divert me in my grave ones-----thou hast seldom told me a bad one-----
------Because, an' please your Honour, except one of a King of Bohemia and his seven castles,---they are all true; for they are about myself----
I do not like the subject the worse, Trim, said my uncle Toby, on that score: But prithee what is this story? thou hast excited my curiosity.
I'll tell it your Honour, quoth the corporal directly----- Provided, said my uncle Toby, looking earnestly towards Dunkirk and the mole again-----provided it is not a merry one; to such, Trim, a man should ever bring one half of the entertainment along with him; and the disposition I am in at present would wrong both thee, Trim, and thy story-----It is not a merry one by any means, replied the corporal----Nor would I have it altogether a grave one, added my uncle Toby -----it is neither the one nor the other, replied the corporal, but will suit your Honour exactly-----Then I'll thank thee for it with all my heart, cried my uncle Toby, so prithee begin it Trim.
The corporal made his reverence; and though it is not so easy a matter as the world imagines to pull off a lank Montero cap with grace-----or a whit less difficult, in my conceptions, when a man is sitting squat upon the ground, to make a bow so teeming with respect as the corporal was wont, yet by
The story of the King of Bohemia
and his seven castles. There was a certain King of Bo -- he--------
As the corporal was entering the confines of Bohemia, my uncle Toby obliged him to halt for a single moment; he had set out bareheaded, having, since he pulled off his Montero cap in the latter end of the last chapter, left it lying beside him on the ground.
-----The eye of Goodness espieth all things-----so that before the corporal had well got through the first five words of his story, had my uncle Toby twice touched his Montero cap with the end of his cane, interrogatively-----as much as to say, Why don't you put it on, Trim? Trim took it up with the most respectful slowness, and casting a glance of humiliation, as he did it, upon the embroidery of the forepart, which, being dismally tarnished and frayed moreover in some of the principal leaves and boldest parts of the pattern, he laid it down again betwixt his two feet, in order to moralize upon the subject.
------'Tis every word of it but too true, cried my uncle Toby, that thou art about to observe--
``Nothing in this world, Trim, is made to last forever.''
-----But when tokens, dear Tom of thy love and remembrance wear out, said Trim, what shall we say?
There is no occasion, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby, to say anything else; and was a man to puzzle his brains till Doom's day, I believe, Trim, it would be impossible.
The corporal perceiving my uncle Toby was in the right, and that it would be in vain for the wit of man to think of
The story of the King of Bohemia and
his seven castles, continued There was a certain King of Bohemia, but in whose reign, except his own, I am not able to inform your Honour-----I do not desire it of thee, Trim, by any means, cried my uncle Toby.
-----It was a little before the time an' please your Honour, when giants were beginning to leave off breeding;---- but in what year of our Lord that was----
-----I would not give a halfpenny to know, said my uncle Toby.
-----Only, an' please your Honour, it makes a story look the better in the face-----
-----'Tis thy own, Trim, so ornament it after thy own fashion; and take any date, continued my uncle Toby, looking pleasantly upon him--take any date in the whole world thou choosest, and put it to--thou art heartily welcome-----
The corporal bowed; for of every century, and of every year of that century, from the first creation of the world down to Noah's flood; and from Noah's flood to the birth of Abraham; through all the pilgrimages of the patriarchs to the departure of the Israelites out of Egypt-----and throughout all the Dynasties, Olympiads, Urbeconditas, and other memorable epochas of the different nations of the world, down to the coming of Christ, and from thence to the very moment in which the corporal was telling his story--had my uncle Toby subjected this vast empire of time and all its abysses at his feet; but as MODESTY scarce touches with a finger what LIBERALITY offers her with both hands open---- the corporal contented himself with the very worst year of the whole bunch; which, to prevent your Honours of the Majority and Minority from tearing the very flesh off your bones in contestation, ``Whether that year is not always the last cast year of the last cast almanac''-----I tell you plainly it was; but from a different reason than you wot of-----
----It was the year next him----which being the year of our Lord seventeen hundred and twelve, when the Duke of Ormond was playing the devil in Flanders-----the corporal took it, and set out with it afresh on his expedition to Bohemia.
The story of the King of Bohemia and
his seven castles, continued In the year of our Lord one thousand seven hundred and twelve, there was, an' please your Honour-----
-----To tell thee truly, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby, any other date would have pleased me much better, not only on account of the sad stain upon our history that year, in marching off our troops, and refusing to cover the siege of Quesnoi, though Fagel was carrying on the works with such incredible vigour-----but likewise on the score, Trim, of thy own story; because if there are-----and which, from what thou hast dropt, I partly suspect to be the fact-----if there are giants in it-----
There is but one, an' please your Honour-----
-----'Tis as bad as twenty, replied my uncle Toby------thou shouldst have carried him back some seven or eight hundred years out of harm's way, both of critics and other people; and therefore I would advise thee, if ever thou tellest it again------
----If I live, an' please your Honour, but once to get through it, I will never tell it again, quoth Trim, either to man, woman, or child----Poo-----poo! said my uncle Toby -----but with accents of such sweet encouragement did he utter it that the corporal went on with his story with more alacrity than ever.
The story of the King of Bohemia and
his seven castles, continued There was, an' please your Honour, said the corporal, raising his voice and rubbing the palms of his two hands cheerily together as he begun, a certain King of Bohemia-----
----Leave out the date entirely, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby, leaning forwards, and laying his hand gently upon the corporal's shoulder to temper the interruption----leave it out entirely, Trim; a story passes very well without these niceties,
Right, answered my uncle Toby; it is not easy, Trim, for one bred up as thou and I have been to arms, who seldom looks further forwards than to the end of his musket, or backwards beyond his knapsack, to know much about this matter-----God bless your Honour! said the corporal, won by the manner of my uncle Toby's reasoning as much as by the reasoning itself; he has something else to do; if not on action, or a march, or upon duty in his garrison------he has his firelock, an' please your Honour, to furbish------his accoutrements to take care of----his regimentals to mend------ himself to shave and keep clean so as to appear always like what he is upon the parade; what business, added the corporal triumphantly, has a soldier, an' please your Honour, to know anything at all of geography?
-----Thou wouldst have said chronology, Trim, said my uncle Toby; for as for geography, 'tis of absolute use to him; he must be acquainted intimately with every country and its boundaries where his profession carries him; he should know every town and city, and village and hamlet, with the canals, the roads and hollow ways which lead up to them; there is not a river or a rivulet he passes, Trim, but he should be able at first sight to tell thee what is its name-----in what mountains it takes its rise-----what is its course-----how far it is navigable-----where fordable----where not; he should know the fertility of every valley, as well as the hind who ploughs it; and be able to describe, or, if it is required, to give thee an exact map of all the plains and defiles, the forts, the acclivities, the woods and morasses through and by which his army is to march; he should know their produce, their plants, their minerals, their waters, their animals, their seasons, their climates, their heats and cold, their inhabitants, their customs, their language, their policy, and even their religion.
Is it else to be conceived, corporal, continued my uncle Toby, rising up in his sentry box, as he began to warm in his part of his discourse----how Marlborough could have marched his army from the banks of the Maas to Belburg; from Belburg to Kerpenord-----(here the corporal could sit no longer) from Kerpenord, Trim, to Kalsaken; from Kalsaken to Newdorf; from Newdorf to Landenbourg; from Landenbourg to Mildenheim; from Mildenheim to Elchingen; from Elchingen to Gingen; from Gingen to Balmerchoffen; from Balmerchoffen to Skellenburg, where he broke in upon the enemy's works; forced his passage over the Danube;
I am far from controverting, continued my uncle Toby, what historians agree in, that in the year of our Lord 1380, under the reign of Wenceslaus, son of Charles the Fourth -----a certain priest, whose name was Schwartz, showed the use of powder to the Venetians, in their wars against the Genoese; but 'tis certain he was not the first; because if we are to believe Don Pedro, the Bishop of Leon-----How came priests and bishops, an' please your Honour, to trouble their heads so much about gunpowder?-----God knows, said my uncle Toby-----his providence brings good out of everything -----and he avers, in his chronicle of King Alphonsus, who reduced Toledo, That in the year 1343, which was full thirty-seven years before that time, the secret of powder was well known, and employed with success, both by Moors and Christians, not only in their seacombats, at that period, but in many of their most memorable sieges in Spain and Barbary -----And all the world knows that Friar Bacon had wrote expressly about it, and had generously given the world a receipt to make it by, above a hundred and fifty years before even Schwartz was born----And that the Chinese, added my uncle Toby, embarrass us and all accounts of it still more, by boasting of the invention some hundreds of years even before him-----
----They are a pack of liars, I believe, cried Trim-----
-----They are somehow or other deceived, said my uncle Toby, in this matter, as is plain to me from the present miserable state of military architecture amongst them; which
My uncle Toby, though in the utmost distress for a comparison, most courteously refused Trim's offer-----till Trim telling him he had half a dozen more in Bohemia, which he knew not how to get off his hands----my uncle Toby was so touched with the pleasantry of heart of the corporal-----that he discontinued his dissertation upon gunpowder-----and begged the corporal forthwith to go on with his story of the King of Bohemia and his seven castles.
The story of the King of Bohemia and
his seven castles, continued This unfortunate King of Bohemia, said Trim-----Was he unfortunate then? cried my uncle Toby, for he had been so wrapt up in his dissertation upon gunpowder and other military affairs that, though he had desired the corporal to go on, yet the many interruptions he had given dwelt not so strong upon his fancy as to account for the epithet----Was he unfortunate then, Trim? said my uncle Toby, pathetically -----The corporal, wishing first the word and all its synonyms at the devil, forthwith began to run back in his mind the principal events in the King of Bohemia's story; from every one of which, it appearing that he was the most fortunate man that ever existed in the world-----it put the corporal to a stand: for not caring to retract his epithet----and less, to explain it----and least of all, to twist his tale (like men of lore) to serve a system----he looked up in my uncle Toby's face for assistance-----but seeing it was the very thing my uncle Toby sat in expectation of himself-----after a hum and a haw, he went on------
The King of Bohemia, an' please your Honour, replied the corporal, was unfortunate, as thus----That taking great pleasure and delight in navigation and all sort of sea affairs -----and there happening throughout the whole kingdom of Bohemia to be no seaport town whatever-----
How the deuce should there-----Trim? cried my uncle Toby; for Bohemia being totally inland, it could have happened no otherwise--it might, said Trim, if it had pleased God------
My uncle Toby never spoke of the being and natural attributes of God but with diffidence and hesitation-----
-----I believe not, replied my uncle Toby, after some pause -----for being inland, as I said, and having Silesia and Moravia to the east; Lusatia and Upper Saxony to the north; Franconia to the west; and Bavaria to the south: Bohemia could not have been propelled to the sea, without ceasing to be Bohemia-----nor could the sea, on the other hand, have come up to Bohemia, without overflowing a great part of Germany, and destroying millions of unfortunate inhabitants who could make no defence against it-----Scandalous! cried Trim-----Which would bespeak, added my uncle Toby, mildly, such a want of compassion in him who is the father of it-----that, I think, Trim,-----the thing could have happened no way.
The corporal made the bow of unfeigned conviction; and went on.
Now the King of Bohemia with his queen and courtiers happening one fine summer's evening to walk out----Aye! there the word happening is right, Trim, cried my uncle Toby; for the King of Bohemia and his queen might have walked out, or let it alone;----'twas a matter of contingency, which might happen, or not, just as chance ordered it.
King William was of an opinion, an' please your Honour, quoth Trim, that everything was predestined for us in this world; insomuch, that he would often say to his soldiers that ``every ball had its billet.'' He was a great man, said my uncle Toby-----And I believe, continued Trim, to this day that the shot which disabled me at the battle of Landen was pointed at my knee for no other purpose but to take me out of his service, and place me in your Honour's, where I should be taken so much better care of in my old age------it shall never, Trim, be construed otherwise, said my uncle Toby.
The heart both of the master and the man were alike subject to sudden overflowings;-----a short silence ensued.
Besides, said the corporal, resuming the discourse----but in a gayer accent-----if it had not been for that single shot, I had never, an' please your Honour, been in love----
So, thou wast once in love, Trim! said my uncle Toby, smiling-----
Souse! replied the corporal----over head and ears! an, please your Honour. Prithee when? where?-----and how came it to pass?----I never heard one word of it before, quoth my uncle Toby:----I dare say, answered Trim that every drummer and serjeant's son in the regiment knew of it
Your Honour remembers with concern, said the corporal, the total rout and confusion of our camp and army at the affair of Landen; everyone was left to shift for himself; and if it had not been for the regiments of Wyndham, Lumley, and Galway, which covered the retreat over the bridge of Neerspeeken, the king himself could scarce have gained it ----he was pressed hard, as your Honour knows, on every side of him-----
Gallant mortal! cried my uncle Toby, caught up with enthusiasm-----this moment, now that all is lost, I see him galloping across me, corporal, to the left, to bring up the remains of the English horse along with him to support the right, and tear the laurel from Luxembourg's brows, if yet 'tis possible----I see him with the knot of his scarf just shot off, infusing fresh spirits into poor Galway's regiment ------riding along the line-----then wheeling about, and charging Conti at the head of it-----Brave! brave by heaven! cried my uncle Toby-----he deserves a crown-----As richly as a thief a halter, shouted Trim.
My uncle Toby knew the corporal's loyalty;------otherwise the comparison was not at all to his mind-----it did not altogether strike the corporal's fancy when he had made it---- but it could not be recalled-----so he had nothing to do but proceed.
As the number of wounded was prodigious, and no one had time to think of anything but his own safety---Though Talmash, said my uncle Toby, brought off the foot with great prudence-----But I was left upon the field, said the corporal. Thou wast so; poor fellow! replied my uncle Toby -----So that it was noon the next day, continued the corporal, before I was exchanged, and put into a cart with thirteen or fourteen more, in order to be conveyed to our hospital.
There is no part of the body, an' please your Honour, where a wound occasions more intolerable anguish than upon the knee----
Except the groin, said my uncle Toby. An' please your Honour, replied the corporal, the knee, in my opinion, must certainly be the most acute, there being so many tendons and what-d'ye-call-'ems all about it.
It is for that reason, quoth my uncle Toby, that the groin is infinitely more sensible-----there being not only as many tendons and what-d'ye-call-'ems (for I know their names as little as thou dost)-----about it----but moreover * * *-----
Mrs. Wadman, who had been all the time in her arbour
The dispute was maintained with amicable and equal force betwixt my uncle Toby and Trim for some time; till Trim at length recollecting that he had often cried at his master's sufferings, but never shed a tear at his own-----was for giving up the point, which my uncle Toby would not allow---- 'Tis a proof of nothing, Trim, said he, but the generosity of thy temper-----
So that whether the pain of a wound in the groin (Caeteris paribus) is greater than the pain of a wound in the knee----- or
Whether the pain of a wound in the knee is not greater
than the pain of a wound in the groin-----are points which to
this day remain unsettled.
I was telling my sufferings to a young woman at a peasant's
house, where our cart, which was the last of the line, had
halted; they had helped me in, and the young woman had
taken a cordial out of her pocket and dropped it upon some
sugar, and seeing it had cheered me, she had given it me a
second and a third time------So I was telling her, an' please
your Honour, the anguish I was in, and was saying it was so
intolerable to me that I had much rather lie down upon the
bed, turning my face towards one which was in the corner of
the room-----and die, than go on-----when, upon her
at-tempting to lead me to it, I fainted away in her arms. She
was a good soul! as your Honour said the corporal wiping
his eyes, will hear.
I thought love had been a joyous thing, quoth my uncle
Toby.
'Tis the most serious thing, an' please your Honour (sometimes), that is in the world.
By the persuasion of the young woman, continued the corporal, the cart with the wounded men set off without me: she had assured them I should expire immediately if I was put into the cart. So when I came to myself-----I found myself in a still, quiet cottage, with no one but the young woman, and the peasant and his wife. I was laid across the bed in the corner of the room, with my wounded leg upon a chair, and the young woman beside me, holding the corner of her handkerchief dipped in vinegar to my nose with one hand, and rubbing my temples with the other.
I took her at first for the daughter of the peasant (for it was no inn)------so had offered her a little purse with eighteen florins, which my poor brother Tom (here Trim wiped his eyes) had sent me as a token, by a recruit, just before he set out for Lisbon------
----I never told your Honour that piteous story yet----- here Trim wiped his eyes a third time.
The young woman called the old man and his wife into the room, to show them the money, in order to gain me credit for a bed and what little necessaries I should want, till I should be in a condition to be got to the hospital-----Come then! said she, tying up the little purse-----I'll be your banker----- but as that office alone will not keep me employed, I'll be your nurse too.
I thought by her manner of speaking this, as well as by her dress, which I then began to consider more attentively---- that the young woman could not be the daughter of the peasant.
She was in black down to her toes, with her hair concealed under a cambric border, laid close to her forehead: she was one of those kind of nuns, an' please your Honour, of which, your Honour knows, there are a good many in Flanders which they let go loose----By thy description, Trim, said my uncle Toby, I dare say she was a young Beguine, of which there are none to be found anywhere but in the Spanish Netherlands------except at Amsterdam-----they differ from nuns in this, that they can quit their cloister if they choose to marry; they visit and take care of the sick by profession------I had rather, for my own part, they did it out of good nature.
----She often told me, quoth Trim, she did it for the love of Christ------I did not like it.-----I believe, Trim, we are both wrong, said my uncle Toby-----we'll ask Mr. Yorick
The young Beguine, continued the corporal, had scarce given herself time to tell me ``she would be my nurse,'' when she hastily turned about to begin the office of one, and prepare something for me-----and in a short time----though I thought it a long one----she came back with flannels, &c., &c., and having fomented my knee soundly for a couple of hours, &c., and made me a thin basin of gruel for my supper-----she wished me rest, and promised to be with me early in the morning.-----She wished me, an' please your Honour, what was not to be had. My fever ran very high that night------her figure made sad disturbance within me ------I was every moment cutting the world in two----to give her half of it-----and every moment was I crying, That I had nothing but a knapsack and eighteen florins to share with her-----The whole night long was the fair Beguine, like an angel, close by my bedside, holding back my curtain and offering me cordials-----and I was only awakened from my dream by her coming there at the hour promised, and giving them in reality. In truth, she was scarce ever from me, and so accustomed was I to receive life from her hands that my heart sickened, and I lost colour, when she left the room: and yet, continued the corporal (making one of the strangest reflections upon it in the world)------
-----``It was not love''-----for during the three weeks she was almost constantly with me, fomenting my knee with her hand, night and day-----I can honestly say, an' please your Honour-----that * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * * once.
That was very odd, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby-----
I think so too-----said Mrs. Wadman.
It never did, said the corporal.
I thought, Trim, said my uncle Toby, a man never fell in love so very suddenly.
Yes, an' please your honour, if he is in the way of it---- replied Trim.
I prithee, quoth my uncle Toby, inform me how this matter happened.
----With all pleasure, said the corporal, making a bow.
It was on a Sunday, in the afternoon, as I told your
Honour------
The old man and his wife had walked out----
Everything was still and hush as midnight about the
house-----
There was not so much as a duck or a duckling about the
yard-----
-----When the fair Beguine came in to see me.
My wound was then in a fair way of doing well-----the
inflammation had been gone off for some time, but it was
succeeded with an itching both above and below my knee, so
insufferable that I had not shut my eyes the whole night for it.
Let me see it, said she, kneeling down upon the ground
parallel to my knee, and laying her hand upon the part below
it-----It only wants rubbing a little, said the Beguine; so
covering it with the bedclothes, she began with the forefinger of
her right hand to rub under my knee, guiding her forefinger
backwards and forwards by the edge of the flannel which
kept on the dressing.
In five or six minutes I felt slightly the end of her second
-----not in that place, said my uncle Toby-----
Though it was the most serious despair in nature to the corporal-----he could not forbear smiling.
The young Beguine, continued the corporal, perceiving it was of great service to me-----from rubbing, for some time, with two fingers-----proceeded to rub, at length, with three -----till by little and little she brought down the fourth, and then rubbed with her whole hand: I will never say another word, an' please your Honour, upon hands again----but it was softer than satin------
-----Prithee, Trim, commend it as much as thou wilt, said my uncle Toby; I shall hear thy story with the more delight -----The corporal thanked his master most unfeignedly; but having nothing to say upon the Beguine's hand but the same over again----he proceeded to the effects of lt.
The fair Beguine, said the corporal, continued rubbing with her whole hand under my knee-----till I feared her zeal would weary her------``I would do a thousand times more,'' said she, ``for the love of Christ''-----In saying which she passed her hand across the flannel, to the part above my knee, which I had equally complained of, and rubbed it also.
I perceived, then, I was beginning to be in love----
As she continued rub-rub-rubbing-----I felt it spread from under her hand, an' please your Honour, to every part of my frame------
The more she rubbed, and the longer strokes she took---- the more the fire kindled in my veins----till at length, by two or three strokes longer than the rest-----my passion rose to the highest pitch-----I seized her hand----
-----And then, thou clappedst it to thy lips, Trim, said my uncle Toby----and madest a speech.
Whether the corporal's amour terminated precisely in the way my uncle Toby described it is not material; it is enough that it contained in it the essence of all the love-romances which ever have been wrote since the beginning of the world.
-----The attack was determined upon: it was facilitated still more by my uncle Toby's having ordered the corporal to wheel off the pioneer's shovel, the spade, the pickaxe, the pickets, and other military stores which lay scattered upon the ground where Dunkirk stood---The corporal had marched-----the field was clear.
Now consider, Sir, what nonsense it is, either in fighting, or writing, or anything else (whether in rhyme to it, or not) which a man has occasion to do-----to act by plan: for if ever Plan, independent of all circumstances, deserved registering in letters of gold (I mean in the archives of Gotham)-----it was certainly the PLAN of Mrs. Wadman's attack of my uncle Toby in his sentry box, BY PLAN------Now the Plan hanging up in it at this juncture being the Plan of Dunkirk -----and the tale of Dunkirk a tale of relaxation, it opposed every impression she could make: and besides, could she have gone upon it-----the manoeuvre of fingers and hands in the attack of the sentry box was so outdone by that of the fair Beguine's in Trim's story----that just then, that particular attack, however successful before-----became the most heartless attack that could be made------
O! let woman alone for this. Mrs. Wadman had scarce opened the wicker gate, when her genius sported with the change of circumstances.
-----She formed a new attack in a moment.
In saying which, Mrs. Wadman edged herself close in beside my uncle Toby, and squeezing herself down upon the corner of his bench, she gave him an opportunity of doing it without rising up----------Do look into it-----said she.
Honest soul! thou didst look into it with as much innocency of heart as ever child looked into a raree-show box; and 'twere as much a sin to have hurt thee.
-----If a man will be peeping of his own accord into things of that nature-----I've nothing to say to it-----
My uncle Toby never did: and I will answer for him that he would have sat quietly upon a sofa from June to January (which, you know, takes in both the hot and cold months), with an eye as fine as the Thracian * Rhodope's besides him, without being able to tell whether it was a black or a blue one.
The difficulty was to get my uncle Toby to look at one at all.
'Tis surmounted. And
I see him yonder with his pipe pendulous in his hand, and the ashes falling out of it------looking------and looking -----then rubbing his eyes-----and looking again, with twice the good nature that ever Galileo looked for a spot in the sun.
-----In vain! For by all the powers which animate the organ ----widow Wadman's left eye shines this moment as lucid as her right-----there is neither mote, or sand, or dust, or chaff, or speck, or particle of opaque matter floating in it----- There is nothing, my dear paternal uncle! but one lambent
* Rhodope Thracia tam inevitabili fascino instructa, tam exacte oculis intuens attraxit, ut si in illam quis incidesset, fieri non posset, quin caperetur.----I know not who.
------If thou lookest, uncle Toby, in search of this mote
one moment longer-----thou art undone.
I protest, Madam, said my uncle Toby, I can see nothing
whatever in your eye.
It is not in the white, said Mrs. Wadman; my uncle Toby
looked with might and main into the pupil----
Now of all the eyes which ever were created-----from
your own, Madam, up to those of Venus herself, which
certainly were as venereal a pair of eyes as ever stood in a head
------there never was an eye of them all so fitted to rob my
uncle Toby of his repose as the very eye at which he was
looking----it was not, Madam, a rolling eye------a romping
or a wanton one----nor was it an eye sparkling----petulant
or imperious----of high claims and terrifying exactions,
which would have curdled at once that milk of human nature
of which my uncle Toby was made up----but 'twas an eye
full of gentle salutations----and soft responses-----speaking
-----not like the trumpet stop of some ill-made organ, in
which many an eye I talk to holds coarse converse----but
whispering soft ----like the last low accents of an expiring
saint-----``How can you live comfortless, Captain Shandy,
and alone, without a bosom to lean your head on----or
trust your cares to?''
It was an eye-----
But I shall be in love with it myself, if I say another word about it.
-----It did my uncle Toby's business.
My father, as appears from many of his papers, was very
subject to this passion before he married-----but from a little
subacid kind of drollish impatience in his nature, whenever it
befell him, he would never submit to it like a Christian; but
would pish, and huff, and bounce, and hick, and play the
devil, and write the bitterest philippics against the eye that
ever man wrote----there is one in verse upon somebody's eye
or other, that for two or three nights together had put him
by his rest; which in his first transport of resentment against
it, he begins thus:
``A devil 'tis-----and mischief such doth work
As never yet did Pagan, Jew, or Turk.'' *
In short, during the whole paroxysm, my father was all
abuse and foul language, approaching rather towards
malediction----only he did not do it with as much method as
Emulphus-----he was too impetuous; nor with Ernulphus's
policy----for though my father, with the most intolerant
spirit, would curse both this and that, and everything under
heaven, which was either aiding or abetting to his love------
yet never concluded his chapter of curses upon it, without
cursing himself in at the bargain as one of the most
egregious fools and coxcombs, he would say, that ever was
let loose in the world.
My uncle Toby, on the contrary, took it like a lamb--sat
* This will be printed with my father's life of Socrates, etc, etc.
He took it like a lamb----I say.
In truth he had mistook it at first; for having taken a ride
with my father, that very morning, to save if possible a
beautiful wood, which the dean and chapter were hewing down to
give to the poor; * which said wood being in full view of my
uncle Toby's house, and of singular service to him in his
description of the battle of Wynendale-----by trotting on too
hastily to save it-----upon an uneasy saddle-----worse horse,
&c., &c.... it had so happened that the serious part of the
blood had got betwixt the two skins, in the nethermost part
of my uncle Toby-----the first shootings of which (as my
uncle Toby had no experience of love) he had taken for a
part of the passion----till the blister breaking in the one
case-----and the other remaining-----my uncle Toby was
presently convinced that his wound was not a shin-deep
wound-----but that it had gone to his heart.
``I am in love, corporal!'' quoth my uncle Toby.
* Mr. Shandy must mean the poor in spirit; inasmuch as
they divided the money among themselves.
-----We lost it, an' please your Honour, somehow betwixt us-----but your Honour was as free from love, then, as I am ----'twas just whilst thou wentst off with the wheelbarrow -----with Mrs. Wadman, quoth my uncle Toby---She has left a ball here----added my uncle Toby-----pointing to his breast-----
------She can no more, an' please your Honour, stand a seige than she can fly------cried the corporal-----
----But as we are neighbours, Trim;-----the best way I think is to let her know it civilly first-----quoth my uncle Toby.
Now if I might presume, said the corporal, to differ from your Honour-----
------Why else do I talk to thee, Trim, said my uncle Toby, mildly----
------Then I would begin, an' please your Honour, with making a good thundering attack upon her, in return--and telling her civilly afterwards-----for if she knows anything of your Honour's being in love, beforehand----L---d help her! -----she knows no more at present of it, Trim said my uncle Toby----than the child unborn------
Precious souls!------
Mrs. Wadman had told it, with all its circumstances, to Mrs. Bridget twenty-four hours before; and was at that very moment sitting in council with her, touching some slight misgivings with regard to the issue of the affair, which the devil, who never lies dead in a ditch, had put into her head----- before he would allow half time to get quietly through her Te Deum-----
I am terribly afraid, said widow Wadman, in case I should marry him, Bridget-----that the poor Captain will not enjoy his health, with the monstrous wound upon his groin----
It may not Madam be so very large, replied Bridget, as you think-----and I believe besides added she----that 'tis dried up----
----I could like to know--merely for his sake, said Mrs. Wadman --..
-----We'll know the long and the broad of it, in ten days -----answered Mrs. Bridget, for whilst the Captain is paying his addresses to you-----I'm confident Mr. Trim will be for making love to me----and I'll let him as much as he will----- added Bridget-----to get it all out of him----
The measures were taken at once----and my uncle Toby and the corporal went on with theirs.
Now, quoth the corporal, setting his left hand akimbo, and giving such a flourish with his right as just promised success ------and no more------if your Honour will give me leave to lay down the plan of this attack-----
-----Thou wilt please me by it, Trim, said my uncle Toby, exceedingly----and as I foresee thou must act in it as my aide de camp, here's a crown, corporal, to begin with, to steep thy commission.
Then, an' please your Honour, said the corporal (making a bow first for his commission)------we will begin with getting your Honour's laced clothes out of the great campaign trunk, to be well aired, and have the blue and gold taken up at the sleeves-----and I'll put your white Ramillie wig fresh into pipes--and send for a tailor, to have your Honour's thin scarlet breeches turned-----
----I had better take the red plush ones quoth my uncle
Toby-----They will be too clumsy-----said the corporal.
I wish I may but manage it right, said my uncle Toby----- but I declare, corporal, I had rather march up to the very edge of a trench-----
----A woman is quite a different thing----said the corporal.
------I suppose so, quoth my uncle Toby.
It pleased my father well; it was not only a laconic way
I must here observe to you the difference betwixt
My father's ass
and my hobby-horse----in order to keep characters as separate as may be in our fancies as we go along.
For my hobby-horse, if you recollect a little, is no way a vicious beast; lie has scarce one hair or lineament of the ass about him-----'Tis the sporting little filly-folly which carries you out for the present hour------a maggot, a butterfly, a picture, a fiddlestick-----an uncle Toby's siege-----or an any- thing, which a man makes a shift to get a stride on, to canter it away from the cares and solicitudes of life------'Tis as useful a beast as is in the whole creation----nor do I really see how the world could do without it------
-----But for my father's ass-------oh! mount him-----
mount him-----mount him-----(that's three times, is it not?)
----mount him not:----'tis a beast concupiscent--and
foul befall the man who does not hinder him from kicking.
Now my uncle Toby thinking more of the part where he
had had the blister than of Hilarion's metaphor-----and our
preconceptions having (you know) as great a power over the
sounds of words as the shapes of things, he had imagined
that my father, who was not very ceremonious in his choice
of words, had enquired after the part by its proper name; so
notwithstanding my mother, Dr. Slop, and Mr. Yorick were
sitting in the parlour, he thought it rather civil to conform to
the term my father had made use of than not. When a man
is hemmed in by two indecorums, and must commit one of
My a---, quoth my uncle Toby, is much better-----brother Shandy-----My father had formed great expectations from his ass in this onset; and would have brought him on again; but Dr. Slop setting up an intemperate laugh-----and my mother crying out L----- bless us!-----it drove my father's ass off the field-----and the laugh then becoming general -----there was no bringing him back to the charge, for some time-----
And so the discourse went on without him.
Everybody, said my mother, says you are in love, brother Toby-----and we hope it is true.
I am as much in love, sister, I believe, replied my uncle Toby, as any man usually is-----Humph! said my father----- and when did you know it? quoth my mother------
-----When the blister broke, replied my uncle Toby.
My uncle Toby's reply put my father into good temper
-----so he charged o' foot.
What signifies it, Brother Shandy, replied my uncle Toby,
which of the two it is, provided it will but make a man marry,
and love his wife, and get a few children.
------A few children! cried my father, rising out of his
chair, and looking full in my mother's face, as he forced his
way betwixt hers and Dr. Slop's-----a few children! cried my
father, repeating my uncle Toby's words as he walked to
and fro------
-----Not, my dear brother Toby, cried my father, recovering
himself all at once, and coming close up to the back of
my uncle Toby's chair-----not that I should be sorry hadst
thou a score-----on the contrary I should rejoice--and be
My uncle Toby stole his hand unperceived behind his chair. to give my father's a squeeze-----
------Nay, moreover, continued he, keeping hold of my uncle Toby's hand-----so much dost thou possess, my dear Toby, of the milk of human nature, and so little of its asperities-----'tis piteous the world is not peopled by creatures which resemble thee; and was I an Asiatic monarch, added my father, heating himself with his new project-----I would oblige thee, provided it would not impair thy strength----or dry up thy radical moisture too fast-----or weaken thy memory or fancy, brother Toby, which these gymnics inordinately taken are apt to do-----else, dear Toby, I would procure thee the most beautiful women in my empire, and I would oblige thee, nolens volens, to beget for me one subject every month-----
As my father pronounced the last word of the sentence -----my mother took a pinch of snuff.
Now I would not, quoth my uncle Toby, get a child, nol- ens volens, that is, whether I would or no, to please the greatest prince upon earth------
------And 'twould be cruel in me, brother Toby, to compel thee, said my father-----but 'tis a case put to show thee that it is not thy begetting a child-----in case thou shouldst be able------but the system of Love and marriage thou goest upon, which I would set thee right in-----
There is at least, said Yorick, a great deal of reason and plain sense in Captain Shandy's opinion of love; and 'tis amongst the ill-spent hours of my life which I have to answer for, that I have read so many flourishing poets and rhetoricians in my time, from whom I never could extract so much-----
I wish, Yorick, said my father, you had read Plato; for there you would have learnt that there are two LOVES----I know there were two RELIGIONS, replied Yorick, amongst the ancients-----one-----for the vulgar, and another for the learned; but I think ONE LOVE might have served both of them very well-----
It could not, replied my father-----and for the same reasons: for of these LOVES, according to Ficinus's comment upon Valesius, the one is rational ----
-----the other is natural---- the first ancient-----without mother----where Venus had nothing to do: the second, begotten of Jupiter and Dione--
-----Pray, brother, quoth my uncle Toby, what has a man
This latter, continued he, partakes wholly of the nature of Venus.
The first, which is the golden chain let down from heaven, excites to love heroic, which comprehends in it, and excites to the desire of philosophy and truth-----the second excites to desire, simply----
-----I think the procreation of children as beneficial to the world, said Yorick, as the finding out the longitude-----
------To be sure, said my mother, love keeps peace in the world-----
-----In the house-----My dear, I own----
-----It replenishes the earth, said my mother-----
But it keeps heaven empty--my dear, replied my father.
----'Tis Virginity, cried Slop, triumphantly, which fills paradise.
Well pushed, nun! quoth my father.
What did not a little contribute to leave him thus without
an ally was that if there was any one post more untenable
than the rest, he would be sure to throw himself into it; and
to do him justice, when he was once there, he would defend
it so gallantly that 'twould have been a concern, either to a
brave man, or a good-natured one, to have seen him driven
out.
Yorick, for this reason, though he would often attack him
----yet could never bear to do it with all his force.
Dr. Slop's VIRGINITY, in the close of the last chapter, had
got him for once on the right side of the rampart; and he
was beginning to blow up all the convents in Christendom
-----She has gained her point.
In this case, continued my father, which Plato, I am persuaded, never thought of-----Love, you see, is not so much a SENTIMENT as a SITUATION, into which a man enters, as my brother Toby would do, into a corps------no matter whether he loves the service or no-----being once in it-----he acts as if he did; and takes every step to show himself a man of prowess.
The hypothesis, like the rest of my father's, was plausible enough, and my uncle Toby had but a single word to object to it----in which Trim stood ready to second him-----but my father had not drawn his conclusion------
For this reason, continued my father (stating the case over again), notwithstanding all the world knows that Mrs. Wadman affects my brother Toby------and my brother Toby contrariwise affects Mrs. Wadman, and no obstacle in nature to forbid the music striking up this very night, yet will I answer for it that this selfsame tune will not be played this twelvemonth.
We have taken our measures badly, quoth my uncle Toby, looking up interrogatively in Trim's face.
I would lay my Montero cap, said Trim-----Now Trim's Montero cap, as I once told you, was his constant wager; and having furbished it up that very night, in order to go upon the attack------it made the odds look more considerable --I would lay, an' please your Honour, my Montero cap to a shilling------was it proper, continued Trim (making a bow), to offer a wager before your Honours----
----There is nothing improper in it, said my father---- 'tis a mode of expression; for in saying thou wouldst lay thy
-----Now, What dost thou believe?
That widow Wadman, an' please your Worship, cannot hold it out ten days-----
And whence, cried Slop, jeeringly, hast thou all this knowledge of woman, friend?
By falling in love with a popish clergywoman, said Trim.
'Twas a Beguine, said my uncle Toby.
Dr. Slop was too much in wrath to listen to the distinction; and my father taking that very crisis to fall in helter-skelter upon the whole order of Nuns and Beguines, a set of silly, fusty baggages-----Slop could not stand it-----and my uncle Toby having some measures to take about his breeches -----and Yorick about his fourth general division-----in order for their several attacks next day-----the company broke up: and my father being left alone, and having half an hour upon his hands betwixt that and bedtime, he called for pen, ink, and paper, and wrote my uncle Toby the following letter of instructions.
My dear brother Toby, What I am going to say to thee is upon the nature of women, and of love-making to them; and perhaps it is as well for thee -----though not so well for me-----that thou hast occasion for a letter of instructions upon that head, and that I am able to write it to thee.
Had it been the good pleasure of him who disposes of our lots------and thou no sufferer by the knowledge, I had been well content that thou shouldst have dipped the pen this moment into the ink, instead of myself; but that not being the case-------- -----Mrs. Shandy being now close besides me, preparing for bed-----I have thrown together without order, and just as they have come into my mind, such hints and documents as I deem may be of use to thee; intending, in this, to give thee a token of my love; not doubting, my dear Toby, of the manner in which it will be accepted.
In the first place, with regard to all which concerns religion in the affair-----though I perceive from a glow in my cheek that I blush as I begin to speak to thee upon the subject, as well knowing, notwithstanding thy unaffected secrecy, how few of its offices thou neglectest----yet I would remind thee of one (during the continuance of thy courtship) in a
Shave the whole top of thy crown clean, once at least every four of five days, but oftener if convenient; lest in taking off thy wig before her, through absence of mind, she should be able to discover how much has been cut away by Time------how much by Trim.
-----'Twere better to keep ideas of baldness out of her fancy. Always carry it in thy mind, and act upon it, as a sure maxim, Toby-----
``That women are timid:'' And 'tis well they are--else there would be no dealing with them.
Let not thy breeches be too tight, or hang too loose about thy thighs, like the trunk hose of our ancestors.
------A just medium prevents all conclusions.
Whatever thou hast to say, be it more or less, forget not to utter it in a low soft tone of voice. Silence, and whatever approaches it, weaves dreams of midnight secrecy into the brain: For this cause, if thou canst help it, never throw down the tongs and poker.
Avoid all hinds of pleasantry and facetiousness in thy discourse with her, and do whatever lies in thy power, at the same time, to keep from her all books and writings which tend thereto: there are some devotional tracts, which if thou canst entice her to read over-----it will be well: but suffer her not to look into Rabelais, or Scarron, or Don Qui- xote-----
-----They are all books which excite laughter; and thou knowest, dear Toby, that there is no passion so serious as lust.
Stick a pin in the bosom of thy shirt before thou enterest her parlour.
And if thou are permitted to sit upon the same sofa with her, and she gives thee occasion to lay thy hand upon hers -----beware of taking it-----thou canst not lay thy hand on hers but she will feel the temper of thine. Leave that, and as many other things as thou canst, quite undetermined; by so doing, thou wilt have her curiosity on thy side; and if she is not conquered by that, and thy ass continues still kicking, which there is great reason to suppose-----Thou must begin with first losing a few ounces of blood below the ears, according to the practice of the ancient Scythians, who cured
Avicenna, after this, is for having the part anointed with the syrup of hellebore, using proper evacuations and purges ----and I believe rightly. But thou must eat little or no goat's flesh, nor red deer----nor even foal's flesh by any means; and carefully abstain------that is, as much as thou canst, from peacocks, cranes, coots, didappers, and water hens,----
As for thy drink-----I need not tell thee, it must be the infusion of VERVAIN, and the herb HANEA, of which Aelian relates such effects---but if thy stomach palls with it---- discontinue it from time to time, taking cucumbers, melons, purslane, water lilies, woodbine, and lettuce, in the stead of them.
There is nothing further for thee, which occurs to me at present----
-----Unless the breaking out of a fresh war-----So wishing everything, dear Toby, for the best,
I rest thy affectionate brother,
WALTER SHANDY
Come, my dear, said my father to my mother-----'twill be
but like a brother and sister, if you and I take a walk down
to my brother Toby's-----to countenance him in this attack
of his.
My uncle Toby and the corporal had been accoutred both
some time, when my father and mother entered, and the
clock striking eleven, were that moment in motion to sally
forth----but the account of this is worth more than to be
wove into the fag end of the eighth volume of such a work
as this.----My father had no time but to put the letter of
I could like, said my mother, to look through the keyhole out of curiosity-----Call it by its right name, my dear, quoth my father--
And look through the keyhole as long as you will.
Si quid urbaniuscul@`e lusum a nobis, per
Musas et Charitas et omnium poetarum
Numina, Oro te, ne me mal@`e capias.
A
DEDICATION
TO A
GREAT MAN Having, a priori, intended to dedicate The Amours of my uncle Toby to Mr. * * *-----I see more reasons, a posteriori, for doing it to Lord *******.
I should lament from my soul, if this exposed me to the jealousy of their Reverences; because, a posteriori, in Court Latin, signifies the kissing hands for preferment--or any thing else-----in order to get it.
My opinion of Lord * * * * * * * is neither better nor worse than it was of Mr. * * *. Honours, like impressions upon coin, may give an ideal and local value to a bit of base metal; but Gold and Silver will pass all the world over without any other recommendation than their own weight.
The same good will that made me think of offering up half an hour's amusement to Mr. * * * when out of place---operates more forcibly at present, as half an hour's amusement will be more serviceable and refreshing after labour and sorrow than after a philosophical repast.
Nothing is so perfectly Amusement as a total change of ideas; no ideas are so totally different as those of Ministers, and innocent Lovers: for which reason, when I come to talk of Statesmen and Patriots, and set such marks upon them as will prevent confusion and mistakes concerning them for the future----I propose to dedicate that Volume to some gentle Shepherd,
Whose Thoughts proud Science never taught to stray,
Far as the Statesman's walk or Patriot way;
Yet simple Nature to his hopes had given
Out of a cloud-capped head a humbler heaven;
Some untamed World in depth of woods embraced------
Some happier Island in the watery waste-----
And where admitted to that equal sky,
His faithful Dogs should bear him company.
In a word, by thus introducing an entire new set of objects to his Imagination, I shall unavoidably give a Diversion to his passionate and lovesick Contemplations. In the meantime,
I am
The AUTHOR
& I call all the powers of time and chance, which severally check us in our careers in this world, to bear me witness that I could never yet get fairly to my uncle Toby's amours till this very moment that my mother's curiosity, as she stated the affair,-----or a different impulse in her, as my father would have it----wished her to take a peep at them through the keyhole.
``Call it, my dear, by its right name,'' quoth my father, ``and look through the keyhole as long as you will.''
Nothing but the fermentation of that little subacid humour which I have often spoken of in my father's habit could have vented such an insinuation----he was however frank and generous in his nature, and at all times open to conviction; so that he had scarce got to the last word of this ungracious retort, when his conscience smote him.
My mother was then conjugally swinging with her left arm twisted under his right, in such wise that the inside of her hand rested upon the back of his-----she raised her fingers, and let them fall----it could scarce be called a tap; or if it was a tap-----'twould have puzzled a casuist to say whether 'twas a tap of remonstrance, or a tap of confession: my father, who was all sensibilities from head to foot, classed it right-----Conscience redoubled her blow-----he turned his face suddenly the other way, and my mother, supposing his body was about to turn with it in order to move homewards, by a cross movement of her right leg, keeping her left as its centre, brought herself so far in front that as he turned his
A temperate current of blood ran orderly through her veins in all months of the year, and in all critical moments both of the day and night alike; nor did she superinduce the least heat into her humours from the manual effervescencies of devotional tracts, which having little or no meaning in them, nature is oft times obliged to find one-----And as for my father's example! 'twas so far from being either aiding or abetting thereunto, that 'twas the whole business of his life to keep all fancies of that kind out of her head----Nature had done her part to have spared him this trouble; and what was not a little inconsistent, my father knew it-----And here am I sitting, this 12th day of August, 1766, in a purple jerkin and yellow pair of slippers, without either wig or cap on, a most tragicomical completion of his prediction ``That I should neither think nor act like any other man's child, upon that very account.''
The mistake of my father was in attacking my mother's motive, instead of the act itself: for certainly keyholes were made for other purposes; and considering the act as an act which interfered with a true proposition, and denied a keyhole to be what it was------it became a violation of nature; and was so far, you see, criminal.
It is for this reason, an' please your Reverences, That keyholes are the occasions of more sin and wickedness than all other holes in this world put together.
-----which leads me to my uncle Toby's amours.
Such it was-----or rather such would it have seemed upon any other brow; but the sweet look of goodness which sat upon my uncle Toby's assimilated everything around it so sovereignly to itself, and Nature had moreover wrote GENTLEMAN with so fair a hand in every line of his countenance, that even his tarnished gold-laced hat and huge cockade of flimsy taffeta became him; and though not worth a button in themselves, yet the moment my uncle Toby put them on, they became serious objects, and altogether seemed to have been picked up by the hand of Science to set him off to advantage.
Nothing in this world could have co-operated more powerfully towards this than my uncle Toby's blue and gold----- had not Quantity in some measure been necessary to Grace: in a period of fifteen or sixteen years since they had been made, by a total inactivity in my uncle Toby's life, for he seldom went further than the bowling green-----his blue and gold had become so miserably too strait for him that it was with the utmost difficulty the corporal was able to get him into them: the taking them up at the sleeves was of no advantage.----They were laced however down the back, and at the seams of the sides, &c., in the mode of King William's reign; and to shorten all description, they shone so bright against the sun that morning, and had so metallic and doughty an air with them, that had my uncle Toby thought of attacking in armour, nothing could have so well imposed upon his imagination.
As for the thin scarlet breeches, they had been unripped by the tailor between the legs, and left at sixes and sevens------
-----Yes, Madam,-----but let us govern our fancies. It is enough they were held impracticable the night before, and as there was no alternative in my uncle Toby's wardrobe, he sallied forth in the red plush.
The corporal had arrayed himself in poor Le Fever's
-----It looks well at least, quoth my father to himself.
Now my uncle Toby did fear; and grievously too: he knew
not (as my father had reproached him) so much as the right
end of a Woman from the wrong, and therefore was never
altogether at his ease near any one of them------unless in sorrow
or distress; then infinite was his pity; nor would the
most courteous knight of romance have gone further, at least
upon one leg, to have wiped away a tear from a woman's eye;
and yet excepting once that he was beguiled into it by Mrs.
Wadman, he had never looked steadfastly into one; and
would often tell my father, in the simplicity of his heart,
that it was almost (if not alout) as bad as talking bawdy.-----
-----And suppose it is? my father would say.
-----She will take it, an' please your Honour, said the corporal, just as the Jew's widow at Lisbon took it of my brother Tom.-----
-----And how was that? quoth my uncle Toby, facing quite about to the corporal.
Your Honour, replied the corporal, knows of Tom's misfortunes; but this affair has nothing to do with them any further than this, That if Tom had not married the widow -----or had it pleased God after their marriage that they had but put pork into their sausages, the honest soul had never been taken out of his warm bed, and dragged to the Inquisition-----'Tis a cursed place----added the corporal, shaking his head,-----when once a poor creature is in, he is in, an, please your Honour, forever.
'Tis very true, said my uncle Toby, looking gravely at Mrs. Wadman's house, as he spoke.
Nothing, continued the corporal, can be so sad as confinement for life----or so sweet, an' please your Honour, as liberty.
Nothing, Trim-----said my uncle Toby, musing----
Whilst a man is free--cried the corporal, giving a flourish with his stick thus-----
A thousand of my father's most subtle syllogisms could not have said more for celibacy.
My uncle Toby looked earnestly towards his cottage and his bowling green.
The corporal had unwarily conjured up the Spirit of
calculation with his wand; and he had nothing to do, but to
conjure him down again with his story, and in this form of
Exorcism, most unecclesiastically did the corporal do it.
Every servant in the family, from high to low, wished Tom
success; and I can fancy, an' please your Honour, I see him
this moment with his white dimity waistcoat and breeches,
and hat a little o' one side, passing jollily along the street,
swinging his stick, with a smile and a cheerful word for
everybody he met:--But alas! Tom! thou smilest no more,
cried the corporal, looking on one side of him upon the
ground, as if he apostrophized him in his dungeon.
Poor fellow! said my uncle Toby, feelingly.
He was an honest, lighthearted lad, an' please your Honour,
as ever blood warmed--
----Then he resembled thee, Trim, said my uncle Toby,
rapidly.
The corporal blushed down to his fingers' ends-----a tear
of sentimental bashfulness--another of gratitude to my
-----She was good, an' please your Honour, from nature as well as from hardships; and there are circumstances in the story of that poor friendless slut that would melt a heart of stone, said Trim; and some dismal winter's evening, when your Honour is in the humour, they shall be told you with the rest of Tom's story, for it makes a part of it-----
Then do not forget, Trim, said my uncle Toby.
A Negro has a soul? an' please your Honour, said the corporal (doubtingly).
I am not much versed, corporal, quoth my uncle Toby, in things of that kind; but I suppose God would not leave him without one, any more than thee or me--
-----It would be putting one sadly over the head of another, quoth the corporal.
It would so, said my uncle Toby. Why then, an' please your Honour, is a black wench to be used worse than a white one?
I can give no reason, said my uncle Toby----
-----Only, cried the corporal, shaking his head, because she has no one to stand up for her-----
-----'Tis that very thing, Trim, quoth my uncle Toby,---- which recommends her to protection-----and her brethren
-----God forbid, said the corporal.
Amen, responded my uncle Toby, laying his hand upon his heart.
The corporal returned to his story, and went on-----but
with an embarrassment in doing it which here and there a
reader in this world will not be able to comprehend; for by
the many sudden transitions all along, from one hind and
cordial passion to another, in getting thus far on his way, he
had lost the sportable key of his voice which gave sense and
spirit to his tale: he attempted twice to resume it, but could
not please himself; so giving a stout hem! to rally back the
retreating spirits, and aiding Nature at the same time with his
left arm akimbo on one side, and with his right a little
extended, supporting her on the other---the corporal got as
near the note as he could; and in that attitude, continued his
story.
There is nothing so awkward as courting a woman, an'
please your Honour, whilst she is making sausages-----So
Tom began a discourse upon them; first gravely,-----``as how
they were made-----with what meats, herbs, and spices''-----
Then a little gayly-----as, ``With what shins----and if they
never burst-----Whether the largest were not the best''----
and so on-----taking care only, as he went along, to season
what he had to say upon sausages rather under, than over;
-----that he might have room to act in-----
lt was owing to the neglect of that very precaution, said m